This is a modern-English version of The Joyful Wisdom ("La Gaya Scienza"), originally written by Nietzsche, Friedrich Wilhelm. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

This cover was produced by the Transcriber
and is in the public domain.

This cover was created by the Transcriber
and is in the public domain.


iTHE COMPLETE WORKS
OF
FRIEDRICH NIETZSCHE
The First Complete and Authorised English Translation
EDITED BY
Dr. OSCAR LEVY
VOLUME TEN

THE JOYFUL WISDOM

("LA GAYA SCIENZA")

iiOf the First Edition of
One Thousand Five Hundred
Copies this is
No.
iiiFRIEDRICH NIETZSCHE
THE
Joyful knowledge
("LA GAYA SCIENZA")
TRANSLATED BY
THOMAS COMMON
WITH POETRY RENDERED BY
PAUL V. COHN
AND
MAUDE D. PETRE
I stay to mine house confined,
Nor graft my wits on alien stock;
And mock at every master mind
That never at itself could mock.
T. N. FOULIS
13 & 15 FREDERICK STREET
EDINBURGH: & LONDON
1910

ivALL RIGHTS RESERVED
Printed at The Darien Press, Edinburgh.
v

CONTENTS

  PAGE
 
Editorial Note vii
 
Preface to the 2nd Edition 1
 
Joke, Trick, and Revenge: An Introduction in Verse 11
 
First Book 29
 
Book Two 93
 
Book Three 149
 
Book Four: Saint Januarius 211
 
Book Five: We Fearless Ones 273
 
Appendix: Prince's Songs Free-as-a-Bird 355
vii

EDITORIAL NOTE

"The Joyful Wisdom," written in 1882, just before "Zarathustra," is rightly judged to be one of Nietzsche's best books. Here the essentially grave and masculine face of the poet-philosopher is seen to light up and suddenly break into a delightful smile. The warmth and kindness that beam from his features will astonish those hasty psychologists who have never divined that behind the destroyer is the creator, and behind the blasphemer the lover of life. In the retrospective valuation of his work which appears in "Ecce Homo" the author himself observes with truth that the fourth book, "Sanctus Januarius," deserves especial attention: "The whole book is a gift from the Saint, and the introductory verses express my gratitude for the most wonderful month of January that I have ever spent." Book fifth "We Fearless Ones," the Appendix "Songs of Prince Free-as-a-Bird," and the Preface, were added to the second edition in 1887.

"The Joyful Wisdom," written in 1882, just before "Zarathustra," is rightly considered one of Nietzsche's best books. Here, the typically serious and masculine side of the poet-philosopher shines through as he suddenly breaks into a joyful smile. The warmth and kindness that radiate from his features will surprise those quick-to-judge psychologists who have never realized that behind the destroyer is the creator, and behind the blasphemer is the lover of life. In the retrospective evaluation of his work that appears in "Ecce Homo," the author himself rightly notes that the fourth book, "Sanctus Januarius," deserves special attention: "The whole book is a gift from the Saint, and the opening verses express my gratitude for the most wonderful month of January that I have ever spent." The fifth book, "We Fearless Ones," the Appendix "Songs of Prince Free-as-a-Bird," and the Preface were added to the second edition in 1887.

The translation of Nietzsche's poetry has proved viiito be a more embarrassing problem than that of his prose. Not only has there been a difficulty in finding adequate translators—a difficulty overcome, it is hoped, by the choice of Miss Petre and Mr Cohn,—but it cannot be denied that even in the original the poems are of unequal merit. By the side of such masterpieces as "To the Mistral" are several verses of comparatively little value. The Editor, however, did not feel justified in making a selection, as it was intended that the edition should be complete. The heading, "Jest, Ruse and Revenge," of the "Prelude in Rhyme" is borrowed from Goethe.

The translation of Nietzsche's poetry has turned out to be a more challenging issue than translating his prose. Not only has it been tough to find good translators—hopefully addressed by choosing Miss Petre and Mr. Cohn—but it’s undeniable that even in the original, the poems vary significantly in quality. Alongside masterpieces like "To the Mistral," there are several verses of relatively little worth. However, the Editor felt it wasn't right to make a selection since the goal was for the edition to be complete. The title "Jest, Ruse and Revenge" from the "Prelude in Rhyme" is taken from Goethe.

1

PREFACE TO THE SECOND
EDITION.

1.

Perhaps more than one preface would be necessary for this book; and after all it might still be doubtful whether any one could be brought nearer to the experiences in it by means of prefaces, without having himself experienced something similar. It seems to be written in the language of the thawing-wind: there is wantonness, restlessness, contradiction and April-weather in it; so that one is as constantly reminded of the proximity of winter as of the victory over it: the victory which is coming, which must come, which has perhaps already come.... Gratitude continually flows forth, as if the most unexpected thing had happened, the gratitude of a convalescent—for convalescence was this most unexpected thing. "Joyful Wisdom": that implies the Saturnalia of a spirit which has patiently withstood a long, frightful pressure—patiently, strenuously, impassionately, without submitting, but without hope—and which is now suddenly o'erpowered with hope, the hope of health, the intoxication of convalescence. What wonder that much that is unreasonable and foolish thereby comes to light: much wanton tenderness expended even on problems which 2have a prickly hide, and are not therefore fit to be fondled and allured. The whole book is really nothing but a revel after long privation and impotence: the frolicking of returning energy, of newly awakened belief in a to-morrow and after-to-morrow; of sudden sentience and prescience of a future, of near adventures, of seas open once more, and aims once more permitted and believed in. And what was now all behind me! This track of desert, exhaustion, unbelief, and frigidity in the midst of youth, this advent of grey hairs at the wrong time, this tyranny of pain, surpassed, however, by the tyranny of pride which repudiated the consequences of pain—and consequences are comforts,—this radical isolation, as defence against the contempt of mankind become morbidly clairvoyant, this restriction upon principle to all that is bitter, sharp, and painful in knowledge, as prescribed by the disgust which had gradually resulted from imprudent spiritual diet and pampering—it is called Romanticism,—oh, who could realise all those feelings of mine! He, however, who could do so would certainly forgive me everything, and more than a little folly, boisterousness and "Joyful Wisdom"—for example, the handful of songs which are given along with the book on this occasion,—songs in which a poet makes merry over all poets in a way not easily pardoned.—Alas, it is not only on the poets and their fine "lyrical sentiments" that this reconvalescent must vent his malignity: who knows what kind of victim he seeks, what kind of monster of material for parody will allure him ere long? 3Incipit tragœdia, it is said at the conclusion of this seriously frivolous book; let people be on their guard! Something or other extraordinarily bad and wicked announces itself: incipit parodia, there is no doubt...

Maybe more than one preface would be needed for this book; and in the end, it might still be unclear whether anyone could connect more deeply with the experiences in it through prefaces, without having gone through something similar themselves. It seems to be written in the language of the thawing wind: there's playfulness, restlessness, contradiction, and springtime weather in it; so that one is constantly reminded of how close winter is, just as much as the victory over it: the victory that’s coming, that must come, and that may have already arrived.... Gratitude flows continuously, as if something completely unexpected has happened—the gratitude of someone recovering—because convalescence was the most unexpected thing. "Joyful Wisdom": that suggests the wild celebration of a spirit that has patiently endured a long, terrifying pressure—patiently, intensely, passionately, without giving in, but without hope—and which is now suddenly overwhelmed with hope, the hope of recovery, the intoxication of healing. It’s no surprise that many unreasonable and foolish things come to light: a lot of tender affection is wasted even on challenges that have a tough exterior and aren’t meant to be caressed and lured. The whole book is really just a celebration after long deprivation and powerlessness: the playful awakening of energy, of newfound belief in tomorrow and beyond; of sudden awareness and anticipation of a future, of nearby adventures, of seas open once again, and goals once more allowed and believed in. And what was now all behind me! This path of desolation, exhaustion, disbelief, and coldness in the midst of youth, this arrival of grey hairs at the wrong time, this tyranny of pain, which was exceeded only by the tyranny of pride that rejected the consequences of pain—and consequences are comforts—this complete isolation, as a defense against the scorn of people who have become morbidly perceptive, this limitation on knowledge to all that is bitter, sharp, and painful, as dictated by the disgust that gradually resulted from a thoughtless spiritual diet and pampering—it’s called Romanticism—oh, who could truly understand all those feelings of mine! But whoever could would surely forgive me everything, and a bit of foolishness, exuberance, and "Joyful Wisdom"—for instance, the handful of songs included with this book on this occasion—songs in which a poet revels in teasing all poets in a way that's not easily forgiven. Alas, it’s not only the poets and their fine "lyrical sentiments" that this recovering individual must express his bitterness about: who knows what kind of victim he will seek, what kind of material for parody will attract him soon enough? 3Incipit tragœdia, it’s said at the end of this seriously playful book; people should beware! Something extraordinarily bad and wicked is on the way: incipit parodia, there’s no doubt...

2.

——But let us leave Herr Nietzsche; what does it matter to people that Herr Nietzsche has got well again?... A psychologist knows few questions so attractive as those concerning the relations of health to philosophy, and in the case when he himself falls sick, he carries with him all his scientific curiosity into his sickness. For, granting that one is a person, one has necessarily also the philosophy of one's personality, there is, however, an important distinction here. With the one it is his defects which philosophise, with the other it is his riches and powers. The former requires his philosophy, whether it be as support, sedative, or medicine, as salvation, elevation, or self-alienation; with the latter it is merely a fine luxury, at best the voluptuousness of a triumphant gratitude, which must inscribe itself ultimately in cosmic capitals on the heaven of ideas. In the other more usual case, however, when states of distress occupy themselves with philosophy (as is the case with all sickly thinkers—and perhaps the sickly thinkers preponderate in the history of philosophy), what will happen to the thought itself which is brought under the pressure of sickness? This is the important question for psychologists: and here experiment is possible. We philosophers do just 4like a traveller who resolves to awake at a given hour, and then quietly yields himself to sleep: we surrender ourselves temporarily, body and soul, to the sickness, supposing we become ill—we shut, as it were, our eyes on ourselves. And as the traveller knows that something does not sleep, that something counts the hours and will awake him, we also know that the critical moment will find us awake—that then something will spring forward and surprise the spirit in the very act, I mean in weakness, or reversion, or submission, or obduracy, or obscurity, or whatever the morbid conditions are called, which in times of good health have the pride of the spirit opposed to them (for it is as in the old rhyme: "The spirit proud, peacock and horse are the three proudest things of earthly source"). After such self-questioning and self-testing, one learns to look with a sharper eye at all that has hitherto been philosophised; one divines better than before the arbitrary by-ways, side-streets, resting-places, and sunny places of thought, to which suffering thinkers, precisely as sufferers, are led and misled: one knows now in what direction the sickly body and its requirements unconsciously press, push, and allure the spirit—towards the sun, stillness, gentleness, patience, medicine, refreshment in any sense whatever. Every philosophy which puts peace higher than war, every ethic with a negative grasp of the idea of happiness, every metaphysic and physic that knows a finale, an ultimate condition of any kind whatever, every predominating, æsthetic or religious longing for an aside, a beyond, an outside, an above—all these permit one to ask whether 5sickness has not been the motive which inspired the philosopher. The unconscious disguising of physiological requirements under the cloak of the objective, the ideal, the purely spiritual, is carried on to an alarming extent,—and I have often enough asked myself, whether, on the whole, philosophy hitherto has not generally been merely an interpretation of the body, and a misunderstanding of the body. Behind the loftiest estimates of value by which the history of thought has hitherto been governed, misunderstandings of the bodily constitution, either of individuals, classes, or entire races are concealed. One may always primarily consider these audacious freaks of metaphysic, and especially its answers to the question of the worth of existence, as symptoms of certain bodily constitutions; and if, on the whole, when scientifically determined, not a particle of significance attaches to such affirmations and denials of the world, they nevertheless furnish the historian and psychologist with hints so much the more valuable (as we have said) as symptoms of the bodily constitution, its good or bad condition, its fullness, powerfulness, and sovereignty in history; or else of its obstructions, exhaustions, and impoverishments, its premonition of the end, its will to the end. I still expect that a philosophical physician, in the exceptional sense of the word—one who applies himself to the problem of the collective health of peoples, periods, races, and mankind generally—will some day have the courage to follow out my suspicion to its ultimate conclusions, and to venture on the judgment that in all philosophising it has not hitherto been a question 6of "truth" at all, but of something else,—namely, of health, futurity, growth, power, life....

——But let's move on from Herr Nietzsche; what does it really matter to people that Herr Nietzsche has recovered?... A psychologist finds few questions as captivating as those about the connection between health and philosophy, and when he falls ill, he brings all his scientific curiosity into his illness. If you're a person, you inevitably have a philosophy tied to your identity, but there's an important distinction here. For some, it's their flaws that lead them to philosophical thinking, while for others, it's their strengths and capabilities. The former needs philosophy as support, comfort, or treatment—seeking salvation, upliftment, or escape; for the latter, it’s just a pleasant luxury, often a blissful expression of thankfulness that aims to etch itself across the vast expanse of ideas. In more common scenarios, when distress drives individuals to philosophical inquiry (as often happens with troubled thinkers—who possibly dominate the history of philosophy), what becomes of the thoughts pressured by illness? This is a crucial question for psychologists: and there’s room for experimentation. We philosophers behave like travelers who decide to wake up at a specific time, then peacefully drift off to sleep: we momentarily surrender ourselves, body and mind, to illness—essentially closing our eyes to ourselves. And just as the traveler knows that something doesn't sleep, that something is counting the hours and will wake him, we know that the critical moment will find us awake—at which point something will suddenly confront the spirit, I mean in its weakness, regression, submission, stubbornness, obscurity, or whatever those unhealthy states are called, which during good health face off against the spirit's pride (because as an old rhyme goes: "The proud spirit, peacock, and horse are the three proudest things on earth"). After such self-examination and reflection, one learns to scrutinize everything previously philosophized with clearer insight; one becomes more aware of the arbitrary detours, side streets, resting places, and bright spots of thought that suffering thinkers, in their roles as sufferers, are led to and led astray by: one now understands how the ailing body and its needs unconsciously pull, push, and entice the spirit—toward light, stillness, gentleness, patience, medicine, and any kind of refreshment. Every philosophy that prioritizes peace over war, every ethical viewpoint with a negative grasp of happiness, every metaphysical and physical outlook that recognizes an ending, a final condition of any sort, every prevailing aesthetic or religious longing for an alternate reality, a transcendence, a higher plane—these all invite the question of whether illness has been the motivation behind the philosopher's thoughts. The unconscious masking of physiological needs under the guise of the objective, the ideal, and the purely spiritual goes alarmingly far,—and I have often wondered whether, on the whole, philosophy has mostly just been an interpretation of the body, and a misunderstanding of it. Hidden behind the highest value judgments that have driven the history of thought are misunderstandings of the bodily makeup, whether of individuals, classes, or entire races. One can always view these bold metaphysical theories, and especially their responses to the question of existence's value, as symptoms of certain bodily states; and if, when rigorously evaluated, such affirmations and rejections of the world carry little significance, they still provide historians and psychologists with invaluable clues (as noted) as indicators of bodily constitution, its good or bad condition, its fullness, strength, and influence in history; or of its blockages, drainages, and impoverishments, its foreboding of an end, its striving for the end. I still hope that a philosophical doctor, in the rarest sense of the word—someone who dedicates their work to the collective health of communities, eras, races, and humanity as a whole—will eventually have the courage to explore my suspicion to its ultimate conclusions, and to boldly declare that in all philosophizing it has not been about "truth" at all, but rather about something else—namely, health, future, growth, power, life....

3.

It will be surmised that I should not like to take leave ungratefully of that period of severe sickness, the advantage of which is not even yet exhausted in me: for I am sufficiently conscious of what I have in advance of the spiritually robust generally, in my changeful state of health. A philosopher who has made the tour of many states of health, and always makes it anew, has also gone through just as many philosophies: he really cannot do otherwise than transform his condition on every occasion into the most ingenious posture and position,—this art of transfiguration is just philosophy. We philosophers are not at liberty to separate soul and body, as the people separate them; and we are still less at liberty to separate soul and spirit. We are not thinking frogs, we are not objectifying and registering apparatuses with cold entrails,—our thoughts must be continually born to us out of our pain, and we must, motherlike, share with them all that we have in us of blood, heart, ardour, joy, passion, pang, conscience, fate and fatality. Life—that means for us to transform constantly into light and flame all that we are, and also all that we meet with; we cannot possibly do otherwise. And as regards sickness, should we not be almost tempted to ask whether we could in general dispense with it? It is great pain only which is the ultimate emancipator of the spirit; for it is the teacher of the 7strong suspicion which makes an X out of every U[1], a true, correct X, i.e., the ante-penultimate letter.... It is great pain only, the long slow pain which takes time, by which we are burned as it were with green wood, that compels us philosophers to descend into our ultimate depths, and divest ourselves of all trust, all good-nature, veiling, gentleness, and averageness, wherein we have perhaps formerly installed our humanity. I doubt whether such pain "improves" us; but I know that it deepens us. Be it that we learn to confront it with our pride, our scorn, our strength of will, doing like the Indian who, however sorely tortured, revenges himself on his tormentor with his bitter tongue; be it that we withdraw from the pain into the oriental nothingness—it is called Nirvana,—into mute, benumbed, deaf self-surrender, self-forgetfulness, and self-effacement: one emerges from such long, dangerous exercises in self-mastery as another being, with several additional notes of interrogation, and above all, with the will to question more than ever, more profoundly, more strictly, more sternly, more wickedly, more quietly than has ever been questioned hitherto. Confidence in life is gone: life itself has become a problem.—Let it not be imagined that one has necessarily become a hypochondriac thereby! Even love of life is still possible—only one loves differently. It is the love of a woman of whom one is doubtful.... The charm, however, of all that is problematic, the delight in the X, is too great in those more spiritual and more spiritualised men, not to spread itself again and again like a clear glow over all the trouble of the problematic, over all the danger of uncertainty, and even over the jealousy of the lover. We know a new happiness....

It’s clear that I don’t want to leave behind the time of deep sickness that still hasn’t fully passed for me. I’m well aware of what I have gained compared to those who are generally healthy, given my fluctuating state of health. A philosopher who has experienced many different states of health—and revisits them often—has also navigated through just as many philosophies. He truly cannot help but transform his situation into the cleverest stance every time; this skill of transformation is philosophy. We philosophers can’t separate the mind and body like others do, and we’re even less able to separate the mind and spirit. We aren’t just thinking frogs, nor are we emotionless machinery; our thoughts must arise from our suffering, and like a mother, we must share everything we have—our blood, heart, enthusiasm, joy, passion, pain, conscience, fate, and destiny. For us, life means constantly turning everything we are and everything we encounter into light and fire; we cannot do otherwise. And regarding sickness, shouldn’t we question whether we could do without it? It’s only extreme pain that truly liberates the spirit; it’s the teacher of the 7strong suspicion that turns every U into an X, a correct X, i.e., the ante-penultimate letter.... It’s only through great, prolonged pain that we’re metaphorically burned like green wood, which forces us philosophers to dig deep and strip away all trust, all good-naturedness, veiling, gentleness, and mediocrity, where we might have previously housed our humanity. I’m not sure if such pain “improves” us, but I know it deepens us. Whether we learn to confront it with pride, scorn, and willpower—like the Indian who, despite intense torture, retaliates with his sharp tongue—or whether we retreat into Eastern nothingness—called Nirvana—into silent, numbed submission, self-forgetfulness, and self-effacement: we emerge from these long, risky exercises in self-mastery as someone different, with lingering questions, and above all, with the will to question more than ever—more deeply, more rigorously, more sternly, more playfully, and more quietly than anyone has before. Confidence in life fades: life itself has become a problem.—Don’t think that this leads one to become a hypochondriac! One can still love life—it’s just a different kind of love. It’s like loving a woman you’re unsure about.... However, the allure of everything that’s uncertain and the joy found in the X is too powerful in those more thoughtful and enlightened individuals not to cast a steady glow over all the trouble of uncertainty, the risks of doubt, and even the jealousy of a lover. We have discovered a new happiness....

8

4.

Finally, (that the most essential may not remain unsaid), one comes back out of such abysses, out of such severe sickness, and out of the sickness of strong suspicion—new-born, with the skin cast; more sensitive, more wicked, with a finer taste for joy, with a more delicate tongue for all good things, with a merrier disposition, with a second and more dangerous innocence in joy; more childish at the same time, and a hundred times more refined than ever before. Oh, how repugnant to us now is pleasure, coarse, dull, drab pleasure, as the pleasure-seekers, our "cultured" classes, our rich and ruling classes, usually understand it! How malignantly we now listen to the great holiday-hubbub with which "cultured people" and city-men at present allow themselves to be forced to "spiritual enjoyment" by art, books, and music, with the help of spirituous liquors! How the theatrical cry of passion now pains our ear, how strange to our taste has all the romantic riot and sensuous bustle which the cultured populace love become (together with their aspirations after the exalted, the elevated, and the intricate)! No, if we convalescents need an art at all, it is another art—a mocking, light, volatile, divinely serene, 9divinely ingenious art, which blazes up like a clear flame, into a cloudless heaven! Above all, an art for artists, only for artists! We at last know better what is first of all necessary for it—namely, cheerfulness, every kind of cheerfulness, my friends! also as artists:—I should like to prove it. We now know something too well, we men of knowledge: oh, how well we are now learning to forget and not know, as artists! And as to our future, we are not likely to be found again in the tracks of those Egyptian youths who at night make the temples unsafe, embrace statues, and would fain unveil, uncover, and put in clear light, everything which for good reasons is kept concealed.[2] No, we have got disgusted with this bad taste, this will to truth, to "truth at all costs," this youthful madness in the love of truth: we are now too experienced, too serious, too joyful, too singed, too profound for that.... We no longer believe that truth remains truth when the veil is withdrawn from it: we have lived long enough to believe this. At present we regard it as a matter of propriety not to be anxious either to see everything naked, or to be present at everything, or to understand and "know" everything. "Is it true that the good God is everywhere present?" asked a little girl of her mother: "I think that is indecent":—a hint to philosophers! One should have more reverence for the shamefacedness with which nature has concealed herself behind enigmas and motley uncertainties. Perhaps truth is a woman who has reasons for not showing her reasons? Perhaps her name is Baubo, to speak in Greek?... Oh, those Greeks! They knew how to live: for that purpose it is necessary to keep bravely to the surface, the fold and the skin; to worship appearance, to believe in forms, tones, and words, in the whole Olympus of appearance! Those Greeks were superficial—from profundity! And are we not coming back precisely to this point, we dare-devils of the spirit, who have scaled the highest and most dangerous peak of contemporary thought, and have looked around us from it, have looked down from it? Are we not precisely in this respect—Greeks? Worshippers of forms, of tones, and of words? And precisely on that account—artists?

Finally, (to ensure nothing essential remains unspoken), one emerges from such depths, from such serious illness, and from the sickness of strong suspicion—reborn, with a new mindset; more sensitive, more cunning, with a sharper appreciation for joy, a more refined taste for all good things, a happier outlook, and a second, more dangerous innocence in joy; more childlike at the same time, and a hundred times more sophisticated than ever before. Oh, how repulsive pleasure now seems to us—crude, dull, bland pleasure, as understood by the pleasure-seekers, our "cultured" classes, our wealthy and ruling classes! How maliciously we now respond to the great holiday noise with which "cultured people" and city dwellers allow themselves to be driven to "spiritual enjoyment" through art, books, and music, aided by alcoholic drinks! How the theatrical cries of passion now hurt our ears, how strange all the romantic chaos and sensual commotion that the cultured masses adore has become (along with their aspirations for the exalted, the elevated, and the intricate)! No, if us recovering individuals need any art, it is another art—a playful, light, airy, divinely calm, divinely clever art, which flares up like a bright flame in a clear sky! Above all, an art for artists, just for artists! We finally understand better what is primarily necessary for it—namely, cheerfulness, all kinds of cheerfulness, my friends! also as artists:—I would like to prove this. We now know something all too well, we knowledgeable ones: oh, how well we've learned to forget and not know, as artists! And regarding our future, we are unlikely to follow the paths of those Egyptian youths who, at night, make the temples unsafe, embrace statues, and wish to unveil, reveal, and bring to light everything that is wisely kept hidden.[2] No, we have grown weary of this bad taste, this desire for truth, for "truth at all costs," this youthful obsession with the love of truth: we are now too experienced, too serious, too joyful, too burned, too deep for that... We no longer believe that truth remains truth when the veil is lifted from it: we have lived long enough to believe this. We currently see it as proper not to be eager to see everything bare, or to attend to everything, or to understand and "know" everything. "Is it true that the good God is everywhere?" a little girl asked her mother: "I think that's indecent":—a clue for philosophers! One ought to have more respect for the shamefacedness with which nature has hidden herself behind mysteries and colorful uncertainties. Perhaps truth is a woman who has her reasons for not revealing her reasons? Perhaps her name is Baubo, to speak in Greek?... Oh, those Greeks! They knew how to live: for that, one must bravely stay on the surface, the fold, and the skin; to cherish appearance, to believe in forms, tones, and words, in the entire Olympus of appearance! Those Greeks were superficial—from profundity! And are we not returning precisely to this point, we daredevils of the spirit, who have climbed the highest and most perilous peak of contemporary thought, and have looked around from it, have looked down from it? Are we not in this very area—Greeks? Worshippers of forms, of tones, and of words? And precisely for that reason—artists?

Ruta, near Genoa

Ruta, near Genoa

Autumn, 1886.

Fall, 1886.

11

JEST, RUSE AND REVENGE.
 
A PRELUDE IN RHYME.

13

1.
 
Invitation.

Venture, comrades, I implore you,
On the fare I set before you,
You will like it more to-morrow,
Better still the following day:
If yet more you're then requiring,
Old success I'll find inspiring,
And fresh courage thence will borrow
Novel dainties to display.

2.

My Good Luck.
Weary of Seeking had I grown,
So taught myself the way to Find:
Back by the storm I once was blown,
But follow now, where drives the wind.

3.

Undismayed.
Where you're standing, dig, dig out:
Down below's the Well:
Let them that walk in darkness shout:
"Down below—there's Hell!"
14

4.

Dialogue.
A. Was I ill? and is it ended?
Pray, by what physician tended?
I recall no pain endured!
B. Now I know your trouble's ended:
He that can forget, is cured.

5.

To the Virtuous.
Let our virtues be easy and nimble-footed in motion,
Like unto Homer's verse ought they to come and to go.

6.

Worldly Wisdom.
Stay not on level plain,
Climb not the mount too high,
But half-way up remain—
The world you'll best descry!

7.

Vademecum—Vadetecum.
Attracted by my style and talk
You'd follow, in my footsteps walk?
Follow yourself unswervingly,
So—careful!—shall you follow me.
15

8.

The Third Sloughing.
My skin bursts, breaks for fresh rebirth,
And new desires come thronging:
Much I've devoured, yet for more earth
The serpent in me's longing.
'Twixt stone and grass I crawl once more,
Hungry, by crooked ways,
To eat the food I ate before,
Earth-fare all serpents praise!

9.

My Roses.
My luck's good—I'd make yours fairer,
(Good luck ever needs a sharer),
Will you stop and pluck my roses?
Oft mid rocks and thorns you'll linger,
Hide and stoop, suck bleeding finger—
Will you stop and pluck my roses?
For my good luck's a trifle vicious,
Fond of teasing, tricks malicious—
Will you stop and pluck my roses?

10.

The Scorner.
Many drops I waste and spill,
So my scornful mood you curse:
Who to brim his cup doth fill,
Many drops must waste and spill—
Yet he thinks the wine no worse.
16

11.

The Proverb Speaks.
Harsh and gentle, fine and mean,
Quite rare and common, dirty and clean,
The fools' and the sages' go-between:
All this I will be, this have been,
Dove and serpent and swine, I ween!

12.

To a Lover of Light.
That eye and sense be not fordone
E'en in the shade pursue the sun!

13.

For Dancers.
Smoothest ice,
A paradise
To him who is a dancer nice.

14.

The Brave Man.
A feud that knows not flaw nor break,
Rather then patched-up friendship, take.

15.

Rust.
Rust's needed: keenness will not satisfy!
"He is too young!" the rabble loves to cry.

16.

Excelsior.
"How shall I reach the top?" No time
For thus reflecting! Start to climb!
17

17.

The Man of Power Speaks.
Ask never! Cease that whining, pray!
Take without asking, take alway!

18.

Narrow Souls.
Narrow souls hate I like the devil,
Souls wherein grows nor good nor evil.

19.

Accidentally a Seducer.[3]
He shot an empty word
Into the empty blue;
But on the way it met
A woman whom it slew.

20.

For Consideration.
A twofold pain is easier far to bear
Than one: so now to suffer wilt thou dare?

21.

Against Pride.
Brother, to puff thyself up ne'er be quick:
For burst thou shalt be by a tiny prick!

22.

Man and Woman.
"The woman seize, who to thy heart appeals!"
Man's motto: woman seizes not, but steals.
18

23.

Interpretation.
If I explain my wisdom, surely
'Tis but entangled more securely,
I can't expound myself aright:
But he that's boldly up and doing,
His own unaided course pursuing,
Upon my image casts more light!

24.

A Cure for Pessimism.
Those old capricious fancies, friend!
You say your palate naught can please,
I hear you bluster, spit and wheeze,
My love, my patience soon will end!
Pluck up your courage, follow me—
Here's a fat toad! Now then, don't blink,
Swallow it whole, nor pause to think!
From your dyspepsia you'll be free!

25.

A Request.
Many men's minds I know full well,
Yet what mine own is, cannot tell.
I cannot see—my eye's too near—
And falsely to myself appear.
'Twould be to me a benefit
Far from myself if I could sit,
Less distant than my enemy,
19And yet my nearest friend's too nigh—
'Twixt him and me, just in the middle!
What do I ask for? Guess my riddle!

26.

My Cruelty.
I must ascend an hundred stairs,
I must ascend: the herd declares
I'm cruel: "Are we made of stone?"
I must ascend an hundred stairs:
All men the part of stair disown.

27.

The Wanderer.
"No longer path! Abyss and silence chilling!"
Thy fault! To leave the path thou wast too willing!
Now comes the test! Keep cool—eyes bright and clear!
Thou'rt lost for sure, if thou permittest—fear.

28.

Encouragement for Beginners.
See the infant, helpless creeping—
Swine around it grunt swine-talk—
Weeping always, naught but weeping,
Will it ever learn to walk?
Never fear! Just wait, I swear it
Soon to dance will be inclined,
And this babe, when two legs bear it,
Standing on its head you'll find.
20

29.

Planet Egoism.
Did I not turn, a rolling cask,
Ever about myself, I ask,
How could I without burning run
Close on the track of the hot sun?

30.

The Neighbour.
Too nigh, my friend my joy doth mar,
I'd have him high above and far,
Or how can he become my star?

31.

The Disguised Saint.
Lest we for thy bliss should slay thee,
In devil's wiles thou dost array thee,
Devil's wit and devil's dress.
But in vain! Thy looks betray thee
And proclaim thy holiness.

32.

The Slave.
A. He stands and listens: whence his pain?
What smote his ears? Some far refrain?
Why is his heart with anguish torn?
B. Like all that fetters once have worn,
He always hears the clinking—chain!
21

33.

The Lone One.
I hate to follow and I hate to lead.
Obedience? no! and ruling? no, indeed!
Wouldst fearful be in others' sight?
Then e'en thyself thou must affright:
The people but the Terror's guidance heed.
I hate to guide myself, I hate the fray.
Like the wild beasts I'll wander far afield.
In Error's pleasing toils I'll roam
Awhile, then lure myself back home,
Back home, and—to my self-seduction yield.

34.

Seneca et hoc Genus omne.
They write and write (quite maddening me)
Their "sapient" twaddle airy,
As if 'twere primum scribere,
Deinde philosophari.

35.

Ice.
Yes! I manufacture ice:
Ice may help you to digest:
If you had much to digest,
How you would enjoy my ice!

36.

Youthful Writings.
My wisdom's A and final O
Was then the sound that smote mine ear.
22Yet now it rings no longer so,
My youth's eternal Ah! and Oh!
Is now the only sound I hear.[4]

37.

Foresight.
In yonder region travelling, take good care!
An hast thou wit, then be thou doubly ware!
They'll smile and lure thee; then thy limbs they'll tear:
Fanatics' country this where wits are rare!

38.

The Pious One Speaks.
God loves us, for he made us, sent us here!—
"Man hath made God!" ye subtle ones reply.
His handiwork he must hold dear,
And what he made shall he deny?
There sounds the devil's halting hoof, I fear.

39.

In Summer.
In sweat of face, so runs the screed,
We e'er must eat our bread,
Yet wise physicians if we heed
"Eat naught in sweat," 'tis said.
The dog-star's blinking: what's his need?
What tells his blazing sign?
In sweat of face (so runs his screed)
We're meant to drink our wine!
23

40.

Without Envy.
His look bewrays no envy: and ye laud him?
He cares not, asks not if your throng applaud him!
He has the eagle's eye for distance far,
He sees you not, he sees but star on star!

41.

Heraclitism.
Brethren, war's the origin
Of happiness on earth:
Powder-smoke and battle-din
Witness friendship's birth!
Friendship means three things, you know,—
Kinship in luckless plight,
Equality before the foe
Freedom—in death's sight!

42.

Maxim of the Over-refined.
"Rather on your toes stand high
Than crawl upon all fours,
Rather through the keyhole spy
Than through open doors!"

43.

Exhortation.
Renown you're quite resolved to earn?
My thought about it
Is this: you need not fame, must learn
To do without it!
24

44.

Thorough.
I an Inquirer? No, that's not my calling
Only I weigh a lot—I'm such a lump!—
And through the waters I keep falling, falling,
Till on the ocean's deepest bed I bump.

45.

The Immortals.
"To-day is meet for me, I come to-day,"
Such is the speech of men foredoomed to stay.
"Thou art too soon," they cry, "thou art too late,"
What care the Immortals what the rabble say?

46.

Verdicts of the Weary.
The weary shun the glaring sun, afraid,
And only care for trees to gain the shade.

47.

Descent.
"He sinks, he falls," your scornful looks portend:
The truth is, to your level he'll descend.
His Too Much Joy is turned to weariness,
His Too Much Light will in your darkness end.

48.

Nature Silenced.[5]
Around my neck, on chain of hair,
The timepiece hangs—a sign of care.
For me the starry course is o'er,
No sun and shadow as before,
No cockcrow summons at the door,
For nature tells the time no more!
Too many clocks her voice have drowned,
And droning law has dulled her sound.
25

49.

The Sage Speaks.
Strange to the crowd, yet useful to the crowd,
I still pursue my path, now sun, now cloud,
But always pass above the crowd!

50.

He lost his Head....
She now has wit—how did it come her way?
A man through her his reason lost, they say.
His head, though wise ere to this pastime lent,
Straight to the devil—no, to woman went!

51.

A Pious Wish.
"Oh, might all keys be lost! 'Twere better so
And in all keyholes might the pick-lock go!"
Who thus reflects ye may as—picklock know.

52.

Foot Writing.
I write not with the hand alone,
My foot would write, my foot that capers,
Firm, free and bold, it's marching on
Now through the fields, now through the papers.
26

53.

"Human, All-too-Human."...
Shy, gloomy, when your looks are backward thrust,
Trusting the future where yourself you trust,
Are you an eagle, mid the nobler fowl,
Or are you like Minerva's darling owl?

54.

To my Reader.
Good teeth and a digestion good
I wish you—these you need, be sure!
And, certes, if my book you've stood,
Me with good humour you'll endure.

55.

The Realistic Painter.
"To nature true, complete!" so he begins.
Who complete Nature to his canvas wins?
Her tiniest fragment's endless, no constraint
Can know: he paints just what his fancy pins:
What does his fancy pin? What he can paint!

56.

Poets' Vanity.
Glue, only glue to me dispense,
The wood I'll find myself, don't fear!
To give four senseless verses sense—
That's an achievement I revere!
27

57.

Taste in Choosing.
If to choose my niche precise
Freedom I could win from fate,
I'd be in midst of Paradise—
Or, sooner still—before the gate!

58.

The Crooked Nose.
Wide blow your nostrils, and across
The land your nose holds haughty sway:
So you, unhorned rhinoceros,
Proud mannikin, fall forward aye!
The one trait with the other goes:
A straight pride and a crooked nose.

59.

The Pen is Scratching....
The pen is scratching: hang the pen!
To scratching I'm condemned to sink!
I grasp the inkstand fiercely then
And write in floods of flowing ink.
How broad, how full the stream's career!
What luck my labours doth requite!
'Tis true, the writing's none too clear—
What then? Who reads the stuff I write?

60.

Loftier Spirits.
This man's climbing up—let us praise him—
But that other we love
From aloft doth eternally move,
So above even praise let us raise him,
He comes from above!
28

61.

The Sceptic Speaks.
Your life is half-way o'er;
The clock-hand moves; your soul is thrilled with fear,
It roamed to distant shore
And sought and found not, yet you—linger here!
Your life is half-way o'er;
That hour by hour was pain and error sheer:
Why stay? What seek you more?
"That's what I'm seeking—reasons why I'm here!"

62.

Ecce Homo.
Yes, I know where I'm related,
Like the flame, unquenched, unsated,
I consume myself and glow:
All's turned to light I lay my hand on,
All to coal that I abandon,
Yes, I am a flame, I know!

63.

Star Morality.[6]
Foredoomed to spaces vast and far,
What matters darkness to the star?
Roll calmly on, let time go by,
Let sorrows pass thee—nations die!
Compassion would but dim the light
That distant worlds will gladly sight.
To thee one law—be pure and bright!
29

BOOK FIRST

31

1.

The Teachers of the Object of Existence.—Whether I look with a good or an evil eye upon men, I find them always at one problem, each and all of them: to do that which conduces to the conservation of the human species. And certainly not out of any sentiment of love for this species, but simply because nothing in them is older, stronger, more inexorable, and more unconquerable than that instinct,—because it is precisely the essence of our race and herd. Although we are accustomed readily enough, with our usual short-sightedness, to separate our neighbours precisely into useful and hurtful, into good and evil men, yet when we make a general calculation, and on longer reflection on the whole question, we become distrustful of this defining and separating, and finally leave it alone. Even the most hurtful man is still perhaps, in respect to the conservation of the race, the most useful of all; for he conserves in himself or by his effect on others, impulses without which mankind might long ago have languished or decayed. Hatred, delight in mischief, rapacity and ambition, and whatever else is called evil—belong to the marvellous economy of the conservation of the race; to be sure a costly, lavish, 32and on the whole very foolish economy:—which has, however, hitherto preserved our race, as is demonstrated to us. I no longer know, my dear fellow-man and neighbour, if thou canst at all live to the disadvantage of the race, and therefore, "unreasonably" and "badly"; that which could have injured the race has perhaps died out many millenniums ago, and now belongs to the things which are no longer possible even to God. Indulge thy best or thy worst desires, and above all, go to wreck!—in either case thou art still probably the furtherer and benefactor of mankind in some way or other, and in that respect thou mayest have thy panegyrists—and similarly thy mockers! But thou wilt never find him who would be quite qualified to mock at thee, the individual, at thy best, who could bring home to thy conscience its limitless, buzzing and croaking wretchedness so as to be in accord with truth! To laugh at oneself as one would have to laugh in order to laugh out of the veriest truth,—to do this the best have not hitherto had enough of the sense of truth, and the most endowed have had far too little genius! There is perhaps still a future even for laughter! When the maxim, "The race is all, the individual is nothing,"—has incorporated itself in humanity, and when access stands open to every one at all times to this ultimate emancipation and irresponsibility.—Perhaps then laughter will have united with wisdom, perhaps then there will be only "joyful wisdom." Meanwhile, however, it is quite otherwise, meanwhile the comedy of existence has not yet "become conscious" of itself, 33meanwhile it is still the period of tragedy, the period of morals and religions. What does the ever new appearing of founders of morals and religions, of instigators of struggles for moral valuations, of teachers of remorse of conscience and religious war, imply? What do these heroes on this stage imply? For they have hitherto been the heroes of it, and all else, though solely visible for the time being, and too close to one, has served only as preparation for these heroes, whether as machinery and coulisse, or in the rôle of confidants and valets. (The poets, for example, have always been the valets of some morality or other.)—It is obvious of itself that these tragedians also work in the interest of the race, though they may believe that they work in the interest of God, and as emissaries of God. They also further the life of the species, in that they further the belief in life. "It is worth while to live"—each of them calls out,—"there is something of importance in this life; life has something behind it and under it; take care!" That impulse, which rules equally in the noblest and the ignoblest, the impulse towards the conservation of the species, breaks forth from time to time as reason and passion of spirit; it has then a brilliant train of motives about it, and tries with all its power to make us forget that fundamentally it is just impulse, instinct, folly and baselessness. Life should be loved, for ...! Man should benefit himself and his neighbour, for ...! And whatever all these shoulds and fors imply, and may imply in future! In order that that which necessarily and always happens of itself and 34without design, may henceforth appear to be done by design, and may appeal to men as reason and ultimate command,—for that purpose the ethiculturist comes forward as the teacher of design in existence; for that purpose he devises a second and different existence, and by means of this new mechanism he lifts the old common existence off its old common hinges. No! he does not at all want us to laugh at existence, nor even at ourselves—nor at himself; to him an individual is always an individual, something first and last and immense, to him there are no species, no sums, no noughts. However foolish and fanatical his inventions and valuations may be, however much he may misunderstand the course of nature and deny its conditions—and all systems of ethics hitherto have been foolish and anti-natural to such a degree that mankind would have been ruined by any one of them had it got the upper hand,—at any rate, every time that "the hero" came upon the stage something new was attained: the frightful counterpart of laughter, the profound convulsion of many individuals at the thought, "Yes, it is worth while to live! yes, I am worthy to live!"—life, and thou, and I, and all of us together became for a while interesting to ourselves once more.—It is not to be denied that hitherto laughter and reason and nature have in the long run got the upper hand of all the great teachers of design: in the end the short tragedy always passed over once more into the eternal comedy of existence; and the "waves of innumerable laughters"—to use the expression of Æschylus—must also in the end beat over the greatest 35of these tragedies. But with all this corrective laughter, human nature has on the whole been changed by the ever new appearance of those teachers of the design of existence,—human nature has now an additional requirement, the very requirement of the ever new appearance of such teachers and doctrines of "design." Man has gradually become a visionary animal, who has to fulfil one more condition of existence than the other animals: man must from time to time believe that he knows why he exists; his species cannot flourish without periodically confiding in life! Without the belief in reason in life! And always from time to time will the human race decree anew that "there is something which really may not be laughed at." And the most clairvoyant philanthropist will add that "not only laughing and joyful wisdom, but also the tragic, with all its sublime irrationality, counts among the means and necessities for the conservation of the race!"—And consequently! Consequently! Consequently! Do you understand me, oh my brothers? Do you understand this new law of ebb and flow? We also shall have our time!

The Teachers of the Object of Existence.—Whether I look at people with admiration or disdain, I see them all facing one common issue: to do what helps preserve the human race. It's certainly not out of love for humanity, but simply because that instinct within us is the oldest, strongest, and most relentless driving force we have—it is essentially what defines our species. While we often hastily categorize our neighbors into useful and harmful or good and evil, upon deeper reflection, we start to question these labels and eventually set them aside. The most harmful person might actually be the most beneficial for the survival of the species, as they embody impulses that could have caused humanity to wither away long ago without them. Hatred, enjoyment of mischief, greed, ambition, and all that we deem evil, play a crucial role in the preservation of humanity; it's undoubtedly an extravagant and foolish mechanism, yet it has kept our race alive, as history shows. I wonder, my dear fellow man and neighbor, if you can even live in a way that harms the race, thus behaving "unreasonably" and "poorly"; perhaps anything that could have harmed the race has vanished many millennia ago and now belongs to the past, things that are no longer possible even for God. Indulge your best or worst desires, and especially, let yourself fall apart!—In either case, you probably contribute to the advancement of humanity in some way, and for that, you may have both admirers and critics! But you will never encounter someone fully equipped to mock you, the individual, in your best self, who could make you painfully aware of your limitless, noisy, and miserable nature in a truthful way! To laugh at oneself as one would need to laugh in the essence of total truth—the best among us have so far lacked the sense of truth, and the most gifted have had very little creative brilliance! There may still be a future for laughter! When the principle, "The race is everything, the individual is nothing," has truly taken root in humanity, and when everyone has unrestricted access to this ultimate liberation and lack of accountability.—Perhaps then laughter will merge with wisdom, perhaps then we will know only "joyful wisdom." Meanwhile, things are quite different; the comedy of existence has not yet "become conscious" of itself, and we are still in an era of tragedy, of morals and religions. What does the perpetual emergence of moral founders and religious leaders, instigators of moral judgment struggles, and teachers of guilt and holy wars imply? What do these heroes on this stage signify? For they have been the heroes all along, and everything else, though it may be visible right now and too close to us, has merely prepared the ground for these heroes, whether as background or in the role of assistants and supporters. (The poets, for instance, have always acted as the aides of some morality or another.)—It is clear that these tragic figures also work for the benefit of the race, even if they believe they are serving God as His messengers. They promote the survival of the species by fostering faith in life. "Living is worthwhile," each of them proclaims,—"there's something important about being alive; life holds significance and depth; take heed!" That instinct, which operates equally in the noblest and basest of us, the instinct for the conservation of the species, occasionally rises to the surface as reason and spirit; it then carries an impressive array of motives and attempts with all its might to make us forget that fundamentally, it is just impulse, instinct, folly, and lack of basis. Life should be cherished, because...! Humanity should aim to benefit both itself and others, because...! And whatever these shoulds and becauses might mean and could mean in the future! So that what happens naturally and inevitably, without intention, can begin to appear as if it has purpose and resonate with humans as reason and ultimate command,—for this, the ethicist steps forward as an educator of purpose in existence; he creates a secondary and different reality, and through this new framework, he dislodges our old familiar existence from its worn-out hinges. No! He doesn't want us to laugh at existence, or even at ourselves—or at him; to him, an individual is always unique, something immense and significant, void of species, sums, or zeros. Regardless of how misguided and fanatical his ideas and values may be, or how much he misinterprets the course of nature and denies its conditions—and all ethical systems up to now have been so misguided and unnatural that humanity would have been destroyed by any one of them if given the chance to dominate—every time "the hero" appears on stage, something new is achieved: the terrifying opposite of laughter, the profound shock felt by many at the realization, "Yes, living is worthwhile! Yes, I deserve to live!"—life, along with you, and me, and all of us, momentarily become interesting to ourselves again.—It can't be denied that so far laughter, reason, and nature have ultimately triumphed over all the great teachers of intention: in the end, the short tragedy has again transformed into the eternal comedy of existence; and the "waves of countless laughs"—to quote Æschylus—must eventually wash over even the greatest of these tragedies. But with all this corrective laughter, human nature has generally been altered by the continuous arrival of these teachers of life’s purpose—human nature now possesses an additional need, the very demand for the ongoing appearance of such teachers and philosophies of "purpose." Humanity has gradually evolved into a visionary species, needing to fulfill one more criterion for existence than other animals: humans must occasionally believe they understand why they exist; their species cannot thrive without periodically trusting in life! Without a belief in reason in life! And time and again, humanity will decide anew that "there's something that shouldn’t be laughed at." And even the most perceptive humanitarian will add that "not only laughter and joyful wisdom but also the tragic, with all its sublime irrationality, are essential for the preservation of the race!"—And therefore! Therefore! Therefore! Do you get me, oh my brothers? Do you understand this new law of ebb and flow? We too will have our moment!

2.

The Intellectual Conscience.—I have always the same experience over again, and always make a new effort against it; for although it is evident to me I do not want to believe it: in the greater number of men the intellectual conscience is lacking; indeed, it would often seem to me that in demanding such a thing, one is as solitary in the largest cities as in the desert. Everyone looks at you with strange 36eyes, and continues to make use of his scales, calling this good and that bad; and no one blushes for shame when you remark that these weights are not the full amount,—there is also no indignation against you; perhaps they laugh at your doubt. I mean to say that the greater number of people do not find it contemptible to believe this or that, and live according to it, without having been previously aware of the ultimate and surest reasons for and against it, and without even giving themselves any trouble about such reasons afterwards,—the most gifted men and the noblest women still belong to this "greater number." But what is kind-heartedness, refinement and genius to me, if the man with these virtues harbours indolent sentiments in belief and judgment, if the longing for certainty does not rule in him, as his innermost desire and profoundest need—as that which separates higher from lower men! In certain pious people I have found a hatred of reason, and have been favourably disposed to them for it: their bad, intellectual conscience still betrayed itself, at least in this manner! But to stand in the midst of this rerum concordia discors and all the marvellous uncertainty and ambiguity of existence, and not to question, not to tremble with desire and delight in questioning, not even to hate the questioner—perhaps even to make merry over him to the extent of weariness—that is what I regard as contemptible, and it is this sentiment which I first of all search for in every one:—some folly or other always persuades me anew that every man has this sentiment, as man. This is my special kind of unrighteousness.

The Intellectual Conscience.—I keep having the same experience over and over again, and I always try to push against it; because while I clearly don’t want to believe it: most people lack an intellectual conscience; in fact, it often seems to me that in wanting such a thing, you’re just as alone in the biggest cities as you are in the desert. Everyone looks at you with puzzled expressions and keeps using their own judgments, labeling this as good and that as bad; and no one feels ashamed when you point out that these judgments are incomplete—there’s no anger directed at you; they might even laugh at your skepticism. I mean to say that most people don’t think it’s shameful to believe one thing or another and live according to that, without ever having really understood the best and strongest reasons for and against it, and without even bothering to think about those reasons later on—many gifted men and noble women still belong to this "greater number." But what does it matter to me if a person has kindness, refinement, and genius, if that person holds lazy beliefs and judgments, if the craving for certainty doesn’t govern them as their deepest desire and greatest need—what separates the higher from the lower people! I’ve found that some devout individuals harbor a dislike for reason, and I’ve actually felt a bit sympathetic to them for that: their poor intellectual conscience still revealed itself, at least in this way! But to stand amidst this rerum concordia discors and all the amazing uncertainty and ambiguity of existence, and not to question, not to feel a thrill of desire and joy in questioning, not even to resent the questioner—perhaps even to joke about him to the point of exhaustion—that’s what I consider contemptible, and it’s this feeling that I always look for in everyone:—some kind of foolishness always convinces me anew that every person has this sentiment, as part of being human. This is my particular kind of wrongdoing.

37

3.

Noble and Ignoble.—To ignoble natures all noble, magnanimous sentiments appear inexpedient, and on that account first and foremost, as incredible: they blink with their eyes when they hear of such matters, and seem inclined to say, "there will, no doubt, be some advantage therefrom, one cannot see through all walls;"—they are jealous of the noble person, as if he sought advantage by back-stair methods. When they are all too plainly convinced of the absence of selfish intentions and emoluments, the noble person is regarded by them as a kind of fool: they despise him in his gladness, and laugh at the lustre of his eye. "How can a person rejoice at being at a disadvantage, how can a person with open eyes want to meet with disadvantage! It must be a disease of the reason with which the noble affection is associated,"—so they think, and they look depreciatingly thereon; just as they depreciate the joy which the lunatic derives from his fixed idea. The ignoble nature is distinguished by the fact that it keeps its advantage steadily in view, and that this thought of the end and advantage is even stronger than its strongest impulse: not to be tempted to inexpedient activities by its impulses—that is its wisdom and inspiration. In comparison with the ignoble nature the higher nature is more irrational:—for the noble, magnanimous, and self-sacrificing person succumbs in fact to his impulses, and in his best moments his reason lapses altogether. An animal, which at the risk 38of life protects its young, or in the pairing season follows the female where it meets with death, does not think of the risk and the death; its reason pauses likewise, because its delight in its young, or in the female, and the fear of being deprived of this delight, dominate it exclusively; it becomes stupider than at other times, like the noble and magnanimous person. He possesses feelings of pleasure and pain of such intensity that the intellect must either be silent before them, or yield itself to their service: his heart then goes into his head, and one henceforth speaks of "passions." (Here and there to be sure, the antithesis to this, and as it were the "reverse of passion," presents itself; for example in Fontenelle, to whom some one once laid the hand on the heart with the words, "What you have there, my dearest friend, is brain also.") It is the unreason, or perverse reason of passion, which the ignoble man despises in the noble individual, especially when it concentrates upon objects whose value appears to him to be altogether fantastic and arbitrary. He is offended at him who succumbs to the passion of the belly, but he understands the allurement which here plays the tyrant; but he does not understand, for example, how a person out of love of knowledge can stake his health and honour on the game. The taste of the higher nature devotes itself to exceptional matters, to things which usually do not affect people, and seem to have no sweetness; the higher nature has a singular standard of value. Besides, it is mostly of the belief that it has not a singular standard of value in its idiosyncrasies 39of taste; it rather sets up its values and non-values as the generally valid values and non-values, and thus becomes incomprehensible and impracticable. It is very rarely that a higher nature has so much reason over and above as to understand and deal with everyday men as such; for the most part it believes in its passion as if it were the concealed passion of every one, and precisely in this belief it is full of ardour and eloquence. If then such exceptional men do not perceive themselves as exceptions, how can they ever understand the ignoble natures and estimate average men fairly! Thus it is that they also speak of the folly, inexpediency and fantasy of mankind, full of astonishment at the madness of the world, and that it will not recognise the "one thing needful for it."—This is the eternal unrighteousness of noble natures.

Noble and Ignoble.—For those with ignoble natures, all noble, generous feelings seem impractical and, above all, unbelievable: they squint when they hear about such things and seem ready to say, "Surely there’s some benefit to this; you can’t see through all walls;"—they feel jealous of the noble person, as if he’s trying to gain something through underhanded means. When they are clearly convinced that there are no selfish motives or benefits, they think of the noble person as a type of fool: they look down on him for his happiness and laugh at the brightness in his eyes. "How can someone be happy being at a disadvantage? How can someone with their eyes open actually want to be at a disadvantage! It must be some kind of mental illness tied to noble emotions,"—that’s what they think, and they view it with disdain; just like they belittle the joy a lunatic gets from their obsession. The ignoble nature is marked by its relentless focus on personal gain, and its awareness of this goal is even stronger than its strongest impulse: avoiding unwise actions driven by those impulses is its wisdom and inspiration. Compared to the ignoble nature, the higher nature is more irrational:—for the noble, generous, and self-sacrificing person actually gives in to their impulses, and in their finest moments, their reason completely lapses. An animal that risks its life to protect its young or follows a mate to the point of death doesn’t consider the risk or the death; its reasoning stops as its joy in its young or mate, and the fear of losing that joy, entirely take over; it becomes less rational than at other times, much like the noble and generous person. This person experiences feelings of pleasure and pain so intensely that their intellect must either stay quiet in their presence or become subservient to those feelings: their heart then overtakes their mind, leading to what we call "passions." (Occasionally, the opposite of this, or what could be called the "reverse of passion," appears; for example, Fontenelle, who once had someone lay a hand on his heart and say, "What you have there, my dear friend, is also brain.") It is the unreason, or twisted reason of passion, that the ignoble person looks down upon in the noble individual, especially when it focuses on things they find completely absurd and arbitrary. They are offended by those who give in to base desires, yet they understand the pull of such urges; however, they cannot comprehend how someone would risk their health and honor for the pursuit of knowledge. The higher nature is drawn to exceptional matters, to things that usually don’t concern people, and seem to lack appeal; it holds a unique standard of value. Moreover, it often believes that it does not have a unique standard of value in its personal preferences; instead, it imposes its values and non-values as the universally valid ones, making it difficult to understand and engage with. It is very rare for a higher nature to have enough insight to understand and interact with ordinary people as they are; more often, it believes in its passions as if they were the hidden passions of everyone, and it is precisely this belief that fills it with fervor and eloquence. If such exceptional people don’t see themselves as exceptions, how can they possibly understand ignoble natures and fairly assess average individuals? This leads them to speak of the folly, impracticality, and fantasy of humanity, astonished by the madness of the world and how it fails to recognize the "one thing it truly needs."—This is the eternal injustice of noble natures.

4.

That which Preserves the Species.—The strongest and most evil spirits have hitherto advanced mankind the most: they always rekindled the sleeping passions—all orderly arranged society lulls the passions to sleep; they always reawakened the sense of comparison, of contradiction, of delight in the new, the adventurous, the untried; they compelled men to set opinion against opinion, ideal plan against ideal plan. By means of arms, by upsetting boundary-stones, by violations of piety most of all: but also by new religions and morals! The same kind of "wickedness" is in every teacher and preacher of the new—which makes a conqueror 40infamous, although it expresses itself more refinedly, and does not immediately set the muscles in motion (and just on that account does not make so infamous!). The new, however, is under all circumstances the evil, as that which wants to conquer, which tries to upset the old boundary-stones and the old piety; only the old is the good! The good men of every age are those who go to the roots of the old thoughts and bear fruit with them, the agriculturists of the spirit. But every soil becomes finally exhausted, and the ploughshare of evil must always come once more.—There is at present a fundamentally erroneous theory of morals which is much celebrated, especially in England: according to it the judgments "good" and "evil" are the accumulation of the experiences of that which is "expedient" and "inexpedient"; according to this theory, that which is called good is conservative of the species, what is called evil, however, is detrimental to it. But in reality the evil impulses are just in as high a degree expedient, indispensable, and conservative of the species as the good:—only, their function is different.

What Preserves the Species.—The strongest and most malevolent forces have historically propelled humanity forward the most: they always reignite dormant passions—all well-ordered societies put those passions to sleep; they consistently reawaken the sense of comparison, contradiction, and excitement in the new, the adventurous, and the untested; they drive people to pit opinion against opinion, ideal against ideal. They do this through force, by changing borders, by breaching sacred beliefs most of all; but also through new religions and moralities! The same kind of "wickedness" exists in every teacher and preacher of the new—which makes a conqueror infamous, even if it’s expressed in a more refined way that doesn't immediately provoke action (and for that reason doesn't gain infamy as quickly!). The new, however, is ultimately the evil, striving to conquer and attempting to overturn the old borders and ancient beliefs; only the old is the good! The virtuous individuals of every era are those who delve into deeply rooted ideas and cultivate them, acting as the farmers of the spirit. Yet every soil eventually becomes depleted, and the plowshare of evil must inevitably return. —Currently, there's a fundamentally flawed moral theory that's quite popular, especially in England: according to it, the labels "good" and "evil" stem from the aggregate experiences of what is "expedient" and "inexpedient"; by this theory, what’s deemed good preserves the species, while what’s termed evil is harmful to it. However, in reality, the evil impulses are just as expedient, necessary, and preservative of the species as the good ones—only, their roles are different.

5.

Unconditional Duties.—All men who feel that they need the strongest words and intonations, the most eloquent gestures and attitudes, in order to operate at all—revolutionary politicians, socialists, preachers of repentance with or without Christianity, with all of whom there must be no mere half-success,—all these speak of "duties," and indeed, always of duties, which have the character of being unconditional—without 41such they would have no right to their excessive pathos: they know that right well! They grasp, therefore, at philosophies of morality which preach some kind of categorical imperative, or they assimilate a good lump of religion, as, for example, Mazzini did. Because they want to be trusted unconditionally, it is first of all necessary for them to trust themselves unconditionally, on the basis of some ultimate, undebatable command, sublime in itself, as the ministers and instruments of which, they would fain feel and announce themselves. Here we have the most natural, and for the most part, very influential opponents of moral enlightenment and scepticism: but they are rare. On the other hand, there is always a very numerous class of those opponents wherever interest teaches subjection, while repute and honour seem to forbid it. He who feels himself dishonoured at the thought of being the instrument of a prince, or of a party and sect, or even of wealthy power (for example, as the descendant of a proud, ancient family), but wishes just to be this instrument, or must be so before himself and before the public—such a person has need of pathetic principles which can at all times be appealed to:—principles of an unconditional ought, to which a person can subject himself without shame, and can show himself subjected. All more refined servility holds fast to the categorical imperative, and is the mortal enemy of those who want to take away the unconditional character of duty: propriety demands this from them, and not only propriety.

Unconditional Duties.—All people who feel they need the strongest words and tones, the most powerful gestures and attitudes, just to function at all—revolutionary politicians, socialists, preachers of repentance with or without Christianity, for whom there can be no partial success—all of these talk about "duties," and indeed, always about duties that are unconditional—without which they would have no right to their intense emotions: they know this well! They therefore grasp at moral philosophies that advocate some form of categorical imperative, or they adopt a hefty dose of religion, as Mazzini did, for example. Because they want to be unconditionally trusted, it’s essential first for them to unconditionally trust themselves, grounded in some ultimate, indisputable command, inherently noble, as the ministers and instruments they wish to feel and declare themselves to be. Here we find the most natural, and often very influential, opponents of moral enlightenment and skepticism: but they are rare. On the other hand, there are always many opponents wherever self-interest promotes subjugation, while reputation and honor seem to reject it. Someone who feels dishonored at the idea of being the instrument of a prince, a party, a sect, or even of wealth (for example, as a descendant of a proud, old family), yet wants to be this instrument, or must be so in their own eyes and before the public—this person needs compelling principles they can appeal to at all times: principles of an unconditional ought, to which they can submit themselves without shame and can demonstrate that submission. All more refined servility clings to the categorical imperative and is the bitter enemy of those who wish to remove the unconditional nature of duty: propriety demands this from them, and not just propriety.

42

6.

Loss of Dignity.—Meditation has lost all its dignity of form; the ceremonial and solemn bearing of the meditative person have been made a mockery, and one would no longer endure a wise man of the old style. We think too hastily and on the way and while walking and in the midst of business of all kinds, even when we think on the most serious matters; we require little preparation, even little quiet:—it is as if each of us carried about an unceasingly revolving machine in his head, which still works, even under the most unfavourable circumstances. Formerly it was perceived in a person that on some occasion he wanted to think—it was perhaps the exception!—that he now wanted to become wiser and collected his mind on a thought: he put on a long face for it, as for a prayer, and arrested his step—nay, stood still for hours on the street when the thought "came"—on one or on two legs. It was thus "worthy of the affair"!

Loss of Dignity.—Meditation has lost all its formality; the ceremonial and serious demeanor of a meditative person has been ridiculed, and no one would tolerate a wise man from the past anymore. We think too quickly and while walking, amidst various tasks, even when considering the most serious issues; we need little preparation or even quiet. It’s as if each of us has a constantly running machine in our heads that continues to operate, even in the worst situations. In the past, it was evident when someone wanted to think—it was perhaps a rare occasion!—when they genuinely sought to become wiser and focused their mind on a thought: they would adopt a serious expression for it, like for a prayer, and pause in their steps—sometimes standing still for hours in the street when the thought "hit" them—on one leg or two. It was thus "worthy of the occasion"!

7.

Something for the Laborious.—He who at present wants to make moral questions a subject of study has an immense field of labour before him. All kinds of passions must be thought about singly, and followed singly throughout periods, peoples, great and insignificant individuals; all their rationality, all their valuations and elucidations of things, ought to come to light! Hitherto all that has given colour to existence has lacked a history: where would one find a history of love, of avarice, 43of envy, of conscience, of piety, of cruelty? Even a comparative history of law, as also of punishment, has hitherto been completely lacking. Have the different divisions of the day, the consequences of a regular appointment of the times for labour, feast, and repose, ever been made the object of investigation? Do we know the moral effects of the alimentary substances? Is there a philosophy of nutrition? (The ever-recurring outcry for and against vegetarianism proves that as yet there is no such philosophy!) Have the experiences with regard to communal living, for example, in monasteries, been collected? Has the dialectic of marriage and friendship been set forth? The customs of the learned, of trades-people, of artists, and of mechanics—have they already found their thinkers? There is so much to think of thereon! All that up till now has been considered as the "conditions of existence," of human beings, and all reason, passion and superstition in this consideration—have they been investigated to the end? The observation alone of the different degrees of development which the human impulses have attained, and could yet attain, according to the different moral climates, would furnish too much work for the most laborious; whole generations, and regular co-operating generations of the learned, would be needed in order to exhaust the points of view and the material here furnished. The same is true of the determining of the reasons for the differences of the moral climates ("on what account does this sun of a fundamental moral judgment and standard of highest value shine here—and 44that sun there?"). And there is again a new labour which points out the erroneousness of all these reasons, and determines the entire essence of the moral judgments hitherto made. Supposing all these labours to be accomplished, the most critical of all questions would then come into the foreground: whether science is in a position to furnish goals for human action, after it has proved that it can take them away and annihilate them—and then would be the time for a process of experimenting in which every kind of heroism could satisfy itself, an experimenting for centuries, which would put into the shade all the great labours and sacrifices of previous history. Science has not hitherto built its Cyclopic structures; for that also the time will come.

Something for the Laborious.—Anyone wanting to study moral questions today has an enormous amount of work ahead of them. They need to examine all kinds of passions independently and track them over time, across different cultures, and in both prominent and lesser-known individuals; we need to bring to light all their reasoning, values, and interpretations of the world! Up until now, everything that has given life its vibrancy has lacked a thorough history: where can we find a history of love, greed, envy, conscience, piety, or cruelty? There has also been a complete lack of a comparative history of laws and punishments. Have we ever investigated how dividing the day into periods for work, celebration, and rest affects us? Do we understand the moral implications of what we eat? Is there a philosophy of nutrition? (The ongoing debate over vegetarianism shows we still lack this philosophy!) Have we gathered experiences about communal living, such as in monasteries? Have we explored the dynamics of marriage and friendship? What about the customs of scholars, tradespeople, artists, and mechanics—have their thoughts been examined yet? There is so much to consider! Everything up to now regarded as the "conditions of existence" for humans, along with all associated reasoning, feelings, and superstitions—has this been thoroughly explored? Just observing the various stages of development that human impulses have reached, and can still reach, based on different moral contexts, would provide enough work for even the most diligent individuals; entire generations of scholars collaborating would be necessary to cover all the different perspectives and material available here. The same goes for identifying the reasons behind varying moral climates ("why does this foundational moral judgment and highest value shine here—and that one over there?"). This also creates new work that highlights the flaws in all these reasons and clarifies the nature of the moral judgments we've made so far. If all this work were accomplished, we would then face the most pressing question of all: can science provide goals for human action after demonstrating that it can also take them away and destroy them? That would then lead to an era of experimentation where all forms of heroism could find satisfaction, an experimentation over centuries that would eclipse all the significant efforts and sacrifices of history before. Science has yet to build its monumental achievements; that time will come too.

8.

Unconscious Virtues.—All qualities in a man of which he is conscious—and especially when he presumes that they are visible and evident to his environment also—are subject to quite other laws of development than those qualities which are unknown to him, or imperfectly known, which by their subtlety can also conceal themselves from the subtlest observer, and hide as it were behind nothing,—as in the case of the delicate sculptures on the scales of reptiles (it would be an error to suppose them an adornment or a defence—for one sees them only with the microscope; consequently, with an eye artificially strengthened to an extent of vision which similar animals, to which they might perhaps have meant adornment or defence, 45do not possess!) Our visible moral qualities, and especially our moral qualities believed to be visible, follow their own course,—and our invisible qualities of similar name, which in relation to others neither serve for adornment nor defence, also follow their own course: quite a different course probably, and with lines and refinements, and sculptures, which might perhaps give pleasure to a God with a divine microscope. We have, for example, our diligence, our ambition, our acuteness: all the world knows about them,—and besides, we have probably once more our diligence, our ambition, our acuteness; but for these—our reptile scales—the microscope has not yet been invented!—And here the adherents of instinctive morality will say, "Bravo! He at least regards unconscious virtues as possible—that suffices us!"—Oh, ye unexacting creatures!

Unconscious Virtues.—All the qualities in a person that they are aware of—and especially when they believe these qualities are obvious and apparent to those around them—are governed by different rules of growth than the qualities that are unknown to them, or only partially understood. These subtle qualities can even hide from the keenest observer, almost as if they are concealed behind nothing—similar to the fine details on the scales of reptiles (it’s a mistake to think of them as decoration or protection—since they can only be seen under a microscope; therefore, through an artificially enhanced vision that similar animals, who might have perceived them as decoration or protection, do not have!). Our visible moral qualities, and particularly those believed to be visible, follow their own path—and our invisible qualities of a similar nature, which serve neither as decoration nor protection for others, also follow their own path: likely a very different one, with lines, details, and intricacies that might delight a God with a divine microscope. For example, we have our diligence, our ambition, our sharpness: everyone knows about them,—and furthermore, we probably have once again our diligence, our ambition, our sharpness; but for these—our reptile scales—the microscope has not yet been invented!—And here the supporters of instinctive morality will say, "Bravo! At least he considers unconscious virtues as possible—that’s enough for us!"—Oh, you easygoing beings!

9.

Our Eruptions.—Numberless things which humanity acquired in its earlier stages, but so weakly and embryonically that it could not be noticed that they were acquired, are thrust suddenly into light long afterwards, perhaps after the lapse of centuries: they have in the interval become strong and mature. In some ages this or that talent, this or that virtue seems to be entirely lacking, as it is in some men; but let us wait only for the grandchildren and grandchildren's children, if we have time to wait,—they bring the interior of their grandfathers into the sun, that interior of which the grandfathers themselves were unconscious. The son, indeed, is often the betrayer of his father; 46the latter understands himself better since he has got his son. We have all hidden gardens and plantations in us; and by another simile, we are all growing volcanoes, which will have their hours of eruption:—how near or how distant this is, nobody of course knows, not even the good God.

Our Eruptions.—Countless things that humanity picked up in its early stages, but so weakly and incompletely that they went unnoticed, suddenly come to light much later, sometimes after centuries: in the meantime, they’ve grown strong and mature. In certain eras, this or that talent or virtue may seem completely absent, just like it is in some individuals; but let’s just wait for the grandchildren and great-grandchildren, if we have the time to wait—they reveal the inner lives of their grandfathers, lives of which the grandfathers themselves were unaware. The son often exposes his father; the latter understands himself better now that he has his son. We all have hidden gardens and plantations within us; and using another metaphor, we are all like growing volcanoes, which will have their moments of eruption: how soon or how far off that might be, nobody really knows, not even God.

10.

A Species of Atavism.—I like best to think of the rare men of an age as suddenly emerging aftershoots of past cultures, and of their persistent strength: like the atavism of a people and its civilisation:—there is thus still something in them to think of! They now seem strange, rare, and extraordinary: and he who feels these forces in himself has to foster them in face of a different, opposing world; he has to defend them, honour them, and rear them to maturity: and he either becomes a great man thereby, or a deranged and eccentric person, unless he should altogether break down betimes. Formerly these rare qualities were usual, and were consequently regarded as common: they did not distinguish people. Perhaps they were demanded and presupposed; it was impossible to become great with them, for indeed there was also no danger of becoming insane and solitary with them.—It is principally in the old-established families and castes of a people that such after-effects of old impulses present themselves, while there is no probability of such atavism where races, habits, and valuations change too rapidly. For the tempo of the evolutional forces in peoples implies just as much as in music; for our case an andante of 47evolution is absolutely necessary, as the tempo of a passionate and slow spirit:—and the spirit of conserving families is certainly of that sort.

A Species of Atavism.—I prefer to think of the rare individuals of an era as sudden offshoots of past cultures, embodying their enduring strength: like the atavism of a people and their civilization:—there's still something in them to reflect on! They now come across as strange, unique, and extraordinary: and anyone who feels these forces within themselves must nurture them in the face of a different, opposing world; they must defend them, honor them, and help them grow to maturity: and they either become a great person as a result, or an oddball and eccentric, unless they completely break down early on. In the past, these rare qualities were common and thus didn’t stand out. They were perhaps expected and taken for granted; it was impossible to achieve greatness with them, as there was also no risk of becoming insane and isolated because of them.—These aftereffects of old impulses mainly appear in the old-established families and castes of a people, while such atavism is unlikely where races, habits, and values change too quickly. The tempo of the evolutionary forces in societies implies just as much as it does in music; in our case, an andante of evolution is absolutely necessary, as well as the tempo of a passionate and slow spirit:—and the spirit of conserving families is certainly of that kind.

11.

Consciousness.—Consciousness is the last and latest development of the organic, and consequently also the most unfinished and least powerful of these developments. Innumerable mistakes originate out of consciousness, which, "in spite of fate," as Homer says, cause an animal or a man to break down earlier than might be necessary. If the conserving bond of the instincts were not very much more powerful, it would not generally serve as a regulator: by perverse judging and dreaming with open eyes, by superficiality and credulity, in short, just by consciousness, mankind would necessarily have broken down: or rather, without the former there would long ago have been nothing more of the latter! Before a function is fully formed and matured, it is a danger to the organism: all the better if it be then thoroughly tyrannised over! Consciousness is thus thoroughly tyrannised over—and not least by the pride in it! It is thought that here is the quintessence of man; that which is enduring, eternal, ultimate, and most original in him! Consciousness is regarded as a fixed, given magnitude! Its growth and intermittences are denied! It is accepted as the "unity of the organism"!—This ludicrous overvaluation and misconception of consciousness, has as its result the great utility, that a too rapid maturing of it has thereby been hindered. Because men believed that 48they already possessed consciousness, they gave themselves very little trouble to acquire it—and even now it is not otherwise! It is still an entirely new problem just dawning on the human eye and hardly yet plainly recognisable: to embody knowledge in ourselves and make it instinctive,—a problem which is only seen by those who have grasped the fact that hitherto our errors alone have been embodied in us, and that all our consciousness is relative to errors!

Consciousness.—Consciousness is the latest development of living beings and, consequently, the most incomplete and least powerful of these developments. Countless mistakes arise from consciousness, which "despite fate," as Homer puts it, cause an animal or a person to fail sooner than necessary. If the protective bond of instincts weren’t much stronger, it wouldn’t generally act as a regulator: through faulty judgment and daydreaming, through superficial thinking and being gullible, in short, through consciousness, humanity would have inevitably fallen apart: or rather, without the former, the latter would have ceased to exist long ago! Before a function is fully formed and mature, it poses a risk to the organism: it’s best if it's kept in check! Consciousness is thus thoroughly controlled—and not least by the pride associated with it! People think this is the essence of humanity; that which is lasting, eternal, ultimate, and most original in them! Consciousness is viewed as a fixed, predetermined quantity! Its development and fluctuations are ignored! It’s accepted as the "unity of the organism"!—This ridiculous overestimation and misunderstanding of consciousness has resulted in the great benefit that its premature maturation has been prevented. Because people believed they already had consciousness, they put in very little effort to develop it—and even now, it’s no different! It remains a completely new problem that is just beginning to emerge and is hardly recognized: to internalize knowledge and make it instinctive—a problem only acknowledged by those who understand that until now our mistakes have been what’s embedded in us, and that all our consciousness relates to mistakes!

12.

The Goal of Science.—What? The ultimate goal of science is to create the most pleasure possible to man, and the least possible pain? But what if pleasure and pain should be so closely connected that he who wants the greatest possible amount of the one must also have the greatest possible amount of the other,—that he who wants to experience the "heavenly high jubilation,"[7] must also be ready to be "sorrowful unto death"?(ref. same footnote) And it is so, perhaps! The Stoics at least believed it was so, and they were consistent when they wished to have the least possible pleasure, in order to have the least possible pain from life. (When one uses the expression: "The virtuous man is the happiest," it is as much the sign-board of the school for the masses, as a casuistic subtlety for the subtle.) At present also ye have still the choice: either the least possible pain, in short painlessness—and after all, socialists and politicians of all parties could not honourably promise more to their people,—or the greatest possible amount of pain, as the price of the growth of a fullness of refined delights and enjoyments rarely tasted hitherto! If ye decide for the former, if ye therefore want to depress and minimise man's capacity for pain, well, ye must also depress and minimise his capacity for enjoyment. In fact, one can further the one as well as the other goal by science! Perhaps science is as yet best known by its capacity for depriving man of enjoyment, and making him colder, more statuesque, and more Stoical. But it might also turn out to be the great pain-bringer!—And then, perhaps, its counteracting force would be discovered simultaneously, its immense capacity for making new sidereal worlds of enjoyment beam forth!

The Goal of Science.—What? The ultimate goal of science is to create as much pleasure as possible for humanity, and as little pain as possible? But what if pleasure and pain are so interconnected that whoever wants to experience the most of one must also experience the most of the other—that those who seek "heavenly high jubilation" must also be prepared to feel "sorrowful unto death"?(ref. same footnote) And maybe it is so! The Stoics certainly believed it was true, and they were consistent in trying to minimize pleasure to minimize pain in life. (When someone says, "The virtuous man is the happiest," it serves as both a billboard for the masses and a clever argument for those who think deeply.) Currently, you still have a choice: either the least possible pain, which means painlessness—and after all, socialists and politicians from all parties cannot honestly promise more than that to their people—or the greatest possible amount of pain, in exchange for the development of a richness of refined pleasures and experiences that are rarely encountered! If you choose the former, and therefore want to lessen and minimize humanity’s capacity for pain, then you must also lessen and minimize their capacity for enjoyment. In fact, you can advance both goals through science! Perhaps science is currently best known for its ability to deprive people of enjoyment, making them colder, more statue-like, and more Stoic. But it could also end up being the great source of pain!—And then, perhaps, its balancing force would be found at the same time, revealing its vast potential to create new realms of enjoyment!

49

13.

The Theory of the Sense of Power.—We exercise our power over others by doing them good or by doing them ill—that is all we care for! Doing ill to those on whom we have to make our power felt; for pain is a far more sensitive means for that purpose than pleasure:—pain always asks concerning the cause, while pleasure is inclined to keep within itself and not look backward. Doing good and being kind to those who are in any way already dependent on us (that is, who are accustomed to think of us as their raison d'être); we want to increase their power, because we thus increase our own; or we want to show 50them the advantage there is in being in our power,—they thus become more contented with their position, and more hostile to the enemies of our power and readier to contend with them. If we make sacrifices in doing good or in doing ill, it does not alter the ultimate value of our actions; even if we stake our life in the cause, as martyrs for the sake of our church, it is a sacrifice to our longing for power, or for the purpose of conserving our sense of power. He who under these circumstances feels that he "is in possession of truth," how many possessions does he not let go, in order to preserve this feeling! What does he not throw overboard, in order to keep himself "up,"—that is to say, above the others who lack the "truth"! Certainly the condition we are in when we do ill is seldom so pleasant, so purely pleasant, as that in which we practise kindness,—it is an indication that we still lack power, or it betrays ill-humour at this defect in us; it brings with it new dangers and uncertainties as to the power we already possess, and clouds our horizon by the prospect of revenge, scorn, punishment and failure. Perhaps only those most susceptible to the sense of power, and eager for it, will prefer to impress the seal of power on the resisting individual,—those to whom the sight of the already subjugated person as the object of benevolence is a burden and a tedium. It is a question how a person is accustomed to season his life; it is a matter of taste whether a person would rather have the slow or the sudden, the safe or the dangerous and daring increase of power,—he seeks this or that seasoning always 51according to his temperament. An easy booty is something contemptible to proud natures; they have an agreeable sensation only at the sight of men of unbroken spirit who could be enemies to them, and similarly, also, at the sight of all not easily accessible possession; they are often hard toward the sufferer, for he is not worthy of their effort or their pride,—but they show themselves so much the more courteous towards their equals, with whom strife and struggle would in any case be full of honour, if at any time an occasion for it should present itself. It is under the agreeable feelings of this perspective that the members of the knightly caste have habituated themselves to exquisite courtesy toward one another.—Pity is the most pleasant feeling in those who have not much pride, and have no prospect of great conquests: the easy booty—and that is what every sufferer is—is for them an enchanting thing. Pity is said to be the virtue of the gay lady.

The Theory of the Sense of Power.—We exert our power over others by either doing good or causing harm—that’s all that matters to us! Causing harm to those we want to demonstrate our power to; pain is a much more effective way to achieve this than pleasure: pain always prompts questions about its cause, while pleasure tends to be self-contained and doesn’t look back. Doing good and being kind to those who are in any way dependent on us (that is, those who see us as their raison d'être); we want to enhance their power because it, in turn, boosts our own; or we want to show them the benefits of being under our influence—they become more satisfied with their situation and more hostile toward the enemies of our power, making them more willing to fight back. Even if we sacrifice for the sake of doing good or causing harm, it doesn’t change the ultimate significance of our actions; even if we risk our lives in the name of a cause, like martyrs for our faith, it’s still a sacrifice for our desire for power or to maintain our sense of power. Those who, in these circumstances, believe they "possess the truth," how much do they give up just to maintain that feeling! What do they not discard to keep themselves "above" those who lack the "truth"! The state of mind we experience when we inflict harm is rarely as pleasant or purely enjoyable as the state we are in when practicing kindness—it indicates that we still lack power or reveals our frustration with that deficiency; it brings new dangers and uncertainties regarding the power we already have, clouding our outlook with thoughts of revenge, scorn, punishment, and failure. Perhaps it’s only those who are most sensitive to the sense of power and eager for it who prefer to impose their power on a resistant individual—those for whom seeing a subjugated person as an object of kindness feels burdensome and tedious. It ultimately depends on how a person is used to seasoning their life; it’s a matter of preference whether someone would rather have a slow or sudden, safe or dangerous and daring expansion of power—they seek one or the other depending on their temperament. Easy victories are looked down upon by proud individuals; they only find satisfaction in seeing people with unbroken spirits who could stand against them, and similarly, in anything that isn’t easily attainable. These individuals can often be harsh toward those who are suffering, as they see them as unworthy of their effort or pride—but they tend to be much more courteous towards their equals, where conflict and struggle would be inherently honorable if an opportunity arises. It is with these agreeable sentiments that members of the knightly class have trained themselves to be extremely polite to one another. Pity is the most pleasant feeling for those with little pride and no expectations of significant victories: the easy targets—and every sufferer is one—are enchanting to them. Pity is often regarded as the virtue of the charming lady.

14.

What is called Love.—The lust of property and love: what different associations each of these ideas evoke!—and yet it might be the same impulse twice named: on the one occasion disparaged from the standpoint of those already possessing (in whom the impulse has attained something of repose, and who are now apprehensive for the safety of their "possession"); on the other occasion viewed from the standpoint of the unsatisfied and thirsty, and therefore glorified as "good." Our 52love of our neighbour,—is it not a striving after new property? And similarly our love of knowledge, of truth; and in general all the striving after novelties? We gradually become satiated with the old, the securely possessed, and again stretch out our hands; even the finest landscape in which we live for three months is no longer certain of our love, and any kind of more distant coast excites our covetousness: the possession for the most part becomes smaller through possessing. Our pleasure in ourselves seeks to maintain itself, by always transforming something new into ourselves,—that is just possessing. To become satiated with a possession, that is to become satiated with ourselves. (One can also suffer from excess,—even the desire to cast away, to share out, can assume the honourable name of "love.") When we see any one suffering, we willingly utilise the opportunity then afforded to take possession of him; the beneficent and sympathetic man, for example, does this; he also calls the desire for new possession awakened in him, by the name of "love," and has enjoyment in it, as in a new acquisition suggesting itself to him. The love of the sexes, however, betrays itself most plainly as the striving after possession: the lover wants the unconditioned, sole possession of the person longed for by him; he wants just as absolute power over her soul as over her body; he wants to be loved solely, and to dwell and rule in the other soul as what is highest and most to be desired. When one considers that this means precisely to exclude all the world from a precious possession, a happiness, and an enjoyment; when one considers 53that the lover has in view the impoverishment and privation of all other rivals, and would like to become the dragon of his golden hoard, as the most inconsiderate and selfish of all "conquerors" and exploiters; when one considers finally that to the lover himself, the whole world besides appears indifferent, colourless, and worthless, and that he is ready to make every sacrifice, disturb every arrangement, and put every other interest behind his own,—one is verily surprised that this ferocious lust of property and injustice of sexual love should have been glorified and deified to such an extent at all times; yea, that out of this love the conception of love as the antithesis of egoism should have been derived, when it is perhaps precisely the most unqualified expression of egoism. Here, evidently, the non-possessors and desirers have determined the usage of language,—there were, of course, always too many of them. Those who have been favoured with much possession and satiety, have, to be sure, dropped a word now and then about the "raging demon," as, for instance, the most lovable and most beloved of all the Athenians—Sophocles; but Eros always laughed at such revilers,—they were always his greatest favourites.—There is, of course, here and there on this terrestrial sphere a kind of sequel to love, in which that covetous longing of two persons for one another has yielded to a new desire and covetousness, to a common, higher thirst for a superior ideal standing above them: but who knows this love? Who has experienced it? Its right name is friendship.

What is called Love.—The desire for possessions and love: the different feelings each of these ideas brings to mind!—yet they might be just the same impulse referred to in two ways: on one hand, criticized by those who already have (who feel a sense of comfort and are now worried about protecting their "possession"); on the other hand, viewed from the perspective of those who are unfulfilled and longing, and thus celebrated as "good." Our love for our neighbors,—isn’t it just a pursuit of new possessions? Similarly, our love of knowledge, truth, and all our desires for new experiences? We gradually grow tired of what we already have, what we hold securely, and reach out for more; even the most beautiful scenery we enjoy for three months no longer guarantees our affection, and any distant shore stirs our desire: possession often diminishes with having. Our enjoyment of ourselves tries to sustain itself by always turning something new into ourselves,—that’s what possessing is. To become bored with a possession is to become bored with ourselves. (One can also suffer from having too much,—even the desire to let go, to share, can wear the noble name of "love.") When we see someone in pain, we gladly use that chance to possess them; the kind and caring person, for example, does this; he also refers to the desire for new possession that arises in him as "love," and finds pleasure in it, as if in a new acquisition. The love between the sexes, however, reveals itself most clearly as a pursuit of possession: the lover wants the unqualified, sole claim over the person he desires; he wants total control over her soul just as much as over her body; he wants to be loved exclusively and to dominate the other's soul as what is highest and most coveted. When you think about the fact that this means exactly to exclude the entire world from a valuable possession, a happiness, and a pleasure; when you consider that the lover aims for the diminishing and deprivation of all other competitors, wanting to become the dragon of his golden treasure, the most reckless and selfish of all "conquerors" and exploiters; when you finally recognize that to the lover himself, everything else seems indifferent, dull, and worthless, and that he is willing to make any sacrifice, disrupt every plan, and place every other interest behind his own,—one is truly astonished that this fierce desire for possession and the injustice of romantic love have been celebrated and revered throughout time; indeed, that from this love the idea of love as the opposite of selfishness has emerged, when it might actually be the clearest expression of selfishness. Here, clearly, those who do not have and desire have set the terms of the language,—there have always been too many of them. Those who have enjoyed a great deal of possession and fulfillment have occasionally mentioned the “raging demon,” as did the most beloved of all Athenians—Sophocles; but Eros always laughed at such critics,—they were always his greatest admirers.—There is, of course, here and there on this planet a kind of sequel to love, where that mutual longing between two people has given way to a new desire and craving, a shared, higher thirst for a superior ideal that stands above them: but who knows this love? Who has felt it? Its true name is friendship.

54

15.

Out of the Distance.—This mountain makes the whole district which it dominates charming in every way, and full of significance: after we have said this to ourselves for the hundredth time, we are so irrationally and so gratefully disposed towards it, as the giver of this charm, that we fancy it must itself be the most charming thing in the district—and so we climb it, and are undeceived. All of a sudden, it itself, and the whole landscape around and under us, is as it were disenchanted; we had forgotten that many a greatness, like many a goodness, wants only to be seen at a certain distance, and entirely from below, not from above,—it is thus only that it operates. Perhaps you know men in your neighbourhood who can only look at themselves from a certain distance to find themselves at all endurable, or attractive and enlivening; they are to be dissuaded from self-knowledge.

Out of the Distance.—This mountain makes the whole area it overlooks incredibly charming and meaningful. After we’ve reminded ourselves of this for the hundredth time, we feel irrationally and gratefully attached to it as the source of this charm, convincing ourselves it must be the most charming thing in the area. So, we decide to climb it, only to be disappointed. Suddenly, both the mountain and the entire landscape around us feel disenchanted. We had forgotten that many great things, like many good things, only reveal their true nature when viewed from a certain distance and completely from below, not from above—it’s only then that they work. Perhaps you know people in your area who can only stand to see themselves from a certain distance to appear bearable, or appealing and full of life; they should be discouraged from self-reflection.

16.

Across the Plank.—One must be able to dissimulate in intercourse with persons who are ashamed of their feelings; they experience a sudden aversion towards anyone who surprises them in a state of tender, or enthusiastic and high-running feeling, as if he had seen their secrets. If one wants to be kind to them in such moments one should make them laugh, or say some kind of cold, playful wickedness:—their feeling thereby congeals, and they are again self-possessed. But I give the moral before the story.—We were once 55on a time so near one another in the course of our lives, that nothing more seemed to hinder our friendship and fraternity, and there was merely a small plank between us. While you were just about to step on it, I asked you: "Do you want to come across the plank to me?" But then you did not want to come any longer; and when I again entreated, you were silent. Since then mountains and torrents, and whatever separates and alienates, have interposed between us, and even if we wanted to come to one another, we could no longer do so! When, however, you now remember that small plank, you have no longer words,—but merely sobs and amazement.

Across the Plank.—One must know how to hide their true feelings when dealing with people who are ashamed of their emotions; they feel a sudden aversion towards anyone who catches them in a moment of tenderness or high spirits, as if that person has uncovered their secrets. If you want to be kind to them during such times, you should make them laugh or say something cold and playfully mischievous: this will cool their feelings, and they’ll regain their composure. But I'm outlining the moral before the story.—There was once a time when we were so close in our lives that nothing seemed to stand in the way of our friendship, with just a small plank separating us. As you were about to step onto it, I asked you, "Do you want to come across the plank to me?" But then you hesitated, and when I asked again, you were silent. Since then, mountains and torrents, and everything that separates and distances us, have come between us, and even if we wanted to reach out to each other, we can no longer do so! Now, when you think of that small plank, you have no words—just sobs and disbelief.

17.

Motivation of Poverty.—We cannot, to be sure, by any artifice make a rich and richly-flowing virtue out of a poor one, but we can gracefully enough reinterpret its poverty into necessity, so that its aspect no longer gives pain to us, and we do not make any reproachful faces at fate on account of it. It is thus that the wise gardener does, who puts the tiny streamlet of his garden into the arms of a fountain-nymph, and thus motivates the poverty:—and who would not like him need the nymphs!

Motivation of Poverty.—We can't, of course, magically turn a poor virtue into a rich and flowing one, but we can skillfully reinterpret its lack into a necessity, so its appearance no longer causes us distress, and we don’t blame fate for it. This is how a wise gardener operates, who channels the small stream in his garden into the arms of a fountain-nymph, thus giving meaning to the lack:—and who wouldn’t, like him, appreciate the nymphs!

18.

Ancient Pride.—The ancient savour of nobility is lacking in us, because the ancient slave is lacking in our sentiment. A Greek of noble descent found such immense intermediate stages, and such a distance betwixt his elevation and that ultimate 56baseness, that he could hardly even see the slave plainly: even Plato no longer saw him entirely. It is otherwise with us, accustomed as we are to the doctrine of the equality of men, although not to the equality itself. A being who has not the free disposal of himself and has not got leisure,—that is not regarded by us as anything contemptible; there is perhaps too much of this kind of slavishness in each of us, in accordance with the conditions of our social order and activity, which are fundamentally different from those of the ancients.—The Greek philosopher went through life with the secret feeling that there were many more slaves than people supposed—that is to say, that every one was a slave who was not a philosopher. His pride was puffed up when he considered that even the mightiest of the earth were thus to be looked upon as slaves. This pride is also unfamiliar to us, and impossible; the word "slave" has not its full force for us even in simile.

Ancient Pride.—We lack the ancient sense of nobility because we don't have the mindset of the ancient slave. A Greek of noble descent recognized such vast differences and distances between his status and that ultimate lowliness that he could hardly even see the slave clearly: even Plato could no longer fully see him. It's different for us, as we are used to the idea of equality among people, even if we don't experience true equality. A person who lacks autonomy and free time is not regarded as contemptible by us; there might be too much of this kind of subservience in each of us, shaped by the nature of our social order and activities, which are fundamentally different from those of the ancients. The Greek philosopher lived with the quiet understanding that there were many more slaves than people realized—that is, everyone who wasn't a philosopher was a slave. His pride swelled at the thought that even the most powerful people on earth could be seen as slaves. This kind of pride is strange to us, and impossible; the word "slave" doesn't carry its full weight for us, even in metaphor.

19.

Evil.—Test the life of the best and most productive men and nations, and ask yourselves whether a tree which is to grow proudly heavenward can dispense with bad weather and tempests: whether disfavour and opposition from without, whether every kind of hatred, jealousy, stubbornness, distrust, severity, greed, and violence do not belong to the favouring circumstances without which a great growth even in virtue is hardly possible? The poison by which the weaker nature 57is destroyed is strengthening to the strong individual—and he does not call it poison.

Evil.—Examine the lives of the best and most successful individuals and nations, and consider whether a tree that is meant to reach towards the sky can thrive without facing bad weather and storms. Reflect on whether external disfavor and opposition, along with all forms of hatred, jealousy, stubbornness, distrust, severity, greed, and violence, are not part of the supportive conditions necessary for significant growth, even in virtue. The poison that harms the weaker nature actually strengthens the strong individual—and they don’t see it as poison.

20.

Dignity of Folly.—Several millenniums further on in the path of the last century!—and in everything that man does the highest prudence will be exhibited: but just thereby prudence will have lost all its dignity. It will then, sure enough, be necessary to be prudent, but it will also be so usual and common, that a more fastidious taste will feel this necessity as vulgarity. And just as a tyranny of truth and science would be in a position to raise the value of falsehood, a tyranny of prudence could force into prominence a new species of nobleness. To be noble—that might then mean, perhaps, to be capable of follies.

Dignity of Folly.—Several millennia later in the journey from the last century!—and in everything humans do, the utmost caution will be displayed: but because of that, caution will lose all its dignity. It will certainly be necessary to be prudent, but it will also be so ordinary and common that a more discerning taste will see this necessity as vulgarity. And just as a domination of truth and science could elevate the value of falsehood, a domination of caution could bring forth a new kind of nobility. To be noble—perhaps that would then mean being able to embrace follies.

21.

To the Teachers of Unselfishness.—The virtues of a man are called good, not in respect of the results they have for himself, but in respect of the results which we expect therefrom for ourselves and for society:—we have all along had very little unselfishness, very little "non-egoism" in our praise of the virtues! For otherwise it could not but have been seen that the virtues (such as diligence, obedience, chastity, piety, justice) are mostly injurious to their possessors, as impulses which rule in them too vehemently and ardently, and do not want to be kept in co-ordination with the other impulses by the reason. If you have a virtue, an actual, perfect virtue (and not merely a kind of 58impulse towards virtue!)—you are its victim! But your neighbour praises your virtue precisely on that account! One praises the diligent man though he injures his sight, or the originality and freshness of his spirit, by his diligence; the youth is honoured and regretted who has "worn himself out by work," because one passes the judgment that "for society as a whole the loss of the best individual is only a small sacrifice! A pity that this sacrifice should be necessary! A much greater pity, it is true, if the individual should think differently, and regard his preservation and development as more important than his work in the service of society!" And so one regrets this youth, not on his own account, but because a devoted instrument, regardless of self—a so-called "good man," has been lost to society by his death. Perhaps one further considers the question, whether it would not have been more advantageous for the interests of society if he had laboured with less disregard of himself, and had preserved himself longer,—indeed, one readily admits an advantage therefrom, but one esteems the other advantage, namely, that a sacrifice has been made, and that the disposition of the sacrificial animal has once more been obviously endorsed—as higher and more enduring. It is accordingly, on the one part, the instrumental character in the virtues which is praised when the virtues are praised, and on the other part, the blind, ruling impulse in every virtue, which refuses to let itself be kept within bounds by the general advantage to the individual; in short, what is praised is the unreason in the virtues, in consequence 59of which the individual allows himself to be transformed into a function of the whole. The praise of the virtues is the praise of something which is privately injurious to the individual; it is praise of impulses which deprive man of his noblest self-love, and the power to take the best care of himself. To be sure, for the teaching and embodying of virtuous habits a series of effects of virtue are displayed, which make it appear that virtue and private advantage are closely related,—and there is in fact such a relationship! Blindly furious diligence, for example, the typical virtue of an instrument, is represented as the way to riches and honour, and as the most beneficial antidote to tedium and passion: but people are silent concerning its danger, its greatest dangerousness. Education proceeds in this manner throughout: it endeavours, by a series of enticements and advantages, to determine the individual to a certain mode of thinking and acting, which, when it has become habit, impulse and passion, rules in him and over him, in opposition to his ultimate advantage, but "for the general good." How often do I see that blindly furious diligence does indeed create riches and honours, but at the same time deprives the organs of the refinement by virtue of which alone an enjoyment of riches and honours is possible; so that really the main expedient for combating tedium and passion, simultaneously blunts the senses and makes the spirit refractory towards new stimuli! (The busiest of all ages—our age—does not know how to make anything out of its great diligence and wealth, except always 60more and more wealth, and more and more diligence; there is even more genius needed for laying out wealth than for acquiring it!—Well, we shall have our "grandchildren"!) If the education succeeds, every virtue of the individual is a public utility, and a private disadvantage in respect to the highest private end,—probably some psycho-æsthetic stunting, or even premature dissolution. One should consider successively from the same standpoint the virtues of obedience, chastity, piety, and justice. The praise of the unselfish, self-sacrificing, virtuous person—he, consequently, who does not expend his whole energy and reason for his own conservation, development, elevation, furtherance and augmentation of power, but lives as regards himself unassumingly and thoughtlessly, perhaps even indifferently or ironically,—this praise has in any case not originated out of the spirit of unselfishness! The "neighbour" praises unselfishness because he profits by it! If the neighbour were "unselfishly" disposed himself, he would reject that destruction of power, that injury for his advantage, he would thwart such inclinations in their origin, and above all he would manifest his unselfishness just by not giving it a good name! The fundamental contradiction in that morality which at present stands in high honour is here indicated: the motives to such a morality are in antithesis to its principle! That with which this morality wishes to prove itself, refutes it out of its criterion of what is moral! The maxim, "Thou shalt renounce thyself and offer thyself as a sacrifice," in order not to be inconsistent with its 61own morality, could only be decreed by a being who himself renounced his own advantage thereby, and who perhaps in the required self-sacrifice of individuals brought about his own dissolution. As soon, however, as the neighbour (or society) recommended altruism on account of its utility, the precisely antithetical proposition, "Thou shalt seek thy advantage even at the expense of everybody else," was brought into use: accordingly, "thou shalt," and "thou shalt not," are preached in one breath!

To the Teachers of Unselfishness.—The virtues of a person are referred to as good not because of the results they bring for themselves, but because of the results we expect for ourselves and for society:—we’ve always had very little unselfishness, very little "non-egoism" in our praise of virtues! Otherwise, it would have been clear that virtues (like hard work, obedience, purity, faith, and justice) often turn out to be harmful to those who possess them, as they can dominate them too strongly and refuse to be balanced with other impulses by reason. If you have a virtue, a true, perfect virtue (not just a vague 58 inclination toward virtue!)—you are its victim! But your neighbor praises your virtue specifically for that reason! People commend the diligent individual even if his hard work harms his eyesight or dulls his spirit; the young person is honored and mourned for "wearing himself out through work," because there’s a belief that "for society as a whole, losing the best individual is just a small sacrifice! It’s unfortunate that this sacrifice is necessary! It would be much worse, of course, if the individual thought otherwise and valued his own preservation and growth more than his societal contributions!" And so we lament this young man, not for his own sake, but because a devoted instrument, a so-called "good person," has been lost to society due to his death. Perhaps one might further consider if it would have been better for society if he had worked with more self-care and stayed with us longer,—one easily admits that this would be beneficial, but still values the other benefit, namely, that a sacrifice has been made, and the spirit of self-sacrifice has once again been clearly affirmed—as higher and more lasting. Thus, on one hand, it’s the instrumental nature of the virtues that is praised when we praise virtues, and on the other hand, the blind, dominating impulse in each virtue that refuses to be kept in check by the overall good for the individual; in short, what is celebrated is the unreason in the virtues, which causes the individual to become a function of the whole. Praising virtues equates to praising something that privately harms the individual; it’s praise for impulses that strip one of their noblest self-regard and their ability to take care of themselves effectively. Indeed, for the teaching and cultivation of virtuous habits, a series of benefits of virtue are shown, making it seem like virtue and personal gain are closely related—and there is, in fact, such a relationship! Blindly furious diligence, for example, the archetypal virtue of an instrument, is portrayed as the path to wealth and honor and as the most effective remedy for boredom and passion: but people ignore its dangers, its greatest dangers. Education works this way throughout: it seeks to entice individuals into a certain way of thinking and acting, which, once it becomes habit, impulse, and passion, dominates them and governs them, against their ultimate benefit, but "for the common good." How often do I see that blindly furious diligence does indeed create wealth and honor, but at the same time dulls the senses which are essential for enjoying wealth and honor; so that really the main method for combating boredom and passion also numbs the senses and makes the spirit resistant to new experiences! (The most industrious of all times—our time—does not know how to make anything out of its vast diligence and wealth except more and more wealth and increasing diligence; it takes even more genius to manage wealth than to acquire it!—Well, we shall have our "grandchildren"!) If education succeeds, every virtue of the individual becomes a public benefit, but a private disadvantage regarding the highest personal aim—likely some psycho-aesthetic hindrance, or even premature decline. One should systematically consider the virtues of obedience, purity, faith, and justice from the same perspective. The praise of the unselfish, self-sacrificing, virtuous person—who doesn’t dedicate all their energy and reasoning to their own preservation, growth, advancement, and enhancement of power, but lives unassumingly and thoughtlessly concerning themselves, perhaps even indifferently or ironically—this praise certainly did not arise from a spirit of unselfishness! The "neighbor" praises unselfishness because they benefit from it! If the neighbor were "unselfishly" inclined themselves, they would reject that diminishment of power, that harm for their benefit; they would circumvent such inclinations right at their source, and most importantly, they would show their unselfishness by not glorifying it! The fundamental contradiction in that morality which currently enjoys high regard is illustrated here: the motives for such morality stand in opposition to its principle! What this morality seeks to affirm refutes itself based on its criterion of what is moral! The maxim, "Thou shalt renounce thyself and offer thyself as a sacrifice," to remain consistent with its own morality, could only be spoken by a being who himself renounced his own advantage, and who perhaps in demanding self-sacrifice from individuals led to his own dissolution. However, as soon as the neighbor (or society) advocates altruism for its utility, the exact contradictory statement, "Thou shalt seek thy own advantage even at the expense of everyone else," comes into play: therefore, "thou shalt," and "thou shalt not," are preached simultaneously!

22.

L'Ordre du Jour pour le Roi.—The day commences: let us begin to arrange for this day the business and fêtes of our most gracious lord, who at present is still pleased to repose. His Majesty has bad weather to-day: we shall be careful not to call it bad; we shall not speak of the weather,—but we shall go through to-day's business somewhat more ceremoniously and make the fêtes somewhat more festive than would otherwise be necessary. His Majesty may perhaps even be sick: we shall give the last good news of the evening at breakfast, the arrival of M. Montaigne, who knows how to joke so pleasantly about his sickness,—he suffers from stone. We shall receive several persons (persons!—what would that old inflated frog, who will be among them, say, if he heard this word! "I am no person," he would say, "but always the thing itself")—and the reception will last longer than is pleasant to anybody; a sufficient reason for telling about the poet who wrote over his door, "He who 62enters here will do me an honour; he who does not—a favour."—That is, forsooth, saying a discourteous thing in a courteous manner! And perhaps this poet is quite justified on his part in being discourteous; they say that the rhymes are better than the rhymester. Well, let him still make many of them, and withdraw himself as much as possible from the world: and that is doubtless the significance of his well-bred rudeness! A prince, on the other hand, is always of more value than his "verse," even when—but what are we about? We gossip, and the whole court believes that we have already been at work and racked our brains: there is no light to be seen earlier than that which burns in our window.—Hark! Was that not the bell? The devil! The day and the dance commence, and we do not know our rounds! We must then improvise,—all the world improvises its day. To-day, let us for once do like all the world!—And therewith vanished my wonderful morning dream, probably owing to the violent strokes of the tower-clock, which just then announced the fifth hour with all the importance which is peculiar to it. It seems to me that, on this occasion, the God of dreams wanted to make merry over my habits,—it is my habit to commence the day by arranging it properly, to make it endurable for myself, and it is possible that I may often have done this too formally, and too much like a prince.

The Agenda for the King.—The day begins: let's start organizing today's activities and celebrations for our most gracious lord, who is still happily resting. His Majesty is facing bad weather today: we’ll be careful not to call it bad; we won’t mention the weather at all—but we’ll approach today’s tasks with a bit more ceremony and make the celebrations a bit more festive than necessary. His Majesty might even be unwell: we’ll share the latest good news at breakfast, the arrival of M. Montaigne, who knows how to joke so charmingly about his illness—he's dealing with stones. We’ll be receiving several guests (guests!—what would that pompous old frog, who’ll be among them, say if he heard this term? "I am no guest," he would insist, "but always the thing itself")— and the reception will last longer than anyone would like; a good reason to mention the poet who put up a sign over his door, "He who enters here honors me; he who does not—does me a favor."—That is frankly saying something rude in a polite way! And perhaps this poet is justified in being rude; they say the rhymes are better than the poet. Well, let him keep making them and distance himself from the world as much as possible: and that’s probably the point of his well-mannered rudeness! A prince, on the other hand, is always worth more than his "poetry," even when—but what are we doing? We’re just chatting, and the whole court thinks we’ve already been hard at work: no light appears before that which shines from our window.—Wait! Was that the bell? Oh no! The day and the dance begin, and we don’t know our routine! We must improvise—everyone in the world improvises their day. Today, let’s do what everyone else does!—And just like that, my wonderful morning dream vanished, probably due to the loud clangs of the tower clock, which just then announced the fifth hour with all the gravity it carries. It seems that, on this occasion, the God of dreams decided to poke fun at my routine—it’s my habit to start the day by organizing it properly, to make it bearable for myself, and I might have often gone about this too formally, and too much like a prince.

23.

The Characteristics of Corruption.—Let us observe the following characteristics in that condition of 63society from time to time necessary, which is designated by the word "corruption." Immediately upon the appearance of corruption anywhere, a motley superstition gets the upper hand, and the hitherto universal belief of a people becomes colourless and impotent in comparison with it; for superstition is freethinking of the second rank,—he who gives himself over to it selects certain forms and formulæ which appeal to him, and permits himself a right of choice. The superstitious man is always much more of a "person," in comparison with the religious man, and a superstitious society will be one in which there are many individuals, and a delight in individuality. Seen from this standpoint superstition always appears as a progress in comparison with belief, and as a sign that the intellect becomes more independent and claims to have its rights. Those who reverence the old religion and the religious disposition then complain of corruption,—they have hitherto also determined the usage of language, and have given a bad repute to superstition, even among the freest spirits. Let us learn that it is a symptom of enlightenment.—Secondly, a society in which corruption takes a hold is blamed for effeminacy: for the appreciation of war, and the delight in war perceptibly diminish in such a society, and the conveniences of life are now just as eagerly sought after as were military and gymnastic honours formerly. But one is accustomed to overlook the fact that the old national energy and national passion, which acquired a magnificent splendour in war and in the tourney, has now transferred itself into innumerable private 64passions, and has merely become less visible; indeed in periods of "corruption" the quantity and quality of the expended energy of a people is probably greater than ever, and the individual spends it lavishly, to such an extent as could not be done formerly—he was not then rich enough to do so! And thus it is precisely in times of "effeminacy" that tragedy runs at large in and out of doors, it is then that ardent love and ardent hatred are born, and the flame of knowledge flashes heavenward in full blaze.—Thirdly, as if in amends for the reproach of superstition and effeminacy, it is customary to say of such periods of corruption that they are milder, and that cruelty has then greatly diminished in comparison with the older, more credulous, and stronger period. But to this praise I am just as little able to assent as to that reproach: I only grant so much—namely, that cruelty now becomes more refined, and its older forms are henceforth counter to the taste; but the wounding and torturing by word and look reaches its highest development in times of corruption,—it is now only that wickedness is created, and the delight in wickedness. The men of the period of corruption are witty and calumnious; they know that there are yet other ways of murdering than by the dagger and the ambush—they know also that all that is well said is believed in.—Fourthly, it is when "morals decay" that those beings whom one calls tyrants first make their appearance; they are the forerunners of the individual, and as it were early matured firstlings. Yet a little while, and this fruit of fruits hangs ripe and yellow on the tree of 65a people,—and only for the sake of such fruit did this tree exist! When the decay has reached its worst, and likewise the conflict of all sorts of tyrants, there always arises the Cæsar, the final tyrant, who puts an end to the exhausted struggle for sovereignty, by making the exhaustedness work for him. In his time the individual is usually most mature, and consequently the "culture" is highest and most fruitful, but not on his account nor through him: although the men of highest culture love to flatter their Cæsar by pretending that they are his creation. The truth, however, is that they need quietness externally, because internally they have disquietude and labour. In these times bribery and treason are at their height: for the love of the ego, then first discovered, is much more powerful than the love of the old, used-up, hackneyed "fatherland"; and the need to be secure in one way or other against the frightful fluctuations of fortune, opens even the nobler hands, as soon as a richer and more powerful person shows himself ready to put gold into them. There is then so little certainty with regard to the future; people live only for the day: a condition of mind which enables every deceiver to play an easy game,—people of course only let themselves be misled and bribed "for the present," and reserve for themselves futurity and virtue. The individuals, as is well known, the men who only live for themselves, provide for the moment more than do their opposites, the gregarious men, because they consider themselves just as incalculable as the future; and similarly they attach themselves willingly to despots, because they believe 66themselves capable of activities and expedients, which can neither reckon on being understood by the multitude, nor on finding favour with them,—but the tyrant or the Cæsar understands the rights of the Individual even in his excesses, and has an interest in speaking on behalf of a bolder private morality, and even in giving his hand to it. For he thinks of himself, and wishes people to think of him what Napoleon once uttered in his classical style—"I have the right to answer by an eternal 'thus I am' to everything about which complaint is brought against me. I am apart from all the world, I accept conditions from nobody. I wish people also to submit to my fancies, and to take it quite as a simple matter, if I should indulge in this or that diversion." Thus spoke Napoleon once to his wife, when she had reasons for calling in question the fidelity of her husband.—The times of corruption are the seasons when the apples fall from the tree: I mean the individuals, the seed-bearers of the future, the pioneers of the spiritual colonisation and of a new construction of national and social unions. Corruption is only an abusive term for the harvest time of a people.

The Characteristics of Corruption.—Let's examine the characteristics of that condition in society at times deemed necessary, which we refer to as "corruption." As soon as corruption appears, a chaotic superstition takes over, and the previously universal beliefs of a people become dull and weak in comparison; superstition is a form of second-rate freethinking—those who embrace it choose certain forms and concepts that speak to them, granting themselves the right to choose. The superstitious individual is always more of a "person" compared to the religious person, and a superstitious society will consist of many individuals, reveling in individuality. From this perspective, superstition represents a progress compared to belief and indicates that the intellect is gaining independence and asserting its rights. Those who honor the old religion and religious attitudes then lament corruption—they have also shaped language usage and have tarnished the reputation of superstition, even among the freest minds. We should recognize this as a sign of enlightenment.—Secondly, a society experiencing corruption is often criticized for effeminacy: the appreciation for war and enthusiasm for it significantly decline, and the comforts of life become just as sought after as military and athletic honors used to be. However, we often overlook that the old national energy and passion that once shone brightly in war and tournaments have now transformed into countless private passions, becoming less visible; indeed, during times of "corruption," the amount and intensity of energy expended by a people is probably greater than ever, as individuals now spend it lavishly in ways they couldn't before—they simply weren't rich enough to do so! Thus, it is precisely in times of "effeminacy" that tragedy thrives both in public and private life, where deep love and fierce hatred are born, and the flame of knowledge burns bright. —Thirdly, to counter the accusations of superstition and effeminacy, it's common to claim that these periods of corruption are milder, with cruelty having considerably diminished compared to the earlier, more credulous, and stronger era. Yet, I'm unable to agree with that praise any more than the reproach: I will concede only that cruelty has become more refined, and its older forms are now deemed unappealing; however, the infliction of wounds and torture through words and looks reaches its peak in times of corruption—it's during these times that wickedness is born, along with a delight in wickedness. The people of the corrupt period are clever and malicious; they understand there are more ways to kill than with a dagger and an ambush—they also realize that all that is well said is believed. —Fourthly, it is during times of "moral decay" that figures known as tyrants first emerge; they are the precursors of the individual, representing early-blooming firstlings. Before long, this ultimate fruit will ripen and hang yellow on the tree of a people—and this tree exists solely for such fruit! When decay reaches its peak, along with a conflict among various tyrants, the Cæsar arises, the final tyrant who ends the weary struggle for power by turning that exhaustion to his advantage. In his time, the individual is usually at their most developed, leading to the highest and most fruitful level of "culture," but not because of him or through him: though the most cultured individuals love to flatter their Cæsar by claiming to be his creation. The truth is they need external peace because internally they are troubled and laboring. During these times, bribery and treason are at their peak: the newfound love for the ego is much stronger than the love for the old, worn-out, familiar "fatherland"; and the desire to find security from the frightening ups and downs of fortune opens even noble hands when a richer and more powerful person offers them gold. There is such uncertainty about the future; people live only for the day: a state of mind that allows every deceiver to find success—people, of course, only allow themselves to be misled and bribed "for the moment," planning to retain their sense of virtue and future. Individuals, well-known to be self-serving, prepare for the moment more than their opposites, the social men, since they view themselves as just as unpredictable as the future; likewise, they willingly align themselves with despots because they believe they can carry out actions and plans that will neither be understood by the masses nor gain their favor—but the tyrant or Cæsar recognizes the rights of the Individual even in excess and has a vested interest in advocating for a bolder private morality, and even supporting it. For he is self-centered and wishes people to regard him as stated by Napoleon in his classic style—"I have the right to respond with an eternal 'this is who I am' to every complaint made against me. I am apart from all the world, I accept conditions from nobody. I want people to submit to my whims and to take it as a given if I indulge in this or that diversion." Thus spoke Napoleon once to his wife when she had reasons to question her husband’s fidelity.—The times of corruption are the seasons when the apples fall from the tree: I mean the individuals, the seed-bearers of the future, the pioneers of spiritual colonization and new forms of national and social unions. Corruption is merely an abusive term for the harvest time of a people.

24.

Different Dissatisfactions.—The feeble and as it were feminine dissatisfied people have ingenuity for beautifying and deepening life; the strong dissatisfied people—the masculine persons among them, to continue the metaphor—have the ingenuity for improving and safeguarding life. The former 67show their weakness and feminine character by willingly letting themselves be temporarily deceived, and perhaps even by putting up with a little ecstasy and enthusiasm on a time, but on the whole they are never to be satisfied, and suffer from the incurability of their dissatisfaction; moreover they are the patrons of all those who manage to concoct opiate and narcotic comforts, and just on that account averse to those who value the physician higher than the priest,—they thereby encourage the continuance of actual distress! If there had not been a surplus of dissatisfied persons of this kind in Europe since the time of the Middle Ages, the remarkable capacity of Europeans for constant transformation would perhaps not have originated at all; for the claims of the strong dissatisfied persons are too gross, and really too modest to resist being finally quieted down. China is an instance of a country in which dissatisfaction on a grand scale and the capacity for transformation have died out for many centuries; and the Socialists and state-idolaters of Europe could easily bring things to Chinese conditions and to a Chinese "happiness," with their measures for the amelioration and security of life, provided that they could first of all root out the sicklier, tenderer, more feminine dissatisfaction and Romanticism which are still very abundant among us. Europe is an invalid who owes her best thanks to her incurability and the eternal transformations of her sufferings; these constant new situations, these equally constant new dangers, pains, and make-shifts, have at last generated an intellectual sensitiveness which is 68almost equal to genius, and is in any case the mother of all genius.

Different Dissatisfactions.—Weak, almost feminine, dissatisfied people are skilled at beautifying and enriching life; strong dissatisfied people—the masculine ones, to stick with the metaphor—are good at improving and protecting life. The former group shows their weakness and feminine traits by willingly allowing themselves to be momentarily deceived, and maybe even tolerating a bit of ecstasy and enthusiasm for a while, but overall, they are never truly satisfied and suffer from a chronic dissatisfaction; furthermore, they are the supporters of those who create soothing and narcotic comforts, which is why they tend to be opposed to those who value the doctor more than the priest—they end up encouraging the continuance of actual suffering! If there hadn’t been so many dissatisfied individuals like this in Europe since the Middle Ages, the remarkable ability of Europeans to constantly transform might not have developed at all; because the demands of strong dissatisfied individuals are too blatant, and actually too modest to be easily quelled. China is an example of a country where large-scale dissatisfaction and the capacity for transformation have been absent for many centuries; and the Socialists and state-worshippers of Europe could easily create a similar situation to the Chinese environment and a Chinese "happiness" with their plans for improving and securing life, as long as they could first eliminate the more delicate, weaker, and feminine dissatisfaction and Romanticism that are still quite present among us. Europe is like an invalid who owes her greatest strengths to her chronic dissatisfaction and the endless transformations of her struggles; these constant new situations, along with new dangers, pains, and makeshift solutions, have ultimately fostered an intellectual sensitivity that is nearly equal to genius and is definitely the source of all genius.

25.

Not Pre-ordained to Knowledge.—There is a purblind humility not at all rare, and when a person is afflicted with it, he is once for all unqualified for being a disciple of knowledge. It is this in fact: the moment a man of this kind perceives anything striking, he turns as it were on his heel, and says to himself: "You have deceived yourself! Where have your wits been! This cannot be the truth!"—and then, instead of looking at it and listening to it with more attention, he runs out of the way of the striking object as if intimidated, and seeks to get it out of his head as quickly as possible. For his fundamental rule runs thus: "I want to see nothing that contradicts the usual opinion concerning things! Am I created for the purpose of discovering new truths? There are already too many of the old ones."

Not Predestined for Knowledge.—There's a kind of blind humility that's not all that uncommon, and when someone has it, they're completely unfit to be a seeker of knowledge. This is how it works: as soon as a person like this notices something impressive, they basically pivot on their heel and think, "You've fooled yourself! Where has your mind been? This can't be the truth!"—and then, rather than examining it or paying closer attention, they quickly step back from the impressive thing as if they're scared and try to push it out of their mind as fast as possible. Their main rule is: "I don't want to see anything that challenges the usual views on things! Am I meant to discover new truths? There are already too many old ones."

26.

What is Living?—Living—that is to continually eliminate from ourselves what is about to die; Living—that is to be cruel and inexorable towards all that becomes weak and old in ourselves, and not only in ourselves. Living—that means, therefore, to be without piety toward the dying, the wretched and the old? To be continually a murderer?—And yet old Moses said: "Thou shalt not kill!"

What is Living?—Living means constantly removing from ourselves everything that is fading away; Living means being tough and relentless toward all that weakens and ages within us, and not just within us. Living, then, implies having no mercy for the dying, the helpless, and the elderly? To always be a killer?—And yet old Moses said: "You shall not kill!"

69

27.

The Self-Renouncer.—What does the self-renouncer do? He strives after a higher world, he wants to fly longer and further and higher than all men of affirmation—he throws away many things that would burden his flight, and several things among them that are not valueless, that are not unpleasant to him: he sacrifices them to his desire for elevation. Now this sacrificing, this casting away, is the very thing which becomes visible in him: on that account one calls him the self-renouncer, and as such he stands before us, enveloped in his cowl, and as the soul of a hair-shirt. With this effect, however, which he makes upon us he is well content: he wants to keep concealed from us his desire, his pride, his intention of flying above us.—Yes! He is wiser than we thought, and so courteous towards us—this affirmer! For that is what he is, like us, even in his self-renunciation.

The Self-Renouncer.—What does the self-renouncer do? He aims for a higher realm, wanting to soar longer, farther, and higher than anyone who embraces life—he lets go of many things that would weigh him down, including several things that hold value and are not unpleasant to him: he sacrifices them for his desire to rise. This act of sacrifice, this letting go, is what becomes evident in him: that's why he is called the self-renouncer, and in that role, he stands before us, wrapped in his cloak, embodying the essence of a hair-shirt. With this effect he has on us, he feels satisfied: he wishes to keep hidden from us his desire, his pride, his intention of rising above us.—Yes! He is wiser than we realized, and so considerate towards us—this affirmer! Because that’s what he is, like us, even in his self-renunciation.

28.

Injuring with one's best Qualities.—Our strong points sometimes drive us so far forward that we cannot any longer endure our weaknesses, and we perish by them: we also perhaps see this result beforehand, but nevertheless do not want it to be otherwise. We then become hard towards that which would fain be spared in us, and our pitilessness is also our greatness. Such an experience, which must in the end cost us our life, is a symbol 70of the collective effect of great men upon others and upon their epoch:—it is just with their best abilities, with that which only they can do, that they destroy much that is weak, uncertain, evolving, and willing, and are thereby injurious. Indeed, the case may happen in which, taken on the whole, they only do injury, because their best is accepted and drunk up as it were solely by those who lose their understanding and their egoism by it, as by too strong a beverage; they become so intoxicated that they go breaking their limbs on all the wrong roads where their drunkenness drives them.

Injuring with one's best Qualities.—Sometimes our strengths push us forward so much that we can’t stand our weaknesses anymore, and we end up suffering because of them. We might even see this outcome coming, yet we still don’t want to change. We then become harsh towards what we wish could be spared in ourselves, and our lack of compassion is also part of our greatness. This experience, which ultimately might cost us our lives, represents the overall impact great individuals have on others and on their time: it’s precisely their finest abilities—what only they can do—that end up destroying much of what is weak, uncertain, evolving, and willing, resulting in harm. In fact, it may turn out that overall, they only cause damage, as their best qualities are absorbed, almost like a strong drink, by those who lose their understanding and self-interest because of it; they become so intoxicated that they end up breaking their limbs on all the wrong paths their drunkenness leads them down.

29.

Adventitious Liars.—When people began to combat the unity of Aristotle in France, and consequently also to defend it, there was once more to be seen that which has been seen so often, but seen so unwillingly:—people imposed false reasons on themselves on account of which those laws ought to exist, merely for the sake of not acknowledging to themselves that they had accustomed themselves to the authority of those laws, and did not want any longer to have things otherwise. And people do so in every prevailing morality and religion, and have always done so: the reasons and intentions behind the habit, are only added surreptitiously when people begin to combat the habit, and ask for reasons and intentions. It is here that the great dishonesty of the conservatives of all times hides:—they are adventitious liars.

Adventitious Liars.—When people started to challenge Aristotle's unity in France, and as a result, also defend it, there was once again a familiar sight, though one often resisted:—people created false justifications for why those laws should exist, just to avoid admitting to themselves that they had gotten used to the authority of those laws and no longer wanted things to be different. This occurs in every dominant morality and religion, and it always has: the reasons and motives behind the habit only emerge stealthily when people begin to question the habit and seek reasons and motives. Here lies the great dishonesty of conservatives throughout history:—they are adventitious liars.

71

30.

The Comedy of Celebrated Men.—Celebrated men who need their fame, as, for instance, all politicians, no longer select their associates and friends without after-thoughts: from the one they want a portion of the splendour and reflection of his virtues; from the other they want the fear-inspiring power of certain dubious qualities in him, of which everybody is aware; from another they steal his reputation for idleness and basking in the sun, because it is advantageous for their own ends to be regarded temporarily as heedless and lazy:—it conceals the fact that they lie in ambush; they now use the visionaries, now the experts, now the brooders, now the pedants in their neighbourhood, as their actual selves for the time, but very soon they do not need them any longer! And thus while their environment and outside die off continually, everything seems to crowd into this environment, and wants to become a "character" of it; they are like great cities in this respect. Their repute is continually in process of mutation, like their character, for their changing methods require this change, and they show and exhibit sometimes this and sometimes that actual or fictitious quality on the stage; their friends and associates, as we have said, belong to these stage properties. On the other hand, that which they aim at must remain so much the more steadfast, and burnished and resplendent in the distance,—and this also sometimes needs its comedy and its stage-play.

The Comedy of Celebrated Men.—Famous people who require their fame, like all politicians, no longer choose their associates and friends without careful consideration: from one, they seek a bit of the glory and a reflection of his virtues; from another, they want the intimidating power of certain questionable traits he possesses that everyone knows about; from yet another, they borrow his reputation for laziness and lounging around, as it’s beneficial for them to be seen as carefree and idle for a while:—it hides the fact that they are lurking in wait; they use the dreamers, the experts, the introspective types, and the pedants in their circle as their real selves for the time being, but soon they won't need them anymore! And so, while their surroundings and acquaintances continually fade away, everything seems to rush into this environment, wanting to become a "character" within it; they are like large cities in this way. Their reputation is always changing, just like their character, because their shifting strategies require this transformation, and they display and showcase different real or imaginary traits on the stage; their friends and associates, as we mentioned, are like props in this performance. On the other hand, what they strive for must remain much more constant, polished, and shining in the distance,—and this sometimes requires its own comedy and theatrics.

72

31.

Commerce and Nobility.—Buying and selling is now regarded as something ordinary, like the art of reading and writing; everyone is now trained to it even when he is not a tradesman, exercising himself daily in the art; precisely as formerly in the period of uncivilised humanity, everyone was a hunter and exercised himself day by day in the art of hunting. Hunting was then something common: but just as this finally became a privilege of the powerful and noble, and thereby lost the character of the commonplace and the ordinary—by ceasing to be necessary and by becoming an affair of fancy and luxury:—so it might become the same some day with buying and selling. Conditions of society are imaginable in which there will be no selling and buying, and in which the necessity for this art will become quite lost; perhaps it may then happen that individuals who are less subjected to the law of the prevailing condition of things will indulge in buying and selling as a luxury of sentiment. It is then only that commerce would acquire nobility, and the noble would then perhaps occupy themselves just as readily with commerce as they have done hitherto with war and politics: while on the other hand the valuation of politics might then have entirely altered. Already even politics ceases to be the business of a gentleman; and it is possible that one day it may be found to be so vulgar as to be brought, like all party literature and daily literature, under the rubric: "Prostitution of the intellect."

Commerce and Nobility.—Buying and selling are now seen as totally normal, just like reading and writing; everyone is now trained in it, even if they aren't a merchant, practicing daily in this skill—much like how everyone once hunted and practiced that skill every day in a time before civilization. Hunting was common then, but just as it eventually became a privilege of the powerful and noble and lost its ordinary nature—becoming something unnecessary and more about pleasure and luxury—buying and selling might one day follow the same path. We can imagine social conditions where buying and selling no longer exist, and the need for these transactions disappears; perhaps individuals who are less bound by the current state of society would see buying and selling as a luxury of sentiment. In that case, commerce could gain a sense of nobility, and nobles might engage in trade just as easily as they currently do in war and politics; meanwhile, the value of politics could change drastically. Already, politics is losing its status as the domain of gentlemen; it might eventually be seen as so lowly that it is categorized, like all party and daily literature, as "Prostitution of the intellect."

73

32.

Undesirable Disciples.—What shall I do with these two youths! called out a philosopher dejectedly, who "corrupted" youths, as Socrates had once corrupted them,—they are unwelcome disciples to me. One of them cannot say "Nay," and the other says "Half and half" to everything. Provided they grasped my doctrine, the former would suffer too much, for my mode of thinking requires a martial soul, willingness to cause pain, delight in denying, and a hard skin,—he would succumb by open wounds and internal injuries. And the other will choose the mediocre in everything he represents, and thus make a mediocrity of the whole,—I should like my enemy to have such a disciple.

Undesirable Disciples.—What should I do with these two young men! a philosopher lamented, who "corrupted" youths, just like Socrates once did—they are unwelcome students to me. One of them can't say "no," and the other responds with "half and half" to everything. If they understood my teachings, the former would suffer too much because my way of thinking needs a strong spirit, a willingness to cause pain, a pleasure in denial, and a thick skin—he would be overwhelmed by both visible wounds and internal damage. The other will always settle for mediocrity in everything he gets involved with, ultimately creating mediocrity in the whole—I'd prefer my enemy to have such a disciple.

33.

Outside the Lecture-room.—"In order to prove that man after all belongs to the good-natured animals, I would remind you how credulous he has been for so long a time. It is now only, quite late, and after an immense self-conquest, that he has become a distrustful animal,—yes! man is now more wicked than ever."—I do not understand this; why should man now be more distrustful and more wicked?—"Because he now has science,—because he needs to have it!"—

Outside the Lecture-room.—"To show that humans are actually good-natured creatures, I’d like to point out how gullible they've been for so long. It's only recently, after a huge amount of self-restraint, that they've turned into a distrustful species—yes! humans are now more wicked than ever."—I don’t get this; why should people be more distrustful and wicked now?—"Because they now have science—because they need to have it!"—

34.

Historia abscondita.—Every great man has a power which operates backward; all history is 74again placed on the scales on his account, and a thousand secrets of the past crawl out of their lurking-places—into his sunlight. There is absolutely no knowing what history may be some day. The past is still perhaps undiscovered in its essence! There are yet so many retroactive powers needed!

Hidden History.—Every great person has a force that affects the past; all history is once more weighed in light of their existence, and countless secrets from the past emerge from hiding—into their light. It's impossible to know what history might become someday. The past may still hold undiscovered truths! There are still so many retroactive forces required!

35.

Heresy and Witchcraft.—To think otherwise than is customary—that is by no means so much the activity of a better intellect, as the activity of strong, wicked inclinations,—severing, isolating, refractory, mischief-loving, malicious inclinations. Heresy is the counterpart of witchcraft, and is certainly just as little a merely harmless affair, or a thing worthy of honour in itself. Heretics and sorcerers are two kinds of bad men; they have it in common that they also feel themselves wicked; their unconquerable delight is to attack and injure whatever rules,—whether it be men or opinions. The Reformation, a kind of duplication of the spirit of the Middle Ages at a time when it had no longer a good conscience, produced both of these kinds of people in the greatest profusion.

Heresy and Witchcraft.—Thinking differently from the norm isn't necessarily a sign of a superior mind; rather, it often stems from strong, malicious tendencies—divisive, rebellious, troublemaking, and spiteful inclinations. Heresy is the opposite of witchcraft, and neither should be seen as a harmless or commendable matter. Heretics and witches are two types of wrongdoers; they share the understanding that they are wicked and take a perverse pleasure in challenging and harming anything that holds power—be it people or beliefs. The Reformation, which reflected the spirit of the Middle Ages in a time of lost integrity, led to a significant increase in both types of individuals.

36.

Last Words.—It will be recollected that the Emperor Augustus, that terrible man, who had himself as much in his own power, and who could be silent as well as any wise Socrates, became indiscreet about himself in his last words; for 75the first time he let his mask fall, when he gave to understand that he had carried a mask and played a comedy,—he had played the father of his country and wisdom on the throne well, even to the point of illusion! Plaudite amici, comoedia finita est!—The thought of the dying Nero: qualis artifex pereo! was also the thought of the dying Augustus: histrionic conceit! histrionic loquacity! And the very counterpart to the dying Socrates!—But Tiberius died silently, that most tortured of all self-torturers,—he was genuine and not a stage-player! What may have passed through his head in the end! Perhaps this: "Life—that is a long death. I am a fool, who shortened the lives of so many! Was I created for the purpose of being a benefactor? I should have given them eternal life: and then I could have seen them dying eternally. I had such good eyes for that: qualis spectator pereo!" When he seemed once more to regain his powers after a long death-struggle, it was considered advisable to smother him with pillows,—he died a double death.

Last Words.—It will be remembered that Emperor Augustus, that formidable man, who held complete control over himself and could be as silent as any wise Socrates, became indiscreet in his final words; for the first time, he let his guard down, revealing that he had worn a mask and performed a role—he had played the father of his country and portrayed wisdom on the throne so well that it almost felt real! Plaudite amici, comoedia finita est!—The thought of dying Nero: qualis artifex pereo! was also the thought of dying Augustus: theatrical arrogance! theatrical chatter! And the exact opposite of the dying Socrates!—But Tiberius died in silence, that most tortured of all self-torturers—he was real and not a performer! What could have gone through his mind at the end! Perhaps this: "Life—that is a long death. I am a fool, who shortened the lives of so many! Was I created to be a benefactor? I should have given them eternal life: and then I could have watched them die forever. I had such good eyes for that: qualis spectator pereo!" When he seemed to regain his strength after a long struggle with death, it was deemed wise to smother him with pillows—he died a double death.

37.

Owing to three Errors.—Science has been furthered during recent centuries, partly because it was hoped that God's goodness and wisdom would be best understood therewith and thereby—the principal motive in the soul of great Englishmen (like Newton); partly because the absolute utility of knowledge was believed in, and especially the most intimate connection of morality, knowledge, and happiness—the principal motive in the soul of great 76Frenchmen (like Voltaire); and partly because it was thought that in science there was something unselfish, harmless, self-sufficing, lovable, and truly innocent to be had, in which the evil human impulses did not at all participate—the principal motive in the soul of Spinoza, who felt himself divine, as a knowing being:—it is consequently owing to three errors that science has been furthered.

Because of three mistakes.—Science has progressed in recent centuries, partly because people hoped that God’s goodness and wisdom would be best understood through it—the main motivation for great Englishmen (like Newton); partly because there was a belief in the absolute usefulness of knowledge, especially the deep connection between morality, knowledge, and happiness—the primary drive for great 76Frenchmen (like Voltaire); and partly because it was thought that science offered something selfless, harmless, self-sufficient, lovable, and genuinely innocent, which did not involve any negative human impulses—the main motivation for Spinoza, who saw himself as divine in his understanding:—it is therefore due to three mistakes that science has advanced.

38.

Explosive People.—When one considers how ready are the forces of young men for discharge, one does not wonder at seeing them decide so unfastidiously and with so little selection for this or that cause: that which attracts them is the sight of eagerness about any cause, as it were the sight of the burning match—not the cause itself. The more ingenious seducers on that account operate by holding out the prospect of an explosion to such persons, and do not urge their cause by means of reasons; these powder-barrels are not won over by means of reasons!

Explosive People.—When you think about how eager young men are to take action, it’s not surprising to see them jump into causes without much thought or consideration: what really draws them in is the enthusiasm surrounding any cause, similar to the spark of a lit match—not the cause itself. Because of this, the more clever manipulators attract these individuals by promising excitement and chaos, rather than trying to convince them with logical arguments; these volatile individuals can’t be swayed by reason!

39.

Altered Taste.—The alteration of the general taste is more important than the alteration of opinions; opinions, with all their proving, refuting, and intellectual masquerade, are merely symptoms of altered taste, and are certainly not what they are still so often claimed to be, the causes of the altered taste. How does the general taste alter? By the fact of individuals, the powerful 77and influential persons, expressing and tyrannically enforcing without any feeling of shame, their hoc est ridiculum, hoc est absurdum; the decisions, therefore, of their taste and their disrelish:—they thereby lay a constraint upon many people, out of which there gradually grows a habituation for still more, and finally a necessity for all. The fact, however, that these individuals feel and "taste" differently, has usually its origin in a peculiarity of their mode of life, nourishment, or digestion, perhaps in a surplus or deficiency of the inorganic salts in their blood and brain, in short in their physis; they have, however, the courage to avow their physical constitution, and to lend an ear even to the most delicate tones of its requirements: their æsthetic and moral judgments are those "most delicate tones" of their physis.

Altered Taste.—Changing general taste is more crucial than changing opinions; opinions, with all their debates, refutations, and intellectual pretenses, are just signs of changed taste. They are definitely not what people still often claim them to be—the reasons behind the altered taste. How does general taste change? Through individuals, the powerful and influential, expressing and enforcing without any shame, their hoc est ridiculum, hoc est absurdum; thus, their preferences and dislikes impose a constraint on many, leading to a gradual habituation for even more, and eventually a necessity for all. However, the fact that these individuals feel and "taste" differently usually stems from a characteristic of their lifestyle, diet, or digestion, perhaps due to an excess or lack of inorganic salts in their blood and brain—in short, their physis; yet they have the audacity to acknowledge their physical makeup and to listen to even the most subtle demands of it: their aesthetic and moral judgments are those "most delicate tones" of their physis.

40.

The Lack of a noble Presence.—Soldiers and their leaders have always a much higher mode of comportment toward one another than workmen and their employers. At present at least, all militarily established civilisation still stands high above all so-called industrial civilisation; the latter, in its present form, is in general the meanest mode of existence that has ever been. It is simply the law of necessity that operates here: people want to live, and have to sell themselves; but they despise him who exploits their necessity, and purchases the workman. It is curious that the subjection to powerful, fear-inspiring, and even dreadful individuals, to tyrants and leaders of 78armies, is not at all felt so painfully as the subjection to such undistinguished and uninteresting persons as the captains of industry; in the employer the workman usually sees merely a crafty, blood-sucking dog of a man, speculating on every necessity, whose name, form, character, and reputation are altogether indifferent to him. It is probable that the manufacturers and great magnates of commerce have hitherto lacked too much all those forms and attributes of a superior race, which alone make persons interesting; if they had had the nobility of the nobly-born in their looks and bearing, there would perhaps have been no socialism in the masses of the people. For these are really ready for slavery of every kind, provided that the superior class above them constantly shows itself legitimately superior, and born to command—by its noble presence! The commonest man feels that nobility is not to be improvised, and that it is his part to honour it as the fruit of protracted race-culture,—but the absence of superior presence, and the notorious vulgarity of manufacturers with red, fat hands, brings up the thought to him that it is only chance and fortune that has here elevated the one above the other; well then—so he reasons with himself—let us in our turn tempt chance and fortune! Let us in our turn throw the dice!—and socialism commences.

The Lack of a Noble Presence.—Soldiers and their leaders have always interacted in a much more dignified way than workers and their employers. At least right now, all military-established civilizations are still regarded as far superior to industrial civilizations; the latter, in its current state, is generally the lowest form of existence ever seen. It's simply the law of necessity at play here: people want to live, so they have to sell their labor; but they look down on those who take advantage of their needs, and who hire them. It’s interesting that being controlled by powerful, intimidating, and even fearsome individuals, like tyrants and military leaders, is not felt as painfully as being subjected to the bland and unremarkable figures like captains of industry; to the worker, the employer is often seen merely as a sneaky, profit-driven man, profiting from every need, whose name, form, character, and reputation mean nothing to him. It's likely that manufacturers and large business magnates have lacked many of the qualities and traits of a superior race, which are what make people interesting; if they had possessed the nobility associated with those who are well-born in their appearance and demeanor, perhaps there wouldn’t have been a rise in socialism among the masses. For many are actually ready for slavery of all kinds, as long as the superior class above them consistently appears legitimately superior, and born to lead—through their noble presence! The average person senses that nobility cannot be created on the spot, and that it’s his duty to honor it as the result of long-term cultural development. However, the lack of a superior presence and the well-known vulgarity of manufacturers with their red, plump hands leads him to think that it’s just luck and circumstance that have put some above others; well then—so he thinks to himself—let us try our luck too! Let us throw the dice!—and socialism begins.

41.

Against Remorse.—The thinker sees in his own actions attempts and questionings to obtain information about something or other; success 79and failure are answers to him first and foremost. To vex himself, however, because something does not succeed, or to feel remorse at all—he leaves that to those who act because they are commanded to do so, and expect to get a beating when their gracious master is not satisfied with the result.

Against Remorse.—The thinker views his own actions as attempts and inquiries to gain insight about something; success and failure are primarily answers for him. He doesn’t allow himself to be troubled by a lack of success or to feel remorse—he leaves that to those who act out of obligation and anticipate punishment when their benevolent master is unhappy with the outcome. 79

42.

Work and Ennui.—In respect to seeking work for the sake of the pay, almost all men are alike at present in civilised countries; to all of them work is a means, and not itself the end; on which account they are not very select in the choice of the work, provided it yields an abundant profit. But still there are rarer men who would rather perish than work without delight in their labour: the fastidious people, difficult to satisfy, whose object is not served by an abundant profit, unless the work itself be the reward of all rewards. Artists and contemplative men of all kinds belong to this rare species of human beings; and also the idlers who spend their life in hunting and travelling, or in love affairs and adventures. They all seek toil and trouble in so far as these are associated with pleasure, and they want the severest and hardest labour, if it be necessary. In other respects, however, they have a resolute indolence, even should impoverishment, dishonour, and danger to health and life be associated therewith. They are not so much afraid of ennui as of labour without pleasure; indeed they require much ennui, if their work is to succeed with them. For the thinker and for all inventive spirits ennui is the unpleasant "calm" 80of the soul which precedes the happy voyage and the dancing breezes; he must endure it, he must await the effect it has on him:—it is precisely this which lesser natures cannot at all experience! It is common to scare away ennui in every way, just as it is common to labour without pleasure. It perhaps distinguishes the Asiatics above the Europeans, that they are capable of a longer and profounder repose; even their narcotics operate slowly and require patience, in contrast to the obnoxious suddenness of the European poison, alcohol.

Work and Boredom.—When it comes to seeking jobs just for the money, almost every man is similar these days in civilized countries; for them, work is just a means to an end, not the end itself. Because of this, they aren’t very picky about the kind of work they do, as long as it pays well. However, there are still rare individuals who would rather struggle than work without joy in what they do: the discerning people who are hard to please, for whom a big paycheck doesn't matter unless the work itself is the ultimate reward. Artists and deep thinkers of all sorts fall into this uncommon category, as do those who spend their lives pursuing leisure through activities like hunting, traveling, or romantic escapades and adventures. They willingly embrace hard work and effort if it brings them enjoyment. But in other ways, they exhibit a determined laziness, even if that means facing poverty, disgrace, or risking their health and lives. They're less afraid of boredom than of work that lacks pleasure; in fact, they need a good amount of boredom for their work to resonate with them. For thinkers and creative minds, boredom is the uncomfortable "calm" of the spirit that comes before the joyful journey and energizing breezes; they must endure it and wait for its effect on them:—this is exactly what lesser minds cannot truly grasp! It's common to distract oneself from boredom in any way possible, just as it’s typical to work without joy. It may set Asians apart from Europeans that they can enjoy a longer and deeper stillness; even their narcotics act slowly and demand patience, unlike the harsh immediacy of European intoxicants like alcohol.

43.

What the Laws Betray.—One makes a great mistake when one studies the penal laws of a people, as if they were an expression of its character; the laws do not betray what a people is, but what appears to them foreign, strange, monstrous, and outlandish. The laws concern themselves with the exceptions to the morality of custom; and the severest punishments fall on acts which conform to the customs of the neighbouring peoples. Thus among the Wahabites, there are only two mortal sins: having another God than the Wahabite God, and—smoking (it is designated by them as "the disgraceful kind of drinking"). "And how is it with regard to murder and adultery?"—asked the Englishman with astonishment on learning these things. "Well, God is gracious and pitiful!" answered the old chief.—Thus among the ancient Romans there was the idea that a woman could only sin mortally in two ways: by adultery on the one hand, and—by wine-drinking on the other. Old Cato pretended 81that kissing among relatives had only been made a custom in order to keep women in control on this point; a kiss meant: did her breath smell of wine? Wives had actually been punished by death who were surprised taking wine: and certainly not merely because women under the influence of wine sometimes unlearn altogether the art of saying No; the Romans were afraid above all things of the orgiastic and Dionysian spirit with which the women of Southern Europe at that time (when wine was still new in Europe) were sometimes visited, as by a monstrous foreignness which subverted the basis of Roman sentiments; it seemed to them treason against Rome, as the embodiment of foreignness.

What the Laws Betray.—It’s a big mistake to study the penal laws of a society as if they reflect its true character; the laws don’t reveal who a people really are, but rather what they see as foreign, strange, monstrous, and outlandish. The laws focus on exceptions to the prevailing moral customs; the harshest punishments are reserved for actions that align with the customs of neighboring cultures. For example, among the Wahabites, there are only two serious sins: having any God other than the Wahabite God and—smoking (which they refer to as "the disgraceful kind of drinking"). "What about murder and adultery?" asked the Englishman, astonished to learn this. "Well, God is gracious and pitiful!" replied the old chief. Likewise, among the ancient Romans, the belief was that a woman could only sin mortally in two ways: through adultery and—by drinking wine. Old Cato claimed that kissing among relatives was only established to keep women in check regarding this matter; a kiss was essentially a question: did her breath smell of wine? Wives had actually faced the death penalty for being caught drinking wine; and it wasn't only because women under the influence of wine sometimes forget how to say No; the Romans were primarily afraid of the orgiastic and Dionysian spirit that the women of Southern Europe, at that time (when wine was still new to Europe), occasionally displayed, resembling a monstrous foreign presence that threatened the foundations of Roman values; it felt to them like treason against Rome, as the embodiment of foreignness.

44.

The Believed Motive.—However important it may be to know the motives according to which mankind has really acted hitherto, perhaps the belief in this or that motive, and therefore that which mankind has assumed and imagined to be the actual mainspring of its activity hitherto, is something still more essential for the thinker to know. For the internal happiness and misery of men have always come to them through their belief in this or that motive,—not however, through that which was actually the motive! All about the latter has an interest of secondary rank.

The Believed Motive.—While it’s important to understand the real motives behind human actions in the past, what’s even more critical for thinkers is the belief in those motives. This belief, what people assume and imagine to be the true driving force behind their actions, is key. The internal happiness and misery of individuals have always stemmed from their belief in certain motives—not necessarily from the actual motive itself! The truth about the real motive is of secondary importance.

45.

Epicurus.—Yes, I am proud of perceiving the character of Epicurus differently from anyone else 82perhaps, and of enjoying the happiness of the afternoon of antiquity in all that I hear and read of him:—I see his eye gazing out on a broad whitish sea, over the shore-rocks on which the sunshine rests, while great and small creatures play in its light, secure and calm like this light and that eye itself. Such happiness could only have been devised by a chronic sufferer, the happiness of an eye before which the sea of existence has become calm, and which can no longer tire of gazing at the surface and at the variegated, tender, tremulous skin of this sea. Never previously was there such a moderation of voluptuousness.

Epicurus.—Yes, I'm proud to see Epicurus in a way that maybe no one else does, and to enjoy the joy of the afternoon of ancient times in everything I hear and read about him:—I imagine his eye looking out at a wide, pale sea, over the shore rocks warmed by the sun, while all kinds of creatures play in its light, feeling safe and peaceful just like that light and his gaze. Such happiness could only come from someone who has suffered a lot, the happiness of an eye that has found calm in the sea of existence and no longer gets tired of watching the surface and the colorful, gentle, shivering skin of that sea. Never before has there been such a balanced enjoyment of pleasure.

46.

Our Astonishment.—There is a profound and fundamental satisfaction in the fact that science ascertains things that hold their ground, and again furnish the basis for new researches:—it could certainly be otherwise. Indeed, we are so much convinced of all the uncertainty and caprice of our judgments, and of the everlasting change of all human laws and conceptions, that we are really astonished how persistently the results of science hold their ground! In earlier times people knew nothing of this changeability of all human things; the custom of morality maintained the belief that the whole inner life of man was bound to iron necessity by eternal fetters:—perhaps people then felt a similar voluptuousness of astonishment when they listened to tales and fairy stories. The wonderful did so much good to those men, who might well get tired sometimes of the regular and 83the eternal. To leave the ground for once! To soar! To stray! To be mad!—that belonged to the paradise and the revelry of earlier times; while our felicity is like that of the shipwrecked man who has gone ashore, and places himself with both feet on the old, firm ground—in astonishment that it does not rock.

Our Astonishment.—There is a deep and essential satisfaction in the fact that science verifies things that stand firm, and in doing so, provides the foundation for new research:—it certainly could be different. In fact, we are so convinced of the uncertainty and randomness of our judgments, along with the constant changes in all human laws and beliefs, that we are truly amazed how consistently the results of science remain steadfast! In the past, people were unaware of this unpredictability of all human things; the norms of morality upheld the belief that the entire inner life of humanity was bound by unbreakable, eternal chains:—perhaps people back then experienced a similar thrill of astonishment when they heard stories and fairy tales. The extraordinary brought so much comfort to those individuals, who might have occasionally grown weary of the mundane and the eternal. To leave reality behind for once! To soar! To wander! To be wild!—that was part of the paradise and celebration of earlier days; while our joy resembles that of a shipwrecked person who has reached land and stands firmly on solid ground—astonished that it doesn’t sway.

47.

The Suppression of the Passions.—When one continually prohibits the expression of the passions as something to be left to the "vulgar," to coarser, bourgeois, and peasant natures—that is, when one does not want to suppress the passions themselves, but only their language and demeanour, one nevertheless realises therewith just what one does not want: the suppression of the passions themselves, or at least their weakening and alteration,—as the court of Louis XIV. (to cite the most instructive instance), and all that was dependent on it, experienced. The generation that followed, trained in suppressing their expression, no longer possessed the passions themselves, but had a pleasant, superficial, playful disposition in their place,—a generation which was so permeated with the incapacity to be ill-mannered, that even an injury was not taken and retaliated, except with courteous words. Perhaps our own time furnishes the most remarkable counterpart to this period: I see everywhere (in life, in the theatre, and not least in all that is written) satisfaction at all the coarser outbursts and gestures of passion; a certain convention of passionateness is now desired,—only not the passion itself! Nevertheless it will thereby be at last reached, and our posterity will have a genuine savagery, and not merely a formal savagery and unmannerliness.

The Suppression of the Passions.—When people constantly discourage the expression of emotions, believing it should be left to the "common folks," the rougher, middle-class, and rural individuals—that is, when they don’t want to eliminate the emotions themselves, but only their expression and behavior, they still ultimately achieve what they don’t want: the suppression of the emotions themselves, or at least their weakening and distortion, as demonstrated by the court of Louis XIV. (which is the most telling example) and everything associated with it. The generation that followed, conditioned to stifle their expressions, no longer had genuine emotions, but instead developed a pleasant, superficial, playful attitude— a generation so ingrained with the inability to be rude that even an offense was met with polite words rather than retaliation. Perhaps our own time offers the most striking parallel to this era: I see everywhere (in life, in theater, and especially in all written works) a celebration of all the rougher outbursts and gestures of emotion; there’s now a kind of expected display of passion—just not the passion itself! Nevertheless, it will eventually lead us to the real thing, and future generations will experience a genuine savagery, rather than just a formal kind of savagery and rudeness.

84

48.

Knowledge of Distress.—Perhaps there is nothing by which men and periods are so much separated from one another, as by the different degrees of knowledge of distress which they possess; distress of the soul as well as of the body. With respect to the latter, owing to lack of sufficient self-experience, we men of the present day (in spite of our deficiencies and infirmities), are perhaps all of us blunderers and visionaries in comparison with the men of the age of fear—the longest of all ages,—when the individual had to protect himself against violence, and for that purpose had to be a man of violence himself. At that time a man went through a long schooling of corporeal tortures and privations, and found even in a certain kind of cruelty toward himself, in a voluntary use of pain, a necessary means for his preservation; at that time a person trained his environment to the endurance of pain; at that time a person willingly inflicted pain, and saw the most frightful things of this kind happen to others, without having any other feeling than for his own security. As regards the distress of the soul, however, I now look at every man with respect to whether he knows it by experience or by description; whether he still regards it as necessary to simulate this knowledge, perhaps as an indication 85of more refined culture; or whether, at the bottom of his heart, he does not at all believe in great sorrows of soul, and at the naming of them has in his mind a similar experience as at the naming of great corporeal sufferings, such as tooth-aches, and stomach-aches. It is thus, however, that it seems to be with most people at present. Owing to the universal inexperience of both kinds of pain, and the comparative rarity of the spectacle of a sufferer, an important consequence results: people now hate pain far more than earlier man did, and calumniate it worse than ever; indeed people nowadays can hardly endure the thought of pain, and make out of it an affair of conscience and a reproach to collective existence. The appearance of pessimistic philosophies is not at all the sign of great and dreadful miseries; for these interrogative marks regarding the worth of life appear in periods when the refinement and alleviation of existence already deem the unavoidable gnat-stings of the soul and body as altogether too bloody and wicked; and in the poverty of actual experiences of pain, would now like to make painful general ideas appear as suffering of the worst kind.—There might indeed be a remedy for pessimistic philosophies and the excessive sensibility which seems to me the real "distress of the present":—but perhaps this remedy already sounds too cruel, and would itself be reckoned among the symptoms owing to which people at present conclude that "existence is something evil." Well! the remedy for "the distress" is distress.

Understanding Distress.—Maybe nothing separates people and eras more than the different levels of understanding of distress they have, both of the soul and the body. When it comes to physical distress, due to a lack of personal experience, we people today (despite our shortcomings and weaknesses) might all be entirely clueless and unrealistic compared to those from the age of fear—the longest era of all—when individuals had to protect themselves from violence, which required them to be violent themselves. Back then, a person underwent extensive physical torment and deprivation, finding even a certain kind of cruelty towards themselves, through willingly enduring pain, as a necessary means of survival; back then, people shaped their environment to withstand pain; back then, individuals willingly caused pain and observed the most horrific acts of this kind happening to others, feeling only concern for their own safety. As for emotional distress, I now assess every person based on whether they know it through personal experience or from hearsay; whether they still think it’s necessary to pretend to understand it, perhaps as a sign of higher culture; or whether deep down, they don’t really believe in profound emotional suffering at all, and when such sorrows are mentioned, they think of it similarly to discussing minor physical pains like toothaches or stomachaches. This seems to be the case for most people today. Due to the widespread lack of experience with both kinds of pain and the relatively rare sight of someone suffering, a significant consequence arises: people today dislike pain far more than people did in the past, and they vilify it worse than ever; in fact, people these days can hardly stand the thought of pain, turning it into a matter of conscience and a criticism of collective existence. The emergence of pessimistic philosophies is not a sign of immense and terrible suffering; rather, these questions about the value of life arise in times when the refinement and easing of existence lead people to view the unavoidable little annoyances of the soul and body as simply too brutal and wicked; and in the lack of real experiences of pain, they now prefer to depict painful abstract concepts as the worst form of suffering.—There might indeed be a solution for pessimistic philosophies and the excessive sensitivity that I believe to be the true "distress of the present":—but perhaps this solution already sounds too harsh and would itself be considered one of the reasons why people today conclude that "existence is something evil." Well! the solution to "the distress" is distress.

86

49.

Magnanimity and allied Qualities.—Those paradoxical phenomena, such as the sudden coldness in the demeanour of good-natured men, the humour of the melancholy, and above all magnanimity, as a sudden renunciation of revenge or of the gratification of envy—appear in men in whom there is a powerful inner impulsiveness, in men of sudden satiety and sudden disgust. Their satisfactions are so rapid and violent that satiety, aversion, and flight into the antithetical taste, immediately follow upon them: in this contrast the convulsion of feeling liberates itself, in one person by sudden coldness, in another by laughter, and in a third by tears and self-sacrifice. The magnanimous person appears to me—at least that kind of magnanimous person who has always made most impression—as a man with the strongest thirst for vengeance, to whom a gratification presents itself close at hand, and who already drinks it off in imagination so copiously, thoroughly, and to the last drop, that an excessive, rapid disgust follows this rapid licentiousness;—he now elevates himself "above himself," as one says, and forgives his enemy, yea, blesses and honours him. With this violence done to himself, however, with this mockery of his impulse to revenge, even still so powerful, he merely yields to the new impulse, the disgust which has become powerful, and does this just as impatiently and licentiously, as a short time previously he forestalled, and as it were exhausted, the joy of revenge with his fantasy. In magnanimity 87there is the same amount of egoism as in revenge, but a different quality of egoism.

Generosity and Related Traits.—Those contradictory behaviors, like the sudden coldness in the demeanor of kind-hearted people, the humor of the sad, and especially generosity, as a sudden choice to let go of revenge or envy—show up in people who have a strong inner drive, in those who experience rapid satisfaction and quick disgust. Their pleasures come so fast and intensely that feelings of satiation, aversion, and a turn to opposite tastes quickly follow: in this contrast, emotional upheaval reveals itself, appearing in one person as sudden coldness, in another as laughter, and in a third as tears and selflessness. The generous person, at least the kind I find most striking, seems to have a deep-seated craving for revenge, to whom immediate satisfaction is within reach, and who already imagines indulging in it so fully, completely, and to the last drop, that excessive and swift disgust quickly follows this brief indulgence;—they then rise "above themselves," as people say, and forgive their enemy, even blessing and honoring them. Yet, this act of self-denial, this dismissal of their urge for revenge, although still powerful, leads them to simply give in to the new, overwhelming impulse of disgust, doing so as eagerly and wantonly as they previously indulged in the thrill of revenge in their imagination. In generosity, there is as much self-interest as in revenge, but a different kind of self-interest.

50.

The Argument of Isolation.—The reproach of conscience, even in the most conscientious, is weak against the feeling: "This and that are contrary to the good morals of your society." A cold glance or a wry mouth, on the part of those among whom and for whom one has been educated, is still feared even by the strongest. What is really feared there? Isolation! as the argument which demolishes even the best arguments for a person or cause!—It is thus that the gregarious instinct speaks in us.

The Argument of Isolation.—The criticism of conscience, even for the most principled, is weak against the thought: "This and that go against the morals of your society." A cold stare or a disapproving expression from those we were raised with and for still provoke fear, even in the strongest individuals. What is it that we truly fear? Isolation! It's the argument that can crush even the best defenses for a person or cause!—This is how our instinct to belong speaks within us.

51.

Sense for Truth.—Commend me to all scepticism where I am permitted to answer: "Let us put it to the test!" But I don't wish to hear anything more of things and questions which do not admit of being tested. That is the limit of my "sense for truth": for bravery has there lost its right.

Sense for Truth.—I appreciate all skepticism as long as I can respond with, "Let's test it!" But I have no interest in discussing things and questions that can't be tested. That's where my "sense for truth" ends: bravery no longer has its place there.

52.

What others Know of us.—That which we know of ourselves and have in our memory is not so decisive for the happiness of our life as is generally believed. One day it flashes upon our mind what others know of us (or think they know)—and then we acknowledge that it is the more powerful. We get on with our bad conscience more easily than with our bad reputation.

What others know about us.—What we understand about ourselves and what we remember isn't as crucial for our happiness as people usually think. One day, it hits us what others know about us (or believe they know)—and then we realize that it holds more weight. We manage our guilty feelings more easily than dealing with a bad reputation.

88

53.

Where Goodness Begins.—Where bad eyesight can no longer see the evil impulse as such, on account of its refinement,—there man sets up the kingdom of goodness; and the feeling of having now gone over into the kingdom of goodness brings all those impulses (such as the feelings of security, of comfortableness, of benevolence) into simultaneous activity, which were threatened and confined by the evil impulses. Consequently, the duller the eye so much the further does goodness extend! Hence the eternal cheerfulness of the populace and of children! Hence the gloominess and grief (allied to the bad conscience) of great thinkers.

Where Goodness Begins.—When poor eyesight can no longer recognize the evil urge for what it is, due to its sophistication,—that's where people establish the kingdom of goodness; and the feeling of having entered this kingdom of goodness activates all those impulses (like feelings of safety, comfort, and kindness) that were threatened and restricted by the evil impulses. So, the duller the eye, the further goodness spreads! This explains the endless cheerfulness of common people and children! It also explains the sadness and sorrow (linked to a guilty conscience) of deep thinkers.

54.

The Consciousness of Appearance.—How wonderfully and novelly, and at the same time how awfully and ironically, do I feel myself situated with respect to collective existence, with my knowledge! I have discovered for myself that the old humanity and animality, yea, the collective primeval age, and the past of all sentient being, continues to meditate, love, hate, and reason in me,—I have suddenly awoke in the midst of this dream, but merely to the consciousness that I just dream, and that I must dream on in order not to perish; just as the sleep-walker must dream on in order not to tumble down. What is it that is now "appearance" to me! Verily, not the antithesis of any kind of essence,—what knowledge can I assert of any kind of essence whatsoever, except merely the 89predicates of its appearance! Verily not a dead mask which one could put upon an unknown X, and which to be sure one could also remove! Appearance is for me the operating and living thing itself; which goes so far in its self-mockery as to make me feel that here there is appearance, and Will o' the Wisp, and spirit-dance, and nothing more,—that among all these dreamers, I also, the "thinker," dance my dance, that the thinker is a means of prolonging further the terrestrial dance, and in so far is one of the masters of ceremony of existence, and that the sublime consistency and connectedness of all branches of knowledge is perhaps, and will perhaps, be the best means for maintaining the universality of the dreaming, the complete, mutual understandability of all those dreamers, and thereby the duration of the dream.

The Consciousness of Appearance.—How wonderfully and uniquely, and at the same time how shockingly and ironically, do I find myself positioned in relation to collective existence, considering my understanding! I have realized that the ancient humanity and animality, yes, the collective primal age, and the history of all sentient beings, continues to think, love, hate, and reason within me—I have suddenly awakened in the middle of this dream, but merely to the awareness that I am just dreaming, and that I must keep dreaming to avoid perishing; just as a sleepwalker must keep dreaming to avoid falling. What is now "appearance" to me? Truly, it is not the opposite of any kind of essence—what knowledge can I claim about any essence at all, except merely the 89characteristics of its appearance! Truly not a lifeless mask that one could place on an unknown X, and which, of course, could also be taken off! Appearance is for me the active and living thing itself; it goes so far in its self-mockery as to make me feel that here there is appearance, and Will o' the Wisp, and spirit-dance, and nothing more—that among all these dreamers, I too, the "thinker," dance my dance, that the thinker is a way of extending the earthly dance, and in that sense is one of the masters of ceremony of existence, and that the sublime consistency and interconnectedness of all fields of knowledge is perhaps, and will perhaps, be the best way for maintaining the universality of dreaming, the complete, mutual understanding of all those dreamers, and thus the duration of the dream.

55.

The Ultimate Nobility of Character.—What then makes a person "noble"? Certainly not that he makes sacrifices; even the frantic libertine makes sacrifices. Certainly not that he generally follows his passions; there are contemptible passions. Certainly not that he does something for others and without selfishness; perhaps the effect of selfishness is precisely at its greatest in the noblest persons.—But that the passion which seizes the noble man is a peculiarity, without his knowing that it is so: the use of a rare and singular measuring-rod, almost a frenzy: the feeling of heat in things which feel cold to all other 90persons: a divining of values for which scales have not yet been invented: a sacrificing on altars which are consecrated to an unknown God: a bravery without the desire for honour: a self-sufficiency which has superabundance, and imparts to men and things. Hitherto, therefore, it has been the rare in man, and the unconsciousness of this rareness, that has made men noble. Here, however, let us consider that everything ordinary, immediate, and indispensable, in short, what has been most preservative of the species, and generally the rule in mankind hitherto, has been judged unreasonable and calumniated in its entirety by this standard, in favour of the exceptions. To become the advocate of the rule—that may perhaps be the ultimate form and refinement in which nobility of character will reveal itself on earth.

The Ultimate Nobility of Character.—So what makes a person "noble"? It’s definitely not just about making sacrifices; even the hedonistic person makes sacrifices. It’s also not about simply following one’s passions; some passions are contemptible. And it’s not necessarily about doing things for others without selfishness; maybe the impact of selfishness is even stronger in the noblest individuals. Rather, the passion that consumes a noble person is a unique trait, often without their awareness of it: they use an unusual and distinctive standard, almost to the point of frenzy; they feel warmth in things that seem cold to everyone else; they can perceive values that haven't even been measured yet; they make sacrifices on altars dedicated to an unknown God; they show bravery without seeking recognition; they possess a self-sufficiency that is abundant and can enrich others. Thus, it has been the rarity in humans, along with the unawareness of this rarity, that has defined nobility. However, let’s consider that everything common, immediate, and essential—essentially what has supported the species the most, and what has usually been the norm in humanity—has often been judged unreasonable and disparaged by this standard, in favor of the exceptions. To advocate for the norm—that might be the ultimate expression and refinement of nobility of character in the world.

56.

The Desire for Suffering.—When I think of the desire to do something, how it continually tickles and stimulates millions of young Europeans, who cannot endure themselves and all their ennui,—I conceive that there must be a desire in them to suffer something, in order to derive from their suffering a worthy motive for acting, for doing something. Distress is necessary! Hence the cry of the politicians, hence the many false, trumped-up, exaggerated "states of distress" of all possible kinds, and the blind readiness to believe in them. This young world desires that there should arrive or appear from the outside—not happiness—but misfortune; and their imagination is already 91busy beforehand to form a monster out of it, so that they may afterwards be able to fight with a monster. If these distress-seekers felt the power to benefit themselves, to do something for themselves from internal sources, they would also understand how to create a distress of their own, specially their own, from internal sources. Their inventions might then be more refined, and their gratifications might sound like good music: while at present they fill the world with their cries of distress, and consequently too often with the feeling of distress in the first place! They do not know what to make of themselves—and so they paint the misfortune of others on the wall; they always need others! And always again other others!—Pardon me, my friends, I have ventured to paint my happiness on the wall.

The Desire for Suffering.—When I think about the urge to do something, and how it endlessly pokes and drives millions of young Europeans who can’t stand themselves and all their boredom, I realize there must be a desire in them to experience some suffering, so they can find a meaningful reason to act or do something. Distress is essential! That’s why we hear the cry of politicians, and all the fake, exaggerated "states of distress" of every kind, and the blind willingness to believe in them. This young world wants something to come from the outside—not happiness—but misfortune; and their imagination is already 91working to create a monster from it, so they can later fight that monster. If these seekers of distress felt they had the power to help themselves, to create something for themselves from within, they would understand how to generate a particular distress of their own, coming from internal sources. Their creations might then be more sophisticated, and their satisfactions might sound like beautiful music: instead, they fill the world with their cries of distress, and therefore too often with the feeling of distress to begin with! They don’t know what to do with themselves—and so they project the misfortune of others onto the wall; they always need others! And always more others!—Forgive me, my friends, I have dared to paint my happiness on the wall.

93

BOOK SECOND

95

57.

To the Realists.—Ye sober beings, who feel yourselves armed against passion and fantasy, and would gladly make a pride and an ornament out of your emptiness, ye call yourselves realists and give to understand that the world is actually constituted as it appears to you; before you alone reality stands unveiled, and ye yourselves would perhaps be the best part of it,—oh, ye dear images of Sais! But are not ye also in your unveiled condition still extremely passionate and dusky beings compared with the fish, and still all too like an enamoured artist?[8]—and what is "reality" to an enamoured artist! Ye still carry about with you the valuations of things which had their origin in the passions and infatuations of earlier centuries! There is still a secret and ineffaceable drunkenness embodied in your sobriety! Your love of "reality," for example—oh, that is an old, primitive "love"! In every feeling, in every sense-impression, there is a portion of this old love: and similarly also some kind of fantasy, prejudice, irrationality, ignorance, fear, and whatever else has become mingled and woven into it. There is that mountain! There is that cloud! What is "real" in them? Remove the phantasm and the whole human element therefrom, ye sober ones! Yes, if ye could do that! If ye could forget your origin, your past, your preparatory schooling,—your whole history as man and beast! There is no "reality" for us—nor for you either, ye sober ones,—we are far from being so alien to one another as ye suppose, and perhaps our good-will to get beyond drunkenness is just as respectable as your belief that ye are altogether incapable of drunkenness.

To the Realists.—You sensible people, who feel like you’re resistant to emotion and imagination, and would love to take pride in your emptiness, you call yourselves realists and imply that the world is truly how you see it; only before you does reality stand clearly revealed, and perhaps you yourselves are the best part of it—oh, you cherished images of Sais! But aren’t you still extremely emotional and shadowy beings compared to fish, and far too similar to a lovesick artist?[8]—and what is "reality" to a lovesick artist? You still carry around the valuations of things that originated from the passions and obsessions of bygone eras! There’s still a hidden and indelible intoxication embedded in your sobriety! Your love of "reality," for instance—oh, that’s an ancient, primal "love"! In every feeling, in every sensory experience, there’s a trace of this old love: and likewise, some form of fantasy, prejudice, irrationality, ignorance, fear, and everything else that has become mixed in with it. Look at that mountain! Look at that cloud! What is "real" about them? Strip away the illusion and the whole human element from them, you sober ones! Yes, if you could do that! If you could forget your origins, your past, your schooling—your entire history as man and beast! There is no "reality" for us—nor for you either, you sober ones—we are not nearly as alien to each other as you think, and maybe our genuine desire to rise above intoxication is just as honorable as your belief that you are completely incapable of intoxication.

96

58.

Only as Creators!—It has caused me the greatest trouble, and for ever causes me the greatest trouble, to perceive that unspeakably more depends upon what things are called, than on what they are. The reputation, the name and appearance, the importance, the usual measure and weight of things—each being in origin most frequently an error and arbitrariness thrown over the things like a garment, and quite alien to their essence and even to their exterior—have gradually, by the belief therein and its continuous growth from generation to generation, grown as it were on-and-into things and become their very body; the appearance at the very beginning becomes almost always the essence in the end, and operates as the essence! What a fool he would be who would think it enough to refer here to this origin and this nebulous veil of illusion, in order to annihilate that which virtually passes for the world—namely, so-called "reality"! It is only as 97creators that we can annihilate!—But let us not forget this: it suffices to create new names and valuations and probabilities, in order in the long run to create new "things."

Only as Creators!—It has always troubled me greatly and continues to trouble me the most to realize that so much more rests on what things are called than on what they actually are. The reputation, name, and appearance of things—their significance, the standard measures and weights we assign to them—often originate from errors and arbitrary choices imposed on them like a layer of clothing, completely disconnected from their true essence and even their outward form. Over time, through belief and the continuous reinforcement of these ideas from one generation to the next, these notions have become intertwined with the things themselves and formed their very identity; what initially seemed like mere appearance ultimately transforms into the essence, and functions as the essence! What a fool would think that simply pointing out this origin and the vague illusion surrounding it could eliminate what is commonly accepted as the world—what we call "reality"! It is only as creators that we can truly eliminate!—But let's not forget this: it's enough to create new names, values, and possibilities in order to eventually create new "things."

59.

We Artists!—When we love a woman we have readily a hatred against nature, on recollecting all the disagreeable natural functions to which every woman is subject; we prefer not to think of them at all, but if once our soul touches on these things it twitches impatiently, and glances, as we have said, contemptuously at nature:—we are hurt; nature seems to encroach upon our possessions, and with the profanest hands. We then shut our ears against all physiology, and we decree in secret that "we will hear nothing of the fact that man is something else than soul and form!" "The man under the skin" is an abomination and monstrosity, a blasphemy of God and of love to all lovers.—Well, just as the lover still feels with respect to nature and natural functions, so did every worshipper of God and his "holy omnipotence" formerly feel: in all that was said of nature by astronomers, geologists, physiologists, and physicians, he saw an encroachment on his most precious possession, and consequently an attack,—and moreover also an impertinence of the assailant! The "law of nature" sounded to him as blasphemy against God; in truth he would too willingly have seen the whole of mechanics traced back to moral acts of volition and arbitrariness:—but 98because nobody could render him this service, he concealed nature and mechanism from himself as best he could, and lived in a dream. Oh, those men of former times understood how to dream, and did not need first to go to sleep!—and we men of the present day also still understand it too well, with all our good-will for wakefulness and daylight! It suffices to love, to hate, to desire, and in general to feel,—immediately the spirit and the power of the dream come over us, and we ascend, with open eyes and indifferent to all danger, the most dangerous paths, to the roofs and towers of fantasy, and without any giddiness, as persons born for climbing—we the night-walkers by day! We artists! We concealers of naturalness! We moon-struck and God-struck ones! We dead-silent, untiring wanderers on heights which we do not see as heights, but as our plains, as our places of safety!

We Artists!—When we love a woman, we often find ourselves feeling a resentment toward nature, remembering all the unpleasant natural functions every woman goes through. We’d rather not consider them at all, but once our minds drift to those topics, we twitch with impatience and look down on nature with contempt:—we feel wounded; nature seems to intrude on what we cherish, doing so with the most disrespectful hands. We block out everything about physiology and secretly decide that "we refuse to acknowledge that a man is anything more than soul and form!" "The man beneath the skin" is an abomination and a monstrosity, a blasphemy against God and against love for all lovers. Just as the lover feels about nature and its functions, so did every worshipper of God and His "holy omnipotence" in the past: everything astronomers, geologists, physiologists, and doctors said about nature seemed like an invasion of his most cherished possession, and thus an attack,—not to mention an insult from the aggressor! The "law of nature" sounded to him like a blasphemy against God; in truth, he would have preferred to see all mechanics traced back to moral choices and acts of will:—but because no one could provide him with that service, he concealed nature and mechanics from himself as best he could and lived in a dream. Oh, those men of the past knew how to dream without needing to fall asleep first!—and we modern men also still grasp it well, despite all our intentions for wakefulness and clarity! It’s enough to love, to hate, to desire, and to feel in general,—instantly the spirit and power of the dream envelop us, and we ascend, with open eyes and without caring about any danger, onto the most perilous paths, the roofs and towers of imagination, climbing like those born for it—we the nocturnal wanderers by day! We artists! We those who hide away from nature! We moon-struck and God-struck individuals! We the silent, tireless wanderers in heights we don't perceive as heights, but as our fields, as our places of safety!

60.

Women and their Effect in the Distance.—Have I still ears? Am I only ear, and nothing else besides? Here I stand in the midst of the surging of the breakers, whose white flames fork up to my feet;—from all sides there is howling, threatening, crying, and screaming at me, while in the lowest depths the old earth-shaker sings his aria, hollow like a roaring bull; he beats such an earth-shaker's measure thereto, that even the hearts of these weathered rock-monsters tremble at the sound. Then, suddenly, as if born out of nothingness, 99there appears before the portal of this hellish labyrinth, only a few fathoms distant,—a great sailing-ship gliding silently along like a ghost. Oh, this ghostly beauty! With what enchantment it seizes me! What? Has all the repose and silence in the world embarked here? Does my happiness itself sit in this quiet place, my happier ego, my second immortalised self? Still not dead, yet also no longer living? As a ghost-like, calm, gazing, gliding, sweeping, neutral being? Similar to the ship, which, with its white sails, like an immense butterfly, passes over the dark sea! Yes! Passing over existence! That is it! That would be it!——It seems that the noise here has made me a visionary? All great noise causes one to place happiness in the calm and the distance. When a man is in the midst of his hubbub, in the midst of the breakers of his plots and plans, he there sees perhaps calm, enchanting beings glide past him, for whose happiness and retirement he longs—they are women. He almost thinks that there with the women dwells his better self; that in these calm places even the loudest breakers become still as death, and life itself a dream of life. But still! But still! My noble enthusiast, there is also in the most beautiful sailing-ship so much noise and bustling, and alas, so much petty, pitiable bustling! The enchantment and the most powerful effect of women is, to use the language of philosophers, an effect at a distance, an actio in distans; there belongs thereto, however, primarily and above all,—distance!

Women and their Effect in the Distance.—Do I still have ears? Am I just ears, and nothing more? Here I am, right in the middle of the crashing waves, their white surf hurling up to my feet; from all around, there's howling, threatening, crying, and screaming towards me, while deep below, the ancient earth-shaker sings his song, hollow like a roaring bull; he keeps a beat so powerful that even the hearts of these weathered rock-monsters quiver at the sound. Then, suddenly, as if appearing from thin air, 99a magnificent sailing ship appears at the entrance of this hellish maze, just a short distance away, gliding silently like a ghost. Oh, this ghostly beauty! How it enchants me! What? Has all the peace and quiet in the world found its way aboard this ship? Is my happiness itself sitting in this serene place, my more joyful self, my second immortal self? Not dead, yet also not truly alive? Like a ghostly, calm, watching, gliding, sweeping, neutral being? Just like the ship, which, with its white sails, floats over the dark sea like a gigantic butterfly! Yes! Passing over existence! That’s it! That would be it!——It seems that all this noise has turned me into a dreamer? All great noise makes one seek happiness in calmness and distance. When a person is caught up in his chaos, in the middle of the turmoil of his schemes and ideas, he might see calm, enchanting beings gliding past him, whose happiness and tranquility he longs for—they are women. He almost believes that among those women resides his better self; that in these tranquil spots, even the loudest waves become still as death, and life itself turns into a dream of existence. But still! But still! My noble enthusiast, even in the most beautiful sailing ship, there is so much noise and commotion, and sadly, so much trivial, pitiable bustling! The enchantment and the most powerful effect of women is, to put it in philosophical terms, an effect from a distance, an actio in distans; but for that to happen, first and foremost—distance!

100

61.

In Honour of Friendship.—That the sentiment of friendship was regarded by antiquity as the highest sentiment, higher even than the most vaunted pride of the self-sufficient and wise, yea as it were its sole and still holier brotherhood, is very well expressed by the story of the Macedonian king who made the present of a talent to a cynical Athenian philosopher from whom he received it back again. "What?" said the king, "has he then no friend?" He therewith meant to say, "I honour this pride of the wise and independent man, but I should have honoured his humanity still higher if the friend in him had gained the victory over his pride. The philosopher has lowered himself in my estimation, for he showed that he did not know one of the two highest sentiments—and in fact the higher of them!"

In Honor of Friendship.—Ancient cultures viewed friendship as the greatest sentiment, even more esteemed than the pride of the self-sufficient and wise. This is nicely illustrated by the story of the Macedonian king who gifted a talent to a cynical Athenian philosopher, only to have it returned to him. "What?" asked the king, "does he really have no friend?" He meant to convey, "I respect the pride of the wise and independent person, but I would respect his humanity even more if his friendship had triumphed over his pride. The philosopher has diminished himself in my eyes by showing he was unaware of one of the two highest sentiments—and, in fact, the higher one!"

62.

Love.—Love pardons even the passion of the beloved.

Love.—Love forgives even the passion of the one who is loved.

63.

Woman in Music.—How does it happen that warm and rainy winds bring the musical mood and the inventive delight in melody with them? Are they not the same winds that fill the churches and give women amorous thoughts?

Woman in Music.—How is it that warm, rainy winds create a musical vibe and spark creativity in melody? Aren't they the same winds that fill churches and inspire romantic thoughts in women?

64.

Sceptics.—I fear women who have become old are more sceptical in the secret recesses of their 101hearts than any of the men are; they believe in the superficiality of existence as in its essence, and all virtue and profundity is to them only the disguising of this "truth," the very desirable disguising of a pudendum,—an affair, therefore, of decency and of modesty, and nothing more!

Skeptics.—I worry that older women are more skeptical in the hidden corners of their hearts than men are; they see the superficiality of life as much as its deeper meaning, and all virtue and depth to them is just a cover for this "truth," which they find quite desirable to disguise—a matter of decency and modesty, nothing more!

65.

Devotedness.—There are noble women with a certain poverty of spirit, who, in order to express their profoundest devotedness, have no other alternative but to offer their virtue and modesty: it is the highest thing they have. And this present is often accepted without putting the recipient under such deep obligation as the giver supposed,—a very melancholy story!

Devotedness.—There are noble women with a certain lack of spirit who, in order to show their deepest devotion, have no other choice but to offer their virtue and modesty: it’s the greatest thing they possess. And this gift is often received without putting the recipient under as great a debt as the giver thought,—a very sad story!

66.

The Strength of the Weak.—Women are all skilful in exaggerating their weaknesses, indeed they are inventive in weaknesses, so as to seem quite fragile ornaments to which even a grain of dust does harm; their existence is meant to bring home to man's mind his coarseness, and to appeal to his conscience. They thus defend themselves against the strong and all "rights of might."

The Strength of the Weak.—Women are all adept at exaggerating their weaknesses; in fact, they're quite creative when it comes to their vulnerabilities, making themselves appear delicate, as if even a speck of dust could cause harm. Their role is to remind men of their roughness and to touch their conscience. In this way, they protect themselves against the powerful and all claims of superiority.

67.

Self-dissembling.—She loves him now and has since been looking forth with as quiet confidence as a cow; but alas! It was precisely his delight that she seemed so fitful and absolutely incomprehensible! He had rather too much steady weather 102in himself already! Would she not do well to feign her old character? to feign indifference? Does not—love itself advise her to do so? Vivat comœdia!

Self-dissembling.—She loves him now and has been looking out with as calm confidence as a cow; but unfortunately! It was exactly his pleasure that she seemed so changeable and completely puzzling! He already had quite a bit of steady mood himself! Shouldn't she pretend to be her old self? To pretend to be indifferent? Doesn’t—love itself suggest that she do so? Long live the comedy!

68.

Will and Willingness.—Some one brought a youth to a wise man and said, "See, this is one who is being corrupted by women!" The wise man shook his head and smiled. "It is men," he called out, "who corrupt women; and everything that women lack should be atoned for and improved in men,—for man creates for himself the ideal of woman, and woman moulds herself according to this ideal."—"You are too tender-hearted towards women," said one of the bystanders, "you do not know them!" The wise man answered: "Man's attribute is will, woman's attribute is willingness,—such is the law of the sexes, verily! a hard law for woman! All human beings are innocent of their existence, women, however, are doubly innocent; who could have enough of salve and gentleness for them!"—"What about salve! What about gentleness!" called out another person in the crowd, "we must educate women better!"—"We must educate men better," said the wise man, and made a sign to the youth to follow him.—The youth, however, did not follow him.

Will and Willingness.—Someone brought a young man to a wise man and said, "Look, this guy is being led astray by women!" The wise man shook his head and smiled. "It’s men," he called out, "who lead women astray; everything women lack should be addressed and improved in men—because men create their ideal of women, and women shape themselves to fit this ideal."—"You're too soft on women," one bystander said, "you don’t really know them!" The wise man replied: "Men’s quality is will, while women’s quality is willingness—such is the law of the sexes, truly! It’s a tough law for women! All human beings are innocent in their existence; however, women are doubly innocent. Who could ever have enough compassion and kindness for them!"—"What about compassion! What about kindness!" shouted another person in the crowd, "we need to educate women better!"—"We need to educate men better," said the wise man, signaling for the young man to come with him.—However, the young man did not follow him.

69.

Capacity for Revenge.—That a person cannot and consequently will not defend himself, does not yet cast disgrace upon him in our eyes; but 103we despise the person who has neither the ability nor the good-will for revenge—whether it be a man or a woman. Would a woman be able to captivate us (or, as people say, to "fetter" us) whom we did not credit with knowing how to employ the dagger (any kind of dagger) skilfully against us under certain circumstances? Or against herself; which in a certain case might be the severest revenge (the Chinese revenge).

Capacity for Revenge.—Just because someone can't or won't defend themselves doesn't make us look down on them; however, we do look down on someone who lacks both the ability and the desire for revenge—whether it's a man or a woman. Would a woman be able to captivate us (or, as people say, to "fetter" us) if we didn't believe she knew how to skillfully use a dagger (any kind of dagger) against us in certain situations? Or even against herself, which in some cases might be the harshest form of revenge (the Chinese revenge).

70.

The Mistresses of the Masters.—A powerful contralto voice, as we occasionally hear it in the theatre, raises suddenly for us the curtain on possibilities in which we usually do not believe; all at once we are convinced that somewhere in the world there may be women with high, heroic, royal souls, capable and prepared for magnificent remonstrances, resolutions, and self-sacrifices, capable and prepared for domination over men, because in them the best in man, superior to sex, has become a corporeal ideal. To be sure, it is not the intention of the theatre that such voices should give such a conception of women; they are usually intended to represent the ideal male lover, for example, a Romeo; but, to judge by my experience, the theatre regularly miscalculates here, and the musician also, who expects such effects from such a voice. People do not believe in these lovers; these voices still contain a tinge of the motherly and housewifely character, and most of all when love is in their tone.

The Mistresses of the Masters.—A powerful contralto voice, like the ones we sometimes hear in the theater, suddenly opens up a world of possibilities that we usually don’t believe in; we are suddenly convinced that somewhere out there, women exist with high, heroic, noble spirits, capable and ready for grand protests, resolutions, and self-sacrifice, able and prepared to dominate over men, because in them, the best in humanity, transcending gender, has become a tangible ideal. Of course, the theater doesn’t aim for such voices to convey this image of women; they’re typically meant to embody the ideal male lover, like a Romeo, for instance; but, based on my experience, the theater often misjudges this, as does the musician who expects such results from such a voice. People don't believe in these lovers; these voices still carry a hint of the maternal and domestic, especially when love is in their tone.

104

71.

On Female Chastity.—There is something quite astonishing and extraordinary in the education of women of the higher class; indeed, there is perhaps nothing more paradoxical. All the world is agreed to educate them with as much ignorance as possible in eroticis, and to inspire their soul with a profound shame of such things, and the extremest impatience and horror at the suggestion of them. It is really here only that all the "honour" of woman is at stake; what would one not forgive them in other respects! But here they are intended to remain ignorant to the very backbone:—they are intended to have neither eyes, ears, words, nor thoughts for this, their "wickedness"; indeed knowledge here is already evil. And then! To be hurled as with an awful thunderbolt into reality and knowledge with marriage—and indeed by him whom they most love and esteem: to have to encounter love and shame in contradiction, yea, to have to feel rapture, abandonment, duty, sympathy, and fright at the unexpected proximity of God and animal, and whatever else besides! all at once!—There, in fact, a psychic entanglement has been effected which is quite unequalled! Even the sympathetic curiosity of the wisest discerner of men does not suffice to divine how this or that woman gets along with the solution of this enigma and the enigma of this solution; what dreadful, far-reaching suspicions must awaken thereby in the poor unhinged soul; and forsooth, how the ultimate philosophy and scepticism of the woman casts anchor at this 105point!—Afterwards the same profound silence as before: and often even a silence to herself, a shutting of her eyes to herself.—Young wives on that account make great efforts to appear superficial and thoughtless; the most ingenious of them simulate a kind of impudence.—Wives easily feel their husbands as a question-mark to their honour, and their children as an apology or atonement,—they require children, and wish for them in quite another spirit than a husband wishes for them.—In short, one cannot be gentle enough towards women!

On Female Chastity.—There's something quite astonishing and extraordinary about the education of upper-class women; in fact, it's possibly the most paradoxical of all. Everyone agrees to raise them with as much ignorance as possible about sexual matters and to instill deep shame in their souls regarding such topics, along with extreme impatience and horror at any suggestion of them. It really is here that all of a woman's "honor" is at stake; what wouldn’t we forgive them for in other respects! But in this area, they are meant to remain utterly clueless: they’re intended to have no eyes, ears, words, or thoughts about their supposed "wickedness"; indeed, knowledge in this realm is already seen as sinful. And then! To be suddenly thrust into reality and knowledge through marriage—especially with the one they love the most: to face love and shame in stark contrast, to feel ecstasy, abandonment, obligation, empathy, and fear at the unexpected closeness of the divine and the animalistic, and everything else mixed in! all at once!—Here, a psychological knot has been tied that is truly unmatched! Even the keenest observer of human nature cannot figure out how this or that woman copes with this riddle and the riddle of its resolution; what dreadful, far-reaching doubts must arise in her troubled soul; and indeed, how the ultimate philosophy and skepticism of woman finds its grounding at this 105 point!—Afterward, the same deep silence as before: and often even a silence toward herself, a shutting of her eyes to her own thoughts.—Young wives, for this reason, strive hard to seem shallow and carefree; the most clever among them fake a kind of boldness.—Wives often perceive their husbands as a question mark to their honor, and their children as a means of apology or atonement—they desire children, and wish for them in a way quite different from how a husband wishes for them.—In short, one cannot be gentle enough toward women!

72.

Mothers.—Animals think differently from men with respect to females; with them the female is regarded as the productive being. There is no paternal love among them, but there is such a thing as love of the children of a beloved, and habituation to them. In the young, the females find gratification for their lust of dominion; the young are a property, an occupation, something quite comprehensible to them, with which they can chatter: all this conjointly is maternal love,—it is to be compared to the love of the artist for his work. Pregnancy has made the females gentler, more expectant, more timid, more submissively inclined; and similarly intellectual pregnancy engenders the character of the contemplative, who are allied to women in character:—they are the masculine mothers.—Among animals the masculine sex is regarded as the beautiful sex.

Mothers.—Animals think differently from humans when it comes to females; for them, the female is seen as the one who gives life. There isn’t any paternal love, but there is a type of love for the offspring of a beloved and a familiarity with them. In young animals, females find satisfaction in their desire for control; the young are like property, a responsibility, something they understand and can engage with: all of this together constitutes maternal love—it’s comparable to the love an artist has for their work. Pregnancy makes females softer, more expectant, more cautious, and more likely to submit; likewise, intellectual engagement fosters a contemplative character that is similar to that of women: they are like masculine mothers. Among animals, the male sex is often considered the more attractive one.

106

73.

Saintly Cruelty.—A man holding a newly born child in his hands came to a saint. "What should I do with the child," he asked, "it is wretched, deformed, and has not even enough of life to die." "Kill it," cried the saint with a dreadful voice, "kill it, and then hold it in thy arms for three days and three nights to brand it on thy memory:—thus wilt thou never again beget a child when it is not the time for thee to beget."—When the man had heard this he went away disappointed; and many found fault with the saint because he had advised cruelty, for he had advised to kill the child. "But is it not more cruel to let it live?" asked the saint.

Saintly Cruelty.—A man holding a newborn baby approached a saint. "What should I do with this child?" he asked. "It's miserable, deformed, and doesn't even have enough life to die." "Kill it," the saint replied in a chilling voice, "kill it, and then hold it in your arms for three days and three nights to imprint it in your memory: this way, you will never again conceive a child when it’s not the right time for you to do so." After hearing this, the man left feeling disappointed; many criticized the saint for advising such cruelty, as he suggested killing the child. "But isn't it more cruel to let it live?" the saint asked.

74.

The Unsuccessful.—Those poor women always fail of success who become agitated and uncertain, and talk too much in presence of him whom they love; for men are most successfully seduced by a certain subtle and phlegmatic tenderness.

The Unsuccessful.—Those poor women always fail to succeed when they become anxious and unsure, and talk too much in front of the man they love; because men are most effectively attracted by a certain subtle and calm tenderness.

75.

The Third Sex.—"A small man is a paradox, but still a man,—but the small woman seems to me to be of another sex in comparison with well-grown ones"—said an old dancing-master. A small woman is never beautiful—said old Aristotle.

The Third Sex.—"A short man is a contradiction, but still a man—but a short woman feels like a different gender compared to taller ones," said an old dance instructor. A short woman is never beautiful, said old Aristotle.

76.

The greatest Danger.—Had there not at all times been a larger number of men who regarded the 107cultivation of their mind—their "rationality"—as their pride, their obligation, their virtue, and were injured or shamed by all play of fancy and extravagance of thinking—as lovers of "sound common sense":—mankind would long ago have perished! Incipient insanity has hovered, and hovers continually over mankind as its greatest danger: that is precisely the breaking out of inclination in feeling, seeing, and hearing; the enjoyment of the unruliness of the mind; the delight in human unreason. It is not truth and certainty that is the antithesis of the world of the insane, but the universality and all-obligatoriness of a belief, in short, non-voluntariness in forming opinions. And the greatest labour of human beings hitherto has been to agree with one another regarding a great many things, and to impose upon themselves a law of agreement—indifferent whether these things are true or false. This is the discipline of the mind which has preserved mankind;—but the counter-impulses are still so powerful that one can really speak of the future of mankind with little confidence. The ideas of things still continually shift and move, and will perhaps alter more than ever in the future; it is continually the most select spirits themselves who strive against universal obligatoriness—the investigators of truth above all! The accepted belief, as the belief of all the world, continually engenders a disgust and a new longing in the more ingenious minds; and already the slow tempo which it demands for all intellectual processes (the imitation of the tortoise, which is here recognised as the rule) 108makes the artists and poets runaways:—it is in these impatient spirits that a downright delight in delirium breaks out, because delirium has such a joyful tempo! Virtuous intellects, therefore, are needed—ah! I want to use the least ambiguous word,—virtuous stupidity is needed, imperturbable conductors of the slow spirits are needed, in order that the faithful of the great collective belief may remain with one another and dance their dance further: it is a necessity of the first importance that here enjoins and demands. We others are the exceptions and the danger,—we eternally need protection!—Well, there can actually be something said in favour of the exceptions provided that they never want to become the rule.

The greatest Danger.—If there hadn't always been a larger number of people who viewed the cultivation of their minds—their "rationality"—as their pride, obligation, and virtue, and who felt harmed or ashamed by any fanciful thinking and extravagance—as proponents of "sound common sense":—humanity would have perished long ago! Emerging insanity has been, and continues to be, humanity's greatest danger: it's the very outbreak of inclination in feeling, seeing, and hearing; the enjoyment of a restless mind; the pleasure in human unreason. The opposite of the world of the insane isn't truth and certainty, but rather the universality and compulsory nature of belief, in short, the lack of freedom in forming opinions. The greatest effort of humanity has been to find agreement on many issues and to impose upon themselves a law of agreement—regardless of whether these things are true or false. This discipline of the mind has preserved humanity;—but the counter-forces are still so strong that we can hardly speak of a confident future for mankind. The ideas of things are still constantly shifting and evolving, and they may change more than ever in the future; it is often the most exceptional minds themselves who resist universal obligation—the seekers of truth above all! The widely accepted belief, as the belief of everyone, perpetually creates disgust and a new longing in the more clever minds; and even now the slow tempo it requires for all intellectual processes (the imitation of the tortoise, which is recognized as the norm here) 108makes artists and poets want to escape:—it's within these impatient spirits that a genuine delight in delirium surfaces, because delirium has such a joyful tempo! Therefore, virtuous intellects are required—ah! I want to choose the least ambiguous term,—virtuous ignorance is needed, steady conductors of the slow minds are needed, so that the followers of the great collective belief can stay together and continue their dance: it is an urgent necessity that demands attention. We others are the exceptions and the danger,—we eternally need protection!—Well, there can actually be something to be said in favor of the exceptions as long as they never wish to become the rule.

77.

The Animal with good Conscience.—It is not unknown to me that there is vulgarity in everything that pleases Southern Europe—whether it be Italian opera (for example, Rossini's and Bellini's), or the Spanish adventure-romance (most readily accessible to us in the French garb of Gil Blas)—but it does not offend me, any more than the vulgarity which one encounters in a walk through Pompeii, or even in the reading of every ancient book: what is the reason of this? Is it because shame is lacking here, and because the vulgar always comes forward just as sure and certain of itself as anything noble, lovely, and passionate in the same kind of music or romance? "The animal has its rights like man, so let it run about freely; and you, my dear fellow-man, 109are still this animal, in spite of all!"—that seems to me the moral of the case, and the peculiarity of southern humanity. Bad taste has its rights like good taste, and even a prerogative over the latter when it is the great requisite, the sure satisfaction, and as it were a universal language, an immediately intelligible mask and attitude; the excellent, select taste on the other hand has always something of a seeking, tentative character, not fully certain that it understands,—it is never, and has never been popular! The masque is and remains popular! So let all this masquerade run along in the melodies and cadences, in the leaps and merriment of the rhythm of these operas! Quite the ancient life! What does one understand of it, if one does not understand the delight in the masque, the good conscience of all masquerade! Here is the bath and the refreshment of the ancient spirit:—and perhaps this bath was still more necessary for the rare and sublime natures of the ancient world than for the vulgar.—On the other hand, a vulgar turn in northern works, for example in German music, offends me unutterably. There is shame in it, the artist has lowered himself in his own sight, and could not even avoid blushing: we are ashamed with him, and are so hurt because we surmise that he believed he had to lower himself on our account.

The Animal with Good Conscience.—I know that there's a certain crudeness in everything that is popular in Southern Europe—whether it’s Italian opera (like Rossini’s and Bellini’s) or the Spanish adventure-romance (which we mainly access through the French version of Gil Blas)—but it doesn't bother me, just like the crudeness found during a stroll through Pompeii or even in reading ancient texts: what’s the reason for this? Is it because there's no shame here, and because the crude always presents itself as confidently as anything noble, beautiful, and passionate in the same type of music or story? "The animal has its rights just like humans, so let it roam freely; and you, my dear fellow human, are still this animal, regardless!"—that seems to be the moral of the story and the uniqueness of southern humanity. Bad taste has its rights just like good taste, and even a certain privilege over it when it fulfills a basic need, offering instant satisfaction, and serves as a kind of universal language, an immediately understandable mask and demeanor; in contrast, refined taste often carries a sense of seeking, something tentative, never completely confident that it understands—it is never, and has never been, popular! The masque is and remains popular! So let all this masquerade carry on within the melodies and rhythms of these operas! It’s just like ancient life! What does one truly comprehend of it, if one doesn’t grasp the joy in the masque, the good conscience of all masquerade! Here lies the cleansing and rejuvenation of the ancient spirit:—and perhaps this cleansing was even more essential for the rare and extraordinary individuals of the ancient world than for the ordinary. On the other hand, any crudeness in northern works, such as German music, deeply offends me. There is shame in it; the artist has diminished himself in his own eyes and couldn’t even avoid blushing: we feel ashamed along with him and are hurt because we suspect he thought he had to lower himself on our behalf.

78.

What we should be Grateful for.—It is only the artists, and especially the theatrical artists who have furnished men with eyes and ears to hear and 110see with some pleasure what everyone is in himself, what he experiences and aims at: it is only they who have taught us how to estimate the hero that is concealed in each of these common-place men, and the art of looking at ourselves from a distance as heroes, and as it were simplified and transfigured,—the art of "putting ourselves on the stage" before ourselves. It is thus only that we get beyond some of the paltry details in ourselves! Without that art we should be nothing but fore-ground, and would live absolutely under the spell of the perspective which makes the closest and the commonest seem immensely large and like reality in itself.—Perhaps there is merit of a similar kind in the religion which commanded us to look at the sinfulness of every individual man with a magnifying-glass, and to make a great, immortal criminal out of the sinner; in that it put eternal perspectives around man, it taught him to see himself from a distance, and as something past, something entire.

What We Should Be Grateful For.—It's the artists, especially those in theater, who give us the ability to see and hear the truth of what each person is, what they go through, and what they aspire to; they are the ones who teach us how to recognize the hero hidden within every ordinary person. They show us how to view ourselves from afar as if we are heroes, simplifying and transfiguring our lives — the skill of "putting ourselves on the stage" for our own examination. This is how we can rise above some of the trivial details of our existence! Without this art, we would be nothing but the foreground, trapped under the illusion that the closest and most mundane things are enormous and real in themselves. — Perhaps a similar value can be found in religion, which encouraged us to examine each individual's sinfulness with a magnifying glass and to transform the sinner into a great, immortal criminal; this approach surrounds humanity with eternal perspectives, teaching us to see ourselves from a distance, as something that has already happened, something complete.

79.

The Charm of Imperfection.—I see here a poet, who, like so many men, exercises a higher charm by his imperfections than by all that is rounded off and takes perfect shape under his hands,—indeed, he derives his advantage and reputation far more from his actual limitations than from his abundant powers. His work never expresses altogether what he would really like to express, what he would like to have seen: he appears to have had the foretaste of a vision and never the vision 111itself:—but an extraordinary longing for this vision has remained in his soul; and from this he derives his equally extraordinary eloquence of longing and craving. With this he raises those who listen to him above his work and above all "works," and gives them wings to rise higher than hearers have ever risen before, thus making them poets and seers themselves; they then show an admiration for the originator of their happiness, as if he had led them immediately to the vision of his holiest and ultimate verities, as if he had reached his goal, and had actually seen and communicated his vision. It is to the advantage of his reputation that he has not really arrived at his goal.

The Charm of Imperfection.—I see a poet here who, like many men, has a greater appeal because of his imperfections than through everything that is polished and perfect. In fact, he gains his reputation more from his constraints than from his many abilities. His work never fully captures what he truly wants to express, what he wishes he could have seen: it seems he has only caught a glimpse of a vision but never the actual vision itself. Yet, an intense longing for that vision remains in his soul, and from this longing springs his remarkable ability to express desire and yearning. With this, he elevates those who listen to him above his work and above all other "works," giving them the wings to soar higher than any audience has before, turning them into poets and seers themselves. They then admire the creator of their joy as if he had directly shown them the vision of his deepest and ultimate truths, as if he had reached his destination and truly seen and shared that vision. It actually benefits his reputation that he has not fully reached his goal.

80.

Art and Nature.—The Greeks (or at least the Athenians) liked to hear good talking: indeed they had an eager inclination for it, which distinguished them more than anything else from non-Greeks. And so they required good talking even from passion on the stage, and submitted to the unnaturalness of dramatic verse with delight:—in nature, forsooth, passion is so sparing of words! so dumb and confused! Or if it finds words, so embarrassed and irrational and a shame to itself! We have now, all of us, thanks to the Greeks, accustomed ourselves to this unnaturalness on the stage, as we endure that other unnaturalness, the singing passion, and willingly endure it, thanks to the Italians.—It has become a necessity to us, which we cannot satisfy out of the resources of actuality, to hear men talk well and in full detail in the most 112trying situations: it enraptures us at present when the tragic hero still finds words, reasons, eloquent gestures, and on the whole a bright spirituality, where life approaches the abysses, and where the actual man mostly loses his head, and certainly his fine language. This kind of deviation from nature is perhaps the most agreeable repast for man's pride: he loves art generally on account of it, as the expression of high, heroic unnaturalness and convention. One rightly objects to the dramatic poet when he does not transform everything into reason and speech, but always retains a remnant of silence:—just as one is dissatisfied with an operatic musician who cannot find a melody for the highest emotion, but only an emotional, "natural" stammering and crying. Here nature has to be contradicted! Here the common charm of illusion has to give place to a higher charm! The Greeks go far, far in this direction—frightfully far! As they constructed the stage as narrow as possible and dispensed with all the effect of deep backgrounds, as they made pantomime and easy motion impossible to the actor, and transformed him into a solemn, stiff, masked bogey, so they have also deprived passion itself of its deep background, and have dictated to it a law of fine talk; indeed, they have really done everything to counteract the elementary effect of representations that inspire pity and terror: they did not want pity and terror,—with due deference, with the highest deference to Aristotle! but he certainly did not hit the nail, to say nothing of the head of the nail, when he spoke about the 113final aim of Greek tragedy! Let us but look at the Grecian tragic poets with respect to what most excited their diligence, their inventiveness, and their emulation,—certainly it was not the intention of subjugating the spectators by emotion! The Athenian went to the theatre to hear fine talking! And fine talking was arrived at by Sophocles!—pardon me this heresy!—It is very different with serious opera: all its masters make it their business to prevent their personages being understood. "An occasional word picked up may come to the assistance of the inattentive listener; but on the whole the situation must be self-explanatory,—the talking is of no account!"—so they all think, and so they have all made fun of the words. Perhaps they have only lacked courage to express fully their extreme contempt for words: a little additional insolence in Rossini, and he would have allowed la-la-la-la to be sung throughout—and it might have been the rational course! The personages of the opera are not meant to be believed "in their words," but in their tones! That is the difference, that is the fine unnaturalness on account of which people go to the opera! Even the recitativo secco is not really intended to be heard as words and text: this kind of half-music is meant rather in the first place to give the musical ear a little repose (the repose from melody, as from the sublimest, and on that account the most straining enjoyment of this art),—but very soon something different results, namely, an increasing impatience, an increasing resistance, a new longing for entire music, for melody.—How is it with the art of 114Richard Wagner as seen from this standpoint? Is it perhaps the same? Perhaps otherwise? It would often seem to me as if one needed to have learned by heart both the words and the music of his creations before the performances; for without that—so it seemed to me—one may hear neither the words, nor even the music.

Art and Nature.—The Greeks (or at least the Athenians) loved good conversation: they had a strong preference for it, which set them apart from non-Greeks. So, they expected well-articulated dialogue even in emotional performances on stage and happily accepted the artificiality of dramatic verse:—in real life, after all, emotion is so sparing with words! So mute and confused! Or if it does express itself, it often sounds awkward and irrational, almost shameful! Thanks to the Greeks, we've all grown accustomed to this theatrical artificiality, just like we accept the other kind of artificiality—sung emotions, which we gladly embrace thanks to the Italians. It's become a necessity for us to hear people speak eloquently and in detail, even in the most challenging situations: we find it captivating when the tragic hero still manages to articulate thoughts, reasons, and expressive gestures, maintaining a bright spirit as life teeters on the edge of chaos, even when real people usually lose their composure and certainly their eloquence. This kind of deviation from nature is perhaps the most satisfying feast for human pride: we generally appreciate art for being a reflection of elevated, heroic artificiality and convention. We rightly criticize a playwright when he fails to turn everything into reasoned speech but instead leaves some parts in silence:—just like we feel dissatisfied with an operatic composer who can't find a melody for the highest emotion, only producing emotional, "natural" stammering and crying. Here nature must be contradicted! Here the common charm of illusion should give way to a higher charm! The Greeks really pushed boundaries—astoundingly far! They designed the stage to be as narrow as possible and eliminated any depth in the background, making pantomime and fluid motion impossible for the actors, transforming them into stiff, solemn figures. They've stripped passion of its depth and imposed a standard of refined dialogue; indeed, they've done everything to counter the fundamental impact of representations that evoke sympathy and fear: they did not want pity and terror,—with utmost respect to Aristotle! But he certainly missed the mark, to put it mildly, when he discussed the ultimate purpose of Greek tragedy! Let's just consider what truly motivated the diligence, creativity, and rivalry of the Greek tragic poets—it was certainly not the intention to overwhelm the audience with emotion! The Athenian went to the theater to hear eloquent speech! And Sophocles achieved that eloquence!—forgive me this heresy! The situation is quite different with serious opera: all its composers work to ensure their characters are not easily understood. "An occasional word might help the inattentive listener; but overall, the situation must be self-explanatory,—the talking doesn’t matter!"—so they all believe, and that’s how they have all trivialized the words. Perhaps they've only lacked the courage to fully express their disdain for words: a little extra audacity in Rossini, and he might have let la-la-la-la be sung throughout—and it could have made perfect sense! The characters in opera are not meant to be taken “at their word,” but through their tones! That’s the difference, that’s the fine unnaturalness that draws people to the opera! Even the recitativo secco isn’t really intended to be heard as words and text: this kind of half-music is primarily meant to give the musical ear a brief respite (a break from melody, which is the most exquisite but also the most demanding enjoyment of this art)—but soon it leads to something else: an increasing impatience, a growing resistance, and a renewed longing for complete music, for melody. How does Richard Wagner’s art fit into this perspective? Is it perhaps similar? Or is it different? It often seems to me that one needs to know both the words and the music of his works by heart before attending the performances; because without that—at least to me—it seems one can’t appreciate either the words or the music.

81.

Grecian Taste.—"What is beautiful in it?"—asked a certain geometrician, after a performance of the Iphigenia—"there is nothing proved in it!" Could the Greeks have been so far from this taste? In Sophocles at least "everything is proved."

Grecian Taste.—"What’s beautiful about it?"—asked a certain mathematician after a performance of the Iphigenia—"nothing is proven in it!" Could the Greeks really have been so disconnected from this sense of beauty? In Sophocles, at least, "everything is proven."

82.

Esprit Un-Grecian.—The Greeks were exceedingly logical and plain in all their thinking; they did not get tired of it, at least during their long flourishing period, as is so often the case with the French; who too willingly made a little excursion into the opposite, and in fact endure the spirit of logic only when it betrays its sociable courtesy, its sociable self-renunciation, by a multitude of such little excursions into its opposite. Logic appears to them as necessary as bread and water, but also like these as a kind of prison-fare, as soon as it is to be taken pure and by itself. In good society one must never want to be in the right absolutely and solely, as all pure logic requires; hence, the little dose of irrationality in all French esprit.—The social sense of the Greeks was far less developed than that of the French in the 115present and the past; hence, so little esprit in their cleverest men, hence, so little wit, even in their wags, hence—alas! But people will not readily believe these tenets of mine, and how much of the kind I have still on my soul!—Est res magna tacere—says Martial, like all garrulous people.

Esprit Un-Grecian.—The Greeks were extremely logical and straightforward in their thinking; they didn’t grow tired of this, at least during their long period of prosperity, unlike the French who are too inclined to take little trips into the opposite. They really only tolerate logic when it shows its sociable politeness, its sociable selflessness, by indulging in numerous little detours into its opposite. To them, logic seems as essential as bread and water, but like these, it becomes sort of a prison meal when it’s taken alone and unadulterated. In good company, one should never insist on being right absolutely and entirely, which is what pure logic demands; hence, that little touch of irrationality in all French esprit.—The Greeks' social sense was much less advanced than that of the French, both now and in the past; thus, there’s so little esprit in their brightest minds, so little wit, even among their jokesters, hence—alas! But people are reluctant to accept these beliefs of mine, and how much of that kind I still carry in my heart!—Est res magna tacere—says Martial, like all talkative people.

83.

Translations.—One can estimate the amount of the historical sense which an age possesses by the way in which it makes translations and seeks to embody in itself past periods and literatures. The French of Corneille, and even the French of the Revolution, appropriated Roman antiquity in a manner for which we would no longer have the courage—owing to our superior historical sense. And Roman antiquity itself: how violently, and at the same time how naïvely, did it lay its hand on everything excellent and elevated belonging to the older Grecian antiquity! How they translated these writings into the Roman present! How they wiped away intentionally and unconcernedly the wing-dust of the butterfly moment! It is thus that Horace now and then translated Alcæus or Archilochus, it is thus that Propertius translated Callimachus and Philetas (poets of equal rank with Theocritus, if we be allowed to judge): of what consequence was it to them that the actual creator experienced this and that, and had inscribed the indication thereof in his poem!—as poets they were averse to the antiquarian, inquisitive spirit which precedes the historical sense; as poets they did not respect those essentially 116personal traits and names, nor anything peculiar to city, coast, or century, such as its costume and mask, but at once put the present and the Roman in its place. They seem to us to ask: "Should we not make the old new for ourselves, and adjust ourselves to it? Should we not be allowed to inspire this dead body with our soul? for it is dead indeed: how loathsome is everything dead!"—They did not know the pleasure of the historical sense; the past and the alien was painful to them, and as Romans it was an incitement to a Roman conquest. In fact, they conquered when they translated,—not only in that they omitted the historical: no, they added also allusions to the present; above all, they struck out the name of the poet and put their own in its place—not with the feeling of theft, but with the very best conscience of the imperium Romanum.

Translations.—You can gauge the historical awareness of an era by how it handles translations and its attempts to incorporate past times and literatures. The French during Corneille's time, and even during the Revolution, embraced Roman antiquity in a way that we wouldn't dare today—thanks to our greater historical insight. And as for Roman antiquity itself: how passionately, yet naively, it seized everything great and lofty from older Greek antiquity! They transformed these writings into their Roman context! They casually erased the ephemeral details that would normally signify a fleeting moment! This is how Horace occasionally translated Alcæus or Archilochus; similarly, Propertius translated Callimachus and Philetas (poets comparable to Theocritus, if we are allowed to judge): what did it matter to them that the original creator had experienced this or that, and had noted it in their poem!—As poets, they shunned the antiquarian, curious mindset that emerges before a true historical understanding; they disregarded those deeply personal traits and names, along with anything specific to a city, coast, or century, like their customs and masks, and instead positioned the present and the Roman perspective in front. They seemed to ask: "Shouldn't we reinvent the old for ourselves, and adapt ourselves to it? Shouldn't we be able to breathe our soul into this lifeless body? Because it is indeed lifeless: everything dead is so repulsive!"—They did not appreciate the joy of historical awareness; the past and the foreign were burdensome to them, and as Romans, it spurred them on toward a Roman victory. In fact, they triumphed when they translated—not just by omitting the historical context; no, they also injected references to the present; most importantly, they replaced the original poet's name with their own—not feeling like thieves, but with the utmost integrity of the imperium Romanum.

84.

The Origin of Poetry.—The lovers of the fantastic in man, who at the same time represent the doctrine of instinctive morality, draw this conclusion: "Granted that utility has been honoured at all times as the highest divinity, where then in all the world has poetry come from?—this rhythmising of speech which thwarts rather than furthers plainness of communication, and which, nevertheless, has sprung up everywhere on the earth, and still springs up, as a mockery of all useful purpose! The wildly beautiful irrationality of poetry refutes you, ye utilitarians! The wish to get rid of utility in some way—that is precisely what has elevated 117man, that is what has inspired him to morality and art!" Well, I must here speak for once to please the utilitarians,—they are so seldom in the right that it is pitiful! In the old times which called poetry into being, people had still utility in view with respect to it, and a very important utility—at the time when rhythm was introduced into speech, the force which arranges all the particles of the sentence anew, commands the choosing of the words, recolours the thought, and makes it more obscure, more foreign, and more distant: to be sure a superstitious utility! It was intended that a human entreaty should be more profoundly impressed upon the Gods by virtue of rhythm, after it had been observed that men could remember a verse better than an unmetrical speech. It was likewise thought that people could make themselves audible at greater distances by the rhythmical beat; the rhythmical prayer seemed to come nearer to the ear of the Gods. Above all, however, people wanted to have the advantage of the elementary conquest which man experiences in himself when he hears music: rhythm is a constraint; it produces an unconquerable desire to yield, to join in; not only the step of the foot, but also the soul itself follows the measure,—probably the soul of the Gods also, as people thought! They attempted, therefore, to constrain the Gods by rhythm and to exercise a power over them; they threw poetry around the Gods like a magic noose. There was a still more wonderful idea, and it has perhaps operated most powerfully of all in the originating of poetry. Among the 118Pythagoreans it made its appearance as a philosophical doctrine and as an artifice of teaching: but long before there were philosophers music was acknowledged to possess the power of unburdening the emotions, of purifying the soul, of soothing the ferocia animi—and this was owing to the rhythmical element in music. When the proper tension and harmony of the soul were lost a person had to dance to the measure of the singer,—that was the recipe of this medical art. By means of it Terpander quieted a tumult, Empedocles calmed a maniac, Damon purged a love-sick youth; by means of it even the maddened, revengeful Gods were treated for the purpose of a cure. First of all, it was by driving the frenzy and wantonness of their emotions to the highest pitch, by making the furious mad, and the revengeful intoxicated with vengeance:—all the orgiastic cults seek to discharge the ferocia of a deity all at once and thus make an orgy, so that the deity may feel freer and quieter afterwards, and leave man in peace. Melos, according to its root, signifies a soothing means, not because the song is gentle itself, but because its after-effect makes gentle.—And not only in the religious song, but also in the secular song of the most ancient times the prerequisite is that the rhythm should exercise a magical influence; for example, in drawing water, or in rowing: the song is for the enchanting of the spirits supposed to be active thereby; it makes them obliging, involuntary, and the instruments of man. And as often as a person acts he has occasion to sing, every action is dependent on the assistance of spirits: 119magic song and incantation appear to be the original form of poetry. When verse also came to be used in oracles—the Greeks said that the hexameter was invented at Delphi,—the rhythm was here also intended to exercise a compulsory influence. To make a prophecy—that means originally (according to what seems to me the probable derivation of the Greek word) to determine something; people thought they could determine the future by winning Apollo over to their side: he who, according to the most ancient idea, is far more than a foreseeing deity. According as the formula is pronounced with literal and rhythmical correctness, it determines the future: the formula, however, is the invention of Apollo, who as the God of rhythm, can also determine the goddesses of fate.—Looked at and investigated as a whole, was there ever anything more serviceable to the ancient superstitious species of human being than rhythm? People could do everything with it: they could make labour go on magically; they could compel a God to appear, to be near at hand, and listen to them; they could arrange the future for themselves according to their will; they could unburden their own souls of any kind of excess (of anxiety, of mania, of sympathy, of revenge), and not only their own soul, but the souls of the most evil spirits,—without verse a person was nothing, by means of verse a person became almost a God. Such a fundamental feeling no longer allows itself to be fully eradicated,—and even now, after millenniums of long labour in combating such superstition, the very wisest of us occasionally becomes the 120fool of rhythm, be it only that one perceives a thought to be truer when it has a metrical form and approaches with a divine hopping. Is it not a very funny thing that the most serious philosophers, however anxious they are in other respects for strict certainty, still appeal to poetical sayings in order to give their thoughts force and credibility?—and yet it is more dangerous to a truth when the poet assents to it than when he contradicts it! For, as Homer says, "The singers speak much falsehood!"—

The Origin of Poetry.—The fans of the fantastical in humanity, who also represent the idea of instinctual morality, come to this conclusion: "Even if utility has always been hailed as the highest deity, where does poetry come from in the world?—this rhythmic way of speaking that complicates rather than simplifies communication, yet has appeared everywhere on Earth and continues to appear as a mockery of all practical purpose! The wildly beautiful irrationality of poetry contradicts you, utilitarians! The desire to escape utility in some way—that's exactly what has uplifted humanity, inspiring us toward morality and art!" Well, I must, for once, speak on behalf of the utilitarians—they are so rarely right that it's almost pathetic! In the ancient times when poetry was born, people still viewed it through the lens of utility, and for an important reason—during the period when rhythm was introduced into speech, it reorganized the structure of sentences, dictated word choices, colored thoughts differently, making them more obscure, foreign, and distant: indeed a superstitious utility! It was believed that a human plea could resonate more profoundly with the Gods through rhythm since it was noticed that people remembered verses better than unmeasured speech. It was also thought that rhythmical beats allowed voices to carry further, making rhythmical prayers seem closer to the ears of the Gods. Above all, people wanted the advantage of the fundamental connection one feels within themselves when hearing music: rhythm imposes a necessary urge to give in, to join in; not just the movement of the foot, but the soul itself aligns with the melody—perhaps even the soul of the Gods, as people believed! They tried to constrain the Gods with rhythm and assert power over them; they wrapped poetry around the Gods like a magical noose. There was an even more extraordinary idea, which may have had the most significant influence in the creation of poetry. Among the Pythagoreans, it emerged as a philosophical principle and a teaching technique: but long before there were philosophers, music was recognized for its power to relieve emotions, purify the soul, and soothe the ferocia animi—thanks to the rhythmic element in music. When a person lost the proper balance and harmony of their soul, they needed to dance to the measure of the singer—that was the remedy of this healing art. Through this, Terpander calmed a riot, Empedocles soothed a madman, and Damon healed a lovesick youth; even the wild and vengeful Gods were treated for healing. Initially, it meant pushing the frenzy and wildness of their emotions to the extreme, making the furious mad and the vengeful intoxicated with revenge:—all the ecstatic rituals aim to release a deity's ferocia simultaneously, creating an orgy, so that the deity feels freer and calmer afterward and leaves humanity in peace. Melos, by its root, refers to a soothing means, not because the song itself is gentle, but because its residual impact brings about gentleness. And not just in religious songs, but also in the secular melodies of ancient times, the key requirement was for rhythm to wield a magical influence; for instance, in drawing water or rowing: the song serves to enchant the spirits thought to be active therein; it makes them compliant, involuntary, and servile to humanity. Whenever a person acts, there's an occasion to sing, every action relies on the help of spirits: magic song and incantation appear to be the original form of poetry. When verse started being used in oracles—the Greeks claimed the hexameter was invented at Delphi—the rhythm was also meant to exert a compelling influence. To make a prophecy—that originally implies (based on what seems to me the likely origin of the Greek word) to declare something; people believed they could ascertain the future by swaying Apollo to their side: he who, as per the oldest ideas, is much more than just a foresighted deity. Depending on how correctly the formula is pronounced in both literal and rhythmic accuracy, it determines the future: the formula is, after all, the invention of Apollo, who as the God of rhythm, can also dictate the fates of goddesses. Viewed and examined as a whole, was there ever anything more useful to the ancient superstitious types of humanity than rhythm? People could do everything with it: they could magically facilitate labor; they could summon a God to appear, to be nearby, and listen to them; they could shape their future according to their wishes; they could relieve their souls of any excess (of anxiety, mania, sympathy, or revenge), and even the most malevolent spirits—without verse, one was nothing, but through verse, one became almost divine. Such a deep-seated feeling can't be fully eradicated— even now, after millennia of struggling against such superstition, the wisest among us can still occasionally fall victim to the sway of rhythm, even if it's just that one perceives a thought to be truer when it has a meter and dances in a seemingly divine way. Isn't it quite ironic that the most serious philosophers, despite their craving for strict certainty in other areas, still rely on poetical sayings to give strength and credibility to their thoughts?—and yet, it poses a greater risk to truth when a poet agrees with it than when they contradict it! For, as Homer states, "The singers speak much falsehood!"—

85.

The Good and the Beautiful.—Artists glorify continually—they do nothing else,—and indeed they glorify all those conditions and things that have a reputation, so that man may feel himself good or great, or intoxicated, or merry, or pleased and wise by it. Those select things and conditions whose value for human happiness is regarded as secure and determined, are the objects of artists: they are ever lying in wait to discover such things, to transfer them into the domain of art. I mean to say that they are not themselves the valuers of happiness and of the happy ones, but they always press close to these valuers with the greatest curiosity and longing, in order immediately to use their valuations advantageously. As besides their impatience, they have also the big lungs of heralds and the feet of runners, they are likewise always among the first to glorify the new excellency, and often seem to be those who first of all called it good and valued it as good. 121This, however, as we have said, is an error; they are only faster and louder than the actual valuers:—And who then are these?—They are the rich and the leisurely.

The Good and the Beautiful.—Artists glorify constantly—they do nothing else,—and in fact, they glorify all those things and circumstances that are well-regarded, so that people can feel good or great, or thrilled, or happy, or wise because of them. Those select things and situations that are seen as essential for human happiness are what artists focus on: they are always on the lookout to discover these things and bring them into the world of art. What I mean is that they aren't the ones determining what happiness is or who the happy ones are, but they always get close to those who do, driven by curiosity and desire, in order to use their insights to their advantage. With their impatience, they also have the loud voices of announcers and the speed of runners, so they’re often among the first to celebrate the new excellence, and they often seem to be the ones who first declared it good and valued it as such. 121However, as we’ve said, this is a mistake; they are just quicker and louder than the actual evaluators:—And who are these evaluators?—They are the wealthy and the comfortable.

86.

The Theatre.—This day has given me once more strong and elevated sentiments, and if I could have music and art in the evening, I know well what music and art I should not like to have; namely, none of that which would fain intoxicate its hearers and excite them to a crisis of strong and high feeling,—those men with commonplace souls, who in the evening are not like victors on triumphal cars, but like tired mules to whom life has rather too often applied the whip. What would those men at all know of "higher moods," unless there were expedients for causing ecstasy and idealistic strokes of the whip!—and thus they have their inspirers as they have their wines. But what is their drink and their drunkenness to me! Does the inspired one need wine? He rather looks with a kind of disgust at the agency and the agent which are here intended to produce an effect without sufficient reason,—an imitation of the high tide of the soul! What? One gives the mole wings and proud fancies—before going to sleep, before he creeps into his hole? One sends him into the theatre and puts great magnifying-glasses to his blind and tired eyes? Men, whose life is not "action" but business, sit in front of the stage and look at strange beings to whom life is more than business? "This is proper," you say, "this 122is entertaining, this is what culture wants!"—Well then! culture is too often lacking in me, for this sight is too often disgusting to me. He who has enough of tragedy and comedy in himself surely prefers to remain away from the theatre; or, as the exception, the whole procedure—theatre and public and poet included—becomes for him a truly tragic and comic play, so that the performed piece counts for little in comparison. He who is something like Faust and Manfred, what does it matter to him about the Fausts and Manfreds of the theatre!—while it certainly gives him something to think about that such figures are brought into the theatre at all. The strongest thoughts and passions before those who are not capable of thought and passion—but of intoxication only! And those as a means to this end! And theatre and music the hashish-smoking and betel-chewing of Europeans! Oh, who will narrate to us the whole history of narcotics!—It is almost the history of "culture," the so-called higher culture!

The Theatre.—Today has once again filled me with strong and uplifting emotions, and if I could have music and art in the evening, I know exactly what music and art I would not want; specifically, none that would merely intoxicate its audience and stir them to a frenzy of intense and elevated feelings—those people with ordinary souls, who in the evening are not like victorious figures on triumphal chariots, but like worn-out mules who life has often driven hard. What would those people know about "higher moods," unless there were ways to induce ecstasy and idealistic prompts?—so they have their inspirations just like they have their drinks. But what is their drink and their drunkenness to me! Does the truly inspired person need wine? They look at the means and the methods designed to create an effect without real justification—with an imitation of the soul's high tide! What? One gives the mole wings and lofty dreams—right before going to sleep, before it burrows back into its hole? One sends it to the theater and puts huge magnifying glasses to its blind and weary eyes? People, whose life is not about "action" but about work, sit in front of the stage and observe strange beings for whom life is more than just business? "This is appropriate," you say, "this is entertaining, this is what culture demands!"—Well then! Culture too often escapes me, for this spectacle frequently disgusts me. Those who have enough tragedy and comedy within themselves likely prefer to stay away from the theater; or, as an exception, the entire process—theater, audience, and playwright included—becomes for them a genuinely tragic and comic performance, to the point that the actual piece matters little in comparison. For someone resembling Faust or Manfred, what do the Fausts and Manfreds of the theater mean to him!—though it certainly gives him something to ponder that such figures even appear in the theater. The deepest thoughts and passions presented to those who aren’t capable of thought and passion—but only of intoxication! And those are the means to this end! And theater and music are like the hashish and betel of Europeans! Oh, who will tell us the entire story of narcotics!—It’s almost the history of "culture," the so-called higher culture!

87.

The Conceit of Artists.—I think artists often do not know what they can do best, because they are too conceited, and have set their minds on something loftier than those little plants appear to be, which can grow up to perfection on their soil, fresh, rare, and beautiful. The final value of their own garden and vineyard is superciliously underestimated by them, and their love and their insight are not of the same quality. Here is a musician, who, more than any one else, has the genius for 123discovering the tones peculiar to suffering, oppressed, tortured souls, and who can endow even dumb animals with speech. No one equals him in the colours of the late autumn, in the indescribably touching happiness of a last, a final, and all too short enjoyment; he knows a chord for those secret and weird midnights of the soul when cause and effect seem out of joint, and when every instant something may originate "out of nothing." He draws his resources best of all out of the lower depths of human happiness, and so to speak, out of its drained goblet, where the bitterest and most nauseous drops have ultimately, for good or for ill, commingled with the sweetest. He knows the weary shuffling along of the soul which can no longer leap or fly, yea, not even walk; he has the shy glance of concealed pain, of understanding without comfort, of leave-taking without avowal; yea, as the Orpheus of all secret misery, he is greater than anyone; and in fact much has been added to art by him which was hitherto inexpressible and not even thought worthy of art, and which was only to be scared away, by words, and not grasped—many small and quite microscopic features of the soul: yes, he is the master of miniature. But he does not wish to be so! His character is more in love with large walls and daring frescoes! He fails to see that his spirit has a different taste and inclination, and prefers to sit quietly in the corners of ruined houses:—concealed in this way, concealed even from himself, he there paints his proper masterpieces, all of which are very short, often only one bar in length,—there only does he become quite 124good, great, and perfect, perhaps there only.—But he does not know it! He is too conceited to know it.

The Conceit of Artists.—I believe artists often don't realize what they do best because they're too full of themselves and focus on something grander than the simple beauty of their little creations that can thrive beautifully in their own space. They underestimate the true value of their own garden and vineyard, and their love and understanding aren't on the same level. There's a musician who, more than anyone else, has the talent for capturing the sounds associated with suffering and tortured souls, and he can even give voice to silent animals. No one matches him in portraying the colors of late autumn, that indescribably moving happiness of a final, fleeting joy; he knows just the right chord for those secret and strange midnight moments of the soul when cause and effect feel out of sync, and where something can appear "out of nothing." He draws his inspiration best from the deepest parts of human happiness, as if from a drained cup, where the most bitter and disgusting drops have ultimately mixed with the sweetest. He understands the weary shuffle of a soul that can no longer leap or even walk; he captures the shy glance of hidden pain, the understanding that brings no comfort, and the farewells that lack true acknowledgment; indeed, as the Orpheus of all hidden misery, he's greater than anyone else; and in fact, he's contributed much to art that was previously unspeakable and deemed unworthy of artistic expression, elements that could only be evaded by words, never fully grasped—many small, almost microscopic features of the soul: yes, he is the master of the miniature. But he doesn't want to be! His character longs for grand walls and bold frescoes! He fails to see that his spirit has a different taste and inclination, preferring to settle quietly in the corners of dilapidated buildings:—hidden this way, even from himself, he creates his true masterpieces, all of which are very brief, often just a single measure long,—it's only there that he becomes really good, great, and perfect, perhaps exclusively there.—But he doesn’t know it! He’s too full of himself to realize it.

88.

Earnestness for the Truth.—Earnest for the truth! What different things men understand by these words! Just the same opinions, and modes of demonstration and testing which a thinker regards as a frivolity in himself, to which he has succumbed with shame at one time or other,—just the same opinions may give to an artist, who comes in contact with them and accepts them temporarily, the consciousness that the profoundest earnestness for the truth has now taken hold of him, and that it is worthy of admiration that, although an artist, he at the same time exhibits the most ardent desire for the antithesis of the apparent. It is thus possible that a person may, just by his pathos of earnestness, betray how superficially and sparingly his intellect has hitherto operated in the domain of knowledge.—And is not everything that we consider important our betrayer? It shows where our motives lie, and where our motives are altogether lacking.

Earnestness for the Truth.—Earnest for the truth! What different things people understand by these words! The very same beliefs and methods of demonstration and testing that a thinker might see as a triviality in themselves, something they’ve felt ashamed of at one point or another—those same beliefs might give an artist, who engages with them and temporarily accepts them, the feeling that a deep earnestness for the truth has taken hold of them. They might even feel it’s admirable that, as an artist, they also show a strong desire for the opposite of what seems real. It’s possible for someone to, through their heartfelt seriousness, reveal just how superficially and sparsely their intellect has functioned in the realm of knowledge. —And isn't everything we consider important a betrayer? It reveals where our motivations lie and where they are completely absent.

89.

Now and Formerly.—Of what consequence is all our art in artistic products, if that higher art, the art of the festival, be lost by us? Formerly all artistic products were exhibited on the great festive path of humanity, as tokens of remembrance, and monuments of high and happy moments. One now seeks to allure the exhausted and sickly 125from the great suffering path of humanity for a wanton moment by means of works of art; one furnishes them with a little ecstasy and insanity.

Now and Formerly.—What does it matter all our artistic creations if we lose sight of the higher art, the art of celebration? In the past, all artistic works were showcased along the grand festive journey of humanity, serving as reminders and monuments of significant and joyful times. Today, we try to distract the weary and ailing from their struggles with fleeting moments of art; we offer them a taste of excitement and madness.

90.

Lights and Shades.—Books and writings are different with different thinkers. One writer has collected together in his book all the rays of light which he could quickly plunder and carry home from an illuminating experience; while another gives only the shadows, and the grey and black replicas of that which on the previous day had towered up in his soul.

Lights and Shades.—Books and writings vary among different thinkers. One author has gathered all the insights and knowledge he could quickly gather from a enlightening experience, while another only presents the shadows, and the gray and black reflections of what had once inspired him the day before.

91.

Precaution.—Alfieri, as is well known, told a great many falsehoods when he narrated the history of his life to his astonished contemporaries. He told falsehoods owing to the despotism toward himself which he exhibited, for example, in the way in which he created his own language, and tyrannised himself into a poet:—he finally found a rigid form of sublimity into which he forced his life and his memory; he must have suffered much in the process.—I would also give no credit to a history of Plato's life written by himself, as little as to Rousseau's, or to the Vita nuova of Dante.

Precaution.—Alfieri, as everyone knows, told a lot of lies when he shared the story of his life with his amazed peers. He did this because of the control he imposed on himself, for instance, in how he created his own language and forced himself to be a poet: he eventually found a strict form of greatness that he pushed his life and memories into; he must have gone through a lot of pain while doing it.—I also wouldn’t believe in a history of Plato's life written by himself, just as little as I would trust Rousseau's or Dante's Vita nuova.

92.

Prose and Poetry.—Let it be observed that the great masters of prose have almost always been poets as well, whether openly, or only in secret and 126for the "closet"; and in truth one only writes good prose in view of poetry! For prose is an uninterrupted, polite warfare with poetry; all its charm consists in the fact that poetry is constantly avoided, and contradicted; every abstraction wants to have a gibe at poetry, and wishes to be uttered with a mocking voice; all dryness and coolness is meant to bring the amiable goddess into an amiable despair; there are often approximations and reconciliations for the moment, and then a sudden recoil and a burst of laughter; the curtain is often drawn up and dazzling light let in just while the goddess is enjoying her twilights and dull colours; the word is often taken out of her mouth and chanted to a melody while she holds her fine hands before her delicate little ears—and so there are a thousand enjoyments of the warfare, the defeats included, of which the unpoetic, the so-called prose-men know nothing at all:—they consequently write and speak only bad prose! Warfare is the father of all good things, it is also the father of good prose!—There have been four very singular and truly poetical men in this century who have arrived at mastership in prose, for which otherwise this century is not suited, owing to lack of poetry, as we have indicated. Not to take Goethe into account, for he is reasonably claimed by the century that produced him, I look only on Giacomo Leopardi, Prosper Mérimée, Ralph Waldo Emerson, and Walter Savage Landor, the author of Imaginary Conversations, as worthy to be called masters of prose.

Prose and Poetry.—It's important to note that the great masters of prose have almost always been poets as well, whether openly or just in private. In truth, good prose is only written with poetry in mind! Prose is a continuous, polite struggle against poetry; its charm lies in the fact that it constantly avoids and contradicts poetry. Every abstract idea takes a jab at poetry and wants to be expressed in a mocking tone; all dryness and detachment aim to bring the lovely goddess into a charming despair. There are often moments of closeness and reconciliation, followed by sudden setbacks and bursts of laughter. The curtain is frequently drawn back, letting in bright light just while the goddess is enjoying her twilight and muted colors. Words are often plucked from her lips and sung to a melody while she covers her delicate little ears with her graceful hands—and thus, there are countless pleasures in this struggle, including the defeats, which the unpoetic, so-called prose writers know nothing about: they end up writing and speaking only bad prose! Warfare is the father of all good things; it is also the father of good prose!—There have been four truly unique and poetic individuals in this century who have achieved mastery in prose, a feat not easily accomplished in this time due to the lack of poetry, as we've mentioned. Not considering Goethe, who is rightly associated with the era that produced him, I only recognize Giacomo Leopardi, Prosper Mérimée, Ralph Waldo Emerson, and Walter Savage Landor, the author of Imaginary Conversations, as worthy of being called masters of prose.

127

93.

But why, then, do you Write?—A: I do not belong to those who think with the wet pen in hand; and still less to those who yield themselves entirely to their passions before the open ink-bottle, sitting on their chair and staring at the paper. I am always vexed and abashed by writing; writing is a necessity for me,—even to speak of it in a simile is disagreeable. B: But why, then, do you write? A: Well, my dear Sir, to tell you in confidence, I have hitherto found no other means of getting rid of my thoughts. B: And why do you wish to get rid of them? A: Why I wish? Do I really wish! I must.—B: Enough! Enough!

But why, then, do you write?—A: I don’t belong to those who think with a pen in hand; and even less to those who give in completely to their feelings while staring at an open ink bottle, sitting in their chair and looking at the paper. I’m always irritated and embarrassed by writing; it’s a necessity for me—just mentioning it as a metaphor is unpleasant. B: But why, then, do you write? A: Well, my dear Sir, to tell you in confidence, I haven’t found any other way of getting rid of my thoughts. B: And why do you want to get rid of them? A: Why do I want to? Do I really want to? I have to.—B: Enough! Enough!

94.

Growth after Death.—Those few daring words about moral matters which Fontenelle threw into his immortal Dialogues of the Dead, were regarded by his age as paradoxes and amusements of a not unscrupulous wit; even the highest judges of taste and intellect saw nothing more in them,—indeed, Fontenelle himself perhaps saw nothing more. Then something incredible takes place: these thoughts become truths! Science proves them! The game becomes serious! And we read those dialogues with a feeling different from that with which Voltaire and Helvetius read them, and we involuntarily raise their originator into another and much higher class of intellects than they did.—Rightly? Wrongly?

Growth after Death.—Those few bold statements about moral issues that Fontenelle included in his legendary Dialogues of the Dead were seen by his contemporaries as clever paradoxes and amusing wit; even the most discerning judges of taste and intellect found nothing more in them—indeed, Fontenelle himself may have thought the same. Then something unbelievable happens: these ideas become truths! Science validates them! The stakes get serious! And we approach those dialogues with a different perspective than Voltaire and Helvetius had, and we instinctively elevate their creator into a much higher category of intellect than they did.—Rightly? Wrongly?

128

95.

Chamfort.—That such a judge of men and of the multitude as Chamfort should side with the multitude, instead of standing apart in philosophical resignation and defence—I am at a loss to explain, except as follows:—There was an instinct in him stronger than his wisdom, and it had never been gratified: the hatred against all noblesse of blood; perhaps his mother's old and only too explicable hatred, which was consecrated in him by love of her,—an instinct of revenge from his boyhood, which waited for the hour to avenge his mother. But then the course of his life, his genius, and alas! most of all, perhaps, the paternal blood in his veins, had seduced him to rank and consider himself equal to the noblesse—for many, many years! In the end, however, he could not endure the sight of himself, the "old man" under the old régime, any longer; he got into a violent, penitential passion, and in this state he put on the raiment of the populace as his special kind of hair-shirt! His bad conscience was the neglect of revenge.—If Chamfort had then been a little more of the philosopher, the Revolution would not have had its tragic wit and its sharpest sting; it would have been regarded as a much more stupid affair, and would have had no such seductive influence on men's minds. But Chamfort's hatred and revenge educated an entire generation; and the most illustrious men passed through his school. Let us but consider that Mirabeau looked up to Chamfort as to his higher and older self, 129from whom he expected (and endured) impulses, warnings, and condemnations,—Mirabeau, who as a man belongs to an entirely different order of greatness, as the very foremost among the statesman-geniuses of yesterday and to-day.—Strange, that in spite of such a friend and advocate—we possess Mirabeau's letters to Chamfort—this wittiest of all moralists has remained unfamiliar to the French, quite the same as Stendhal, who has perhaps had the most penetrating eyes and ears of any Frenchman of this century. Is it because the latter had really too much of the German and the Englishman in his nature for the Parisians to endure him?—while Chamfort, a man with ample knowledge of the profundities and secret motives of the soul, gloomy, suffering, ardent—a thinker who found laughter necessary as the remedy of life, and who almost gave himself up as lost every day that he had not laughed,—seems much more like an Italian, and related by blood to Dante and Leopardi, than like a Frenchman. One knows Chamfort's last words: "Ah! mon ami," he said to Sieyès, "je m'en vais enfin de ce monde, où il faut que le cœur se brise ou se bronze—." These were certainly not the words of a dying Frenchman.

Chamfort.—That such a keen observer of people and society as Chamfort would align himself with the masses instead of maintaining a philosophical detachment and defense is hard for me to grasp, unless I consider this: there was an instinct in him that was more powerful than his intellect, and it had never been fulfilled: a hatred for all hereditary nobility; perhaps his mother's old and all too understandable animosity, which was ingrained in him through her love—a desire for revenge from his childhood, longing for the moment to pay back for his mother. Yet, the course of his life, his brilliance, and sadly, perhaps most of all, the noble blood running through his veins, had led him to rank himself among the noblesse—for many, many years! In the end, however, he could no longer bear the sight of himself, the "old man" living under the old régime; he fell into a violent, remorseful rage, and in this state donned the clothing of the common people as his form of self-punishment! His guilty conscience stemmed from his failure to seek revenge.—If Chamfort had been a bit more of a philosopher, the Revolution wouldn't have had its tragic irony and sharpest impact; it would have been seen as a far more mundane event and would not have held such a captivating sway over people's minds. But Chamfort's hatred and desire for revenge shaped an entire generation; and the most distinguished figures passed through his influence. Just consider that Mirabeau looked up to Chamfort as his superior and older self, from whom he sought (and tolerated) inspiration, warnings, and criticisms—Mirabeau, who belongs to a completely different realm of greatness, as one of the foremost statesman-geniuses of both the past and present.—Strange that, despite such a friend and supporter—we have Mirabeau's letters to Chamfort—this sharpest of all moralists has remained largely unfamiliar to the French, just like Stendhal, who perhaps possessed the most insightful vision and hearing of any Frenchman this century. Is it because the latter truly had too much of the German and the English in him for the Parisians to accept?—whereas Chamfort, a man well-versed in the depths and hidden motives of the soul, somber, suffering, passionate—a thinker who found laughter essential as life's remedy, and who felt almost defeated each day he went without laughter—seems much more like an Italian, connected by blood to Dante and Leopardi, than a Frenchman. Everyone knows Chamfort's last words: "Ah! mon ami," he said to Sieyès, "je m'en vais enfin de ce monde, où il faut que le cœur se brise ou se bronze—." These certainly weren’t the words of a dying Frenchman.

96.

Two Orators.—Of these two orators the one arrives at a full understanding of his case only when he yields himself to emotion; it is only this that pumps sufficient blood and heat into his brain to compel his high intellectuality to reveal itself. 130The other attempts, indeed, now and then to do the same: to state his case sonorously, vehemently, and spiritedly with the aid of emotion,—but usually with bad success. He then very soon speaks obscurely and confusedly; he exaggerates, makes omissions, and excites suspicion of the justice of his case: indeed, he himself feels this suspicion, and the sudden changes into the coldest and most repulsive tones (which raise a doubt in the hearer as to his passionateness being genuine) are thereby explicable. With him emotion always drowns the spirit; perhaps because it is stronger than in the former. But he is at the height of his power when he resists the impetuous storm of his feeling, and as it were scorns it; it is then only that his spirit emerges fully from its concealment, a spirit logical, mocking, and playful, but nevertheless awe-inspiring.

Two Orators.—Of these two orators, the first truly understands his case only when he allows himself to feel deeply; it's this emotional connection that fills his mind with enough energy and passion to showcase his high intellect. 130The second tries, from time to time, to do the same: to present his case loudly, passionately, and energetically with the help of emotion—but usually, he doesn't succeed. He quickly starts to speak unclearly and confusingly; he exaggerates, leaves out important details, and raises doubts about the validity of his argument. In fact, he senses this doubt himself, and the sudden switches to cold and unappealing tones (which make the audience question whether his emotions are genuine) are understandable. For him, emotion often overwhelms his reasoning; perhaps because it is stronger than in the first orator. However, he is at his best when he controls the intense storm of his feelings and, in a way, scoffs at them; only then does his true spirit come forth, a spirit that is logical, mocking, playful, and yet still impressive.

97.

The Loquacity of Authors.—There is a loquacity of anger—frequent in Luther, also in Schopenhauer. A loquacity which comes from too great a store of conceptual formulæ, as in Kant. A loquacity which comes from delight in ever new modifications of the same idea: one finds it in Montaigne. A loquacity of malicious natures: whoever reads writings of our period will recollect two authors in this connection. A loquacity which comes from delight in fine words and forms of speech: by no means rare in Goethe's prose. A loquacity which comes from pure satisfaction in noise and confusion of feelings: for example in Carlyle.

The Talkativeness of Authors.—There’s a talkativeness of anger—common in Luther, and also in Schopenhauer. A talkativeness that comes from having too many conceptual formulas, like Kant. A talkativeness that stems from joy in constantly new variations of the same idea: you can find it in Montaigne. A talkativeness of spiteful individuals: anyone who reads works from our time will remember two authors related to this. A talkativeness that comes from a love of beautiful words and expressions: not uncommon in Goethe's prose. A talkativeness that arises from simple enjoyment of noise and emotional chaos: for example, in Carlyle.

131

98.

In Honour of Shakespeare.—The best thing I could say in honour of Shakespeare, the man, is that he believed in Brutus and cast not a shadow of suspicion on the kind of virtue which Brutus represents! It is to him that Shakespeare consecrated his best tragedy—it is at present still called by a wrong name,—to him and to the most terrible essence of lofty morality. Independence of soul!—that is the question at issue! No sacrifice can be too great there: one must be able to sacrifice to it even one's dearest friend, though he be also the grandest of men, the ornament of the world, the genius without peer,—if one really loves freedom as the freedom of great souls, and if this freedom be threatened by him:—it is thus that Shakespeare must have felt! The elevation in which he places Cæsar is the most exquisite honour he could confer upon Brutus; it is thus only that he lifts into vastness the inner problem of his hero, and similarly the strength of soul which could cut this knot!—And was it actually political freedom that impelled the poet to sympathy with Brutus,—and made him the accomplice of Brutus? Or was political freedom merely a symbol for something inexpressible? Do we perhaps stand before some sombre event or adventure of the poet's own soul, which has remained unknown, and of which he only cared to speak symbolically? What is all Hamlet-melancholy in comparison with the melancholy of Brutus!—and perhaps Shakespeare also knew this, as he knew the other, by experience! Perhaps he also had 132his dark hour and his bad angel, just as Brutus had them!—But whatever similarities and secret relationships of that kind there may have been, Shakespeare cast himself on the ground and felt unworthy and alien in presence of the aspect and virtue of Brutus:—he has inscribed the testimony thereof in the tragedy itself. He has twice brought in a poet in it, and twice heaped upon him such an impatient and extreme contempt, that it sounds like a cry,—like the cry of self-contempt. Brutus, even Brutus loses patience when the poet appears, self-important, pathetic, and obtrusive, as poets usually are,—persons who seem to abound in the possibilities of greatness, even moral greatness, and nevertheless rarely attain even to ordinary uprightness in the philosophy of practice and of life. "He may know the times, but I know his temper,—away with the jigging fool!"—shouts Brutus. We may translate this back into the soul of the poet that composed it.

In Honor of Shakespeare.—The best thing I can say in honor of Shakespeare, the man, is that he believed in Brutus and never doubted the kind of virtue that Brutus represents! It is to him that Shakespeare dedicated his greatest tragedy—it’s still incorrectly named today—to him and to the most profound essence of high morality. Independence of spirit!—that’s the main issue! No sacrifice is too great for this: one must be willing to sacrifice even one’s closest friend, even if he is the most remarkable man, the pride of the world, the unmatched genius—if one truly values freedom as the freedom of great souls, and if this freedom is threatened by him:—that’s how Shakespeare must have felt! The elevation in which he places Cæsar is the most exquisite honor he could give to Brutus; it’s only in this way that he magnifies the inner struggle of his hero, and similarly the strength of character that could untie this knot!—And was it really political freedom that drew the poet to sympathize with Brutus—and made him an ally of Brutus? Or was political freedom just a symbol for something beyond words? Are we perhaps facing some dark event or experience of the poet’s own soul, which remains unknown, and of which he only dared to speak symbolically? What is all the melancholy of Hamlet compared to the melancholy of Brutus!—and maybe Shakespeare recognized this, as he knew the other, through experience! Maybe he also had his dark moments and his inner demons, just as Brutus faced them!—But regardless of any similarities or hidden connections, Shakespeare cast himself to the ground and felt unworthy and alien in the presence of Brutus’s character and virtue:—he has etched the proof of this in the tragedy itself. He has included a poet twice in it, and each time burdened him with such impatient and extreme disdain, that it sounds like a cry,—like a cry of self-loathing. Brutus, even Brutus, loses his temper when the poet appears, self-important, dramatic, and intrusive, as poets often are,—people who seem to be bursting with potential for greatness, even moral greatness, yet rarely achieve even ordinary integrity in the philosophy of action and life. "He may know the times, but I know his character,—get rid of the jesting fool!"—shouts Brutus. We can reflect this back into the soul of the poet who wrote it.

99.

The Followers of Schopenhauer.—What one sees at the contact of civilized peoples with barbarians,—namely, that the lower civilization regularly accepts in the first place the vices, weaknesses, and excesses of the higher; then, from that point onward, feels the influence of a charm; and finally, by means of the appropriated vices and weaknesses, also allows something of the valuable influence of the higher culture to leaven it:—one can also see this close at hand and without journeys to barbarian peoples, to be sure, somewhat refined and 133spiritualised, and not so readily palpable. What are the German followers of Schopenhauer still accustomed to receive first of all from their master:—those who, when placed beside his superior culture, must deem themselves sufficiently barbarous to be first of all barbarously fascinated and seduced by him. Is it his hard matter-of-fact sense, his inclination to clearness and rationality, which often makes him appear so English, and so unlike Germans? Or the strength of his intellectual conscience, which endured a life-long contradiction of "being" and "willing," and compelled him to contradict himself constantly even in his writings on almost every point? Or his purity in matters relating to the Church and the Christian God?—for here he was pure as no German philosopher had been hitherto, so that he lived and died "as a Voltairian." Or his immortal doctrines of the intellectuality of intuition, the apriority of the law of causality, the instrumental nature of the intellect, and the non-freedom of the will? No, nothing of this enchants, nor is felt as enchanting; but Schopenhauer's mystical embarrassments and shufflings in those passages where the matter-of-fact thinker allowed himself to be seduced and corrupted by the vain impulse to be the unraveller of the world's riddle: his undemonstrable doctrine of one will ("all causes are merely occasional causes of the phenomenon of the will at such a time and at such a place," "the will to live, whole and undivided, is present in every being, even in the smallest, as perfectly as in the sum of all that was, is, and will be"); his denial of the individual 134("all lions are really only one lion," "plurality of individuals is an appearance," as also development is only an appearance: he calls the opinion of Lamarck "an ingenious, absurd error"); his fantasy about genius ("in æsthetic contemplation the individual is no longer an individual, but a pure, will-less, painless, timeless subject of knowledge," "the subject, in that it entirely merges in the contemplated object, has become this object itself"); his nonsense about sympathy, and about the outburst of the principium individuationis thus rendered possible, as the source of all morality; including also such assertions as, "dying is really the design of existence," "the possibility should not be absolutely denied that a magical effect could proceed from a person already dead":—these, and similar extravagances and vices of the philosopher, are always first accepted and made articles of faith; for vices and extravagances are always easiest to imitate, and do not require a long preliminary practice. But let us speak of the most celebrated of the living Schopenhauerians, Richard Wagner.—It has happened to him as it has already happened to many an artist: he made a mistake in the interpretation of the characters he created, and misunderstood the unexpressed philosophy of the art peculiarly his own. Richard Wagner allowed himself to be misled by Hegel's influence till the middle of his life; and he did the same again when later on he read Schopenhauer's doctrine between the lines of his characters, and began to express himself with such terms as 135"will," "genius," and "sympathy." Nevertheless it will remain true that nothing is more counter to Schopenhauer's spirit than the essentially Wagnerian element in Wagner's heroes: I mean the innocence of the supremest selfishness, the belief in strong passion as the good in itself, in a word, the Siegfried trait in the countenances of his heroes. "All that still smacks more of Spinoza than of me,"—Schopenhauer would probably have said. Whatever good reasons, therefore, Wagner might have had to be on the outlook for other philosophers than Schopenhauer, the enchantment to which he succumbed in respect to this thinker, not only made him blind towards all other philosophers, but even towards science itself; his entire art is more and more inclined to become the counterpart and complement of the Schopenhauerian philosophy, and it always renounces more emphatically the higher ambition to become the counterpart and complement of human knowledge and science. And not only is he allured thereto by the whole mystic pomp of this philosophy (which would also have allured a Cagliostro), the peculiar airs and emotions of the philosopher have all along been seducing him as well! For example, Wagner's indignation about the corruption of the German language is Schopenhauerian; and if one should commend his imitation in this respect, it is nevertheless not to be denied that Wagner's style itself suffers in no small degree from all the tumours and turgidities, the sight of which made Schopenhauer so furious; and that, in respect to the German-writing Wagnerians, Wagneromania 136is beginning to be as dangerous as only some kinds of Hegelomania have been. Schopenhauerian is Wagner's hatred of the Jews, to whom he is unable to do justice, even in their greatest exploit: are not the Jews the inventors of Christianity! The attempt of Wagner to construe Christianity as a seed blown away from Buddhism, and his endeavour to initiate a Buddhistic era in Europe, under a temporary approximation to Catholic-Christian formulas and sentiments, are both Schopenhauerian. Wagner's preaching in favour of pity in dealing with animals is Schopenhauerian; Schopenhauer's predecessor here, as is well known, was Voltaire, who already perhaps, like his successors, knew how to disguise his hatred of certain men and things as pity towards animals. At least Wagner's hatred of science, which manifests itself in his preaching, has certainly not been inspired by the spirit of charitableness and kindness—nor by the spirit at all, as is sufficiently obvious.—Finally, it is of little importance what the philosophy of an artist is, provided it is only a supplementary philosophy, and does not do any injury to his art itself. We cannot be sufficiently on our guard against taking a dislike to an artist on account of an occasional, perhaps very unfortunate and presumptuous masquerade; let us not forget that the dear artists are all of them something of actors—and must be so; it would be difficult for them to hold out in the long run without stage-playing. Let us be loyal to Wagner in that which is true and original in him,—and especially in this point, that we, his disciples, remain loyal 137to ourselves in that which is true and original in us. Let us allow him his intellectual humours and spasms, let us in fairness rather consider what strange nutriments and necessaries an art like his is entitled to, in order to be able to live and grow! It is of no account that he is often wrong as a thinker; justice and patience are not his affair. It is sufficient that his life is right in his own eyes, and maintains its right,—the life which calls to each of us: "Be a man, and do not follow me—but thyself! thyself!" Our life, also ought to maintain its right in our own eyes! We also are to grow and blossom out of ourselves, free and fearless, in innocent selfishness! And so, on the contemplation of such a man, these thoughts still ring in my ears to-day, as formerly: "That passion is better than stoicism or hypocrisy; that straightforwardness, even in evil, is better than losing oneself in trying to observe traditional morality; that the free man is just as able to be good as evil, but that the unemancipated man is a disgrace to nature, and has no share in heavenly or earthly bliss; finally, that all who wish to be free must become so through themselves, and that freedom falls to nobody's lot as a gift from Heaven." (Richard Wagner in Bayreuth, Vol. I. of this Translation, pp. 199-200).

The Followers of Schopenhauer.—What we observe when civilized societies interact with those deemed barbaric is that the less developed culture often first adopts the vices, weaknesses, and excesses of the more advanced one. Then, they feel a certain charm, and ultimately, through these appropriated vices and weaknesses, they begin to absorb some of the positive influence of the higher culture. This can also be seen closely without needing to travel to distant tribes; it’s just a bit more refined and spiritualized, making it less obvious. Take the German followers of Schopenhauer, for instance: what do they initially take from their master? They must consider themselves quite barbaric in comparison to his superior culture and are easily captivated and seduced by him. Is it his straightforward, no-nonsense perspective, his tendency towards clarity and rational thinking—which can sometimes make him seem so English and different from typical Germans? Or perhaps it's the strength of his intellectual integrity, which endured a lifelong conflict between "being" and "willing," forcing him to contradict himself consistently in his written works on almost every point? Or his uncompromising stance on matters concerning the Church and the Christian God?—In this regard, he was purer than any German philosopher had been before him, living and dying "as a Voltairian." Or is it his timeless concepts about the intellectual nature of intuition, the inherent law of causality, the instrumental role of intellect, and the lack of free will? No, none of these truly enchant, nor are they perceived as enchanting. Rather, it's Schopenhauer's mystical uncertainties and his conflicting ideas in those instances where the practical thinker succumbed to the tempting urge to unravel the world’s mysteries: his unprovable theory of one will ("all causes are merely occasional triggers of the phenomenon of the will at such and such a time and place," "the will to live, both whole and undivided, is present in every being, even the smallest, as fully as in all that was, is, and will be"); his denial of the individual ("all lions are really just one lion," "the plurality of individuals is merely an illusion," and development is also just an illusion: he describes Lamarck’s opinion as "an ingenious, absurd error"); his notion of genius ("in aesthetic contemplation, the individual ceases to be an individual, becoming instead a pure, will-less, painless, timeless subject of knowledge," "the subject, by completely merging with the object being contemplated, becomes that object itself"); his questionable beliefs about sympathy, and the idea that the eruption of the principium individuationis creates the foundation of all morality; including claims such as, "dying is truly the purpose of existence," or "it should not be entirely dismissed that a magical effect could arise from a person who has already died":—these and similar extravagances and flaws of the philosopher are always the first to be adopted and taken as truth; for vices and absurdities are easier to replicate and don’t require a long learning process. But let’s talk about the most famous of the living Schopenhauerians, Richard Wagner.—He has experienced what many artists have before: he misinterpreted the characters he created and misunderstood the deep-seated philosophy unique to his art. Richard Wagner let himself be influenced by Hegel until the middle of his life, and later, he misread Schopenhauer’s ideas through the lens of his characters, using terms like "will," "genius," and "sympathy." Yet, it remains true that nothing contradicts Schopenhauer's essence more than the fundamentally Wagnerian traits in his characters: specifically, the innocence of extreme selfishness, the belief in strong emotion as inherently good, and, in brief, the Siegfried-like quality in the faces of his heroes. "All that leans more towards Spinoza than me," Schopenhauer would likely have remarked. No matter how valid Wagner’s reasons might be for exploring philosophies beyond Schopenhauer, his fascination with this thinker blinded him not only to other philosophers but also to science itself; his entire artistic expression increasingly aligns with Schopenhauerian philosophy, continually turning away from the higher aspiration to connect with human knowledge and science. Moreover, he is tempted by this philosophy's mystique (which could also allure someone like Cagliostro), and the unique sentiments and influences of the philosopher have consistently enticed him as well! For instance, Wagner's frustration with the decline of the German language is Schopenhauerian; and while one could commend his attempts in this area, it can't be denied that Wagner's own style suffers from the very pitfalls and excesses that infuriated Schopenhauer. Furthermore, there’s worry that among German-speaking Wagnerians, Wagneromania is becoming as dangerous as some forms of Hegelomania have been. Wagner’s disdain for Jews, whom he can’t acknowledge even in their grandest achievements, reflects a Schopenhauerian perspective: aren’t Jews the founders of Christianity? Wagner’s effort to portray Christianity as an offshoot of Buddhism and his ambition to usher in a Buddhist era in Europe, alongside a temporary alignment with Catholic-Christian beliefs and sentiments, are both distinctly Schopenhauerian. Wagner’s advocacy for compassion towards animals is also Schopenhauerian; previously, Voltaire had similarly opined, possibly using concern for animals to mask his animosity towards certain people and causes. Indeed, Wagner's contempt for science is evident in his teachings and is not driven by genuine kindness or compassion—nor by a true spirit at all, as is quite clear.—Ultimately, the specific philosophy of an artist matters little, as long as it doesn’t detract from their art. We must be cautious about developing an aversion to an artist due to occasional, perhaps misguided, pretentiousness; we must remember that all artists are somewhat performers—and they must be; it would be challenging for them to sustain themselves over time without the ability to play a role. Let’s remain loyal to Wagner in what is true and original within him,—particularly in this aspect: that we, his followers, stay true to ourselves in what is true and original in us. Let’s permit his intellectual quirks and neuroses, and in fairness, consider what peculiar resources and necessities such an art of his deserves to thrive and grow! It doesn’t matter that he is often misguided as a thinker; fairness and patience are not his priority. What matters is that he perceives his life as right, and he upholds that perception—his life calls to each of us: "Be a man, and don’t follow me—but follow yourself! Follow yourself!" Our lives should also strive to uphold their legitimacy in our own eyes! We, too, should grow and blossom from within, free and bold, in innocent selfishness! Thus, while reflecting on such a man, these thoughts still resonate in my mind today, as they did before: "That passion is better than stoicism or hypocrisy; that honesty, even in wrongdoing, is preferable to losing oneself by adhering to conventional morality; that a free individual can be just as capable of goodness as of evil, but that an unfree person is a disgrace to nature, lacking any share in earthly or heavenly joy; lastly, that all who want to be free must achieve that freedom themselves, and that freedom isn’t granted as a Heaven-sent gift." (Richard Wagner in Bayreuth, Vol. I. of this Translation, pp. 199-200).

100.

Learning to do Homage.—One must learn the art of homage, as well as the art of contempt. Whoever goes in new paths and has led many persons therein, discovers with astonishment how 138awkward and incompetent all of them are in the expression of their gratitude, and indeed how rarely gratitude is able even to express itself. It is always as if something comes into people's throats when their gratitude wants to speak, so that it only hems and haws, and becomes silent again. The way in which a thinker succeeds in tracing the effect of his thoughts, and their transforming and convulsing power, is almost a comedy: it sometimes seems as if those who have been operated upon felt profoundly injured thereby, and could only assert their independence, which they suspect to be threatened, by all kinds of improprieties. It needs whole generations in order merely to devise a courteous convention of gratefulness; it is only very late that the period arrives when something of spirit and genius enters into gratitude. Then there is usually some one who is the great receiver of thanks, not only for the good he himself has done, but mostly for that which has been gradually accumulated by his predecessors, as a treasure of what is highest and best.

Learning to Show Appreciation.—One must learn the art of appreciation, just as one learns the art of disdain. Anyone who forges new paths and leads many people along them is often amazed at how clumsy and unskilled they all are in expressing their gratitude, and how rarely gratitude can even find a way to express itself. It’s as if something gets stuck in people's throats when they try to voice their appreciation, resulting in nothing but mumbling and silence. The way a thinker manages to trace the impact of their ideas, along with their transformative and unsettling power, is almost comical: sometimes it seems like those who have been influenced feel deeply offended by it and can only defend their independence— which they feel might be at risk— through various inappropriate behaviors. It takes entire generations just to establish a polite way of expressing gratitude; it’s only much later that a sense of spirit and creativity truly enters into appreciation. By then, there is usually someone who becomes the main recipient of thanks, not just for the good they have done, but mainly for what has been gradually handed down to them by their predecessors, a collection of the finest and highest achievements.

101.

Voltaire.—Wherever there has been a court, it has furnished the standard of good-speaking, and with this also the standard of style for writers. The court language, however, is the language of the courtier who has no profession, and who even in conversations on scientific subjects avoids all convenient, technical expressions, because they smack of the profession; on that account the technical expression, and everything that betrays the specialist, 139is a blemish of style in countries which have a court culture. At present, when all courts have become caricatures of past and present times, one is astonished to find even Voltaire unspeakably reserved and scrupulous on this point (for example, in his judgments concerning such stylists as Fontenelle and Montesquieu),—we are now, all of us, emancipated from court taste, while Voltaire was its perfecter!

Voltaire.—Wherever there has been a court, it has set the standard for good speaking and, along with that, the standard for style among writers. However, court language is the language of courtiers who don’t have a specific profession and who, even when discussing scientific topics, steer clear of all convenient, technical terms because those suggest a profession; for this reason, technical language and anything that reveals one as a specialist is considered a flaw in style in countries with a court culture. Nowadays, when all courts have become exaggerated versions of the past and present, it’s surprising to see even Voltaire being incredibly reserved and careful about this (for example, in his assessments of stylists like Fontenelle and Montesquieu). We are now all free from court taste, whereas Voltaire was its refiner!

102.

A Word for Philologists.—It is thought that there are books so valuable and royal that whole generations of scholars are well employed when through their efforts these books are kept genuine and intelligible,—to confirm this belief again and again is the purpose of philology. It presupposes that the rare men are not lacking (though they may not be visible), who actually know how to use such valuable books:—those men perhaps who write such books themselves, or could write them. I mean to say that philology presupposes a noble belief,—that for the benefit of some few who are always "to come," and are not there, a very great amount of painful, and even dirty labour has to be done beforehand: it is all labour in usum Delphinorum.

A Word for Philologists.—It is believed that there are books so valuable and important that entire generations of scholars are well engaged when their efforts ensure these books remain authentic and understandable. Reaffirming this belief repeatedly is the goal of philology. It assumes that there are rare individuals out there (even if they aren’t visible) who truly know how to utilize such valuable books—those who perhaps write such books themselves or could write them. In essence, philology relies on a noble belief—that for the benefit of a few who are always “yet to come” and aren’t present, a significant amount of difficult and even messy work must be done beforehand: all of it is labor in usum Delphinorum.

103.

German Music.—German music, more than any other, has now become European music; because the changes which Europe experienced through the Revolution have therein alone found expression: it is only German music that knows how to 140express the agitation of popular masses, the tremendous artificial uproar, which does not even need to be very noisy,—while Italian opera, for example, knows only the choruses of domestics or soldiers, but not "the people." There is the additional fact that in all German music a profound bourgeois jealousy of the noblesse can be traced, especially a jealousy of esprit and élégance, as the expressions of a courtly, chivalrous, ancient, and self-confident society. It is not music like that of Goethe's musician at the gate, which was pleasing also "in the hall," and to the king as well; it is not here said: "The knights looked on with martial air; with bashful eyes the ladies." Even the Graces are not allowed in German music without a touch of remorse; it is only with Pleasantness, the country sister of the Graces that the German begins to feel morally at ease—and from this point up to his enthusiastic, learned, and often gruff "sublimity" (the Beethoven-like sublimity), he feels more and more so. If we want to imagine the man of this music,—well, let us just imagine Beethoven as he appeared beside Goethe, say, at their meeting at Teplitz: as semi-barbarism beside culture, as the masses beside the nobility, as the good-natured man beside the good and more than "good" man, as the visionary beside the artist, as the man needing comfort beside the comforted, as the man given to exaggeration and distrust beside the man of reason, as the crank and self-tormenter, as the foolish, enraptured, blessedly unfortunate, sincerely immoderate man, as the pretentious and awkward man,—and altogether 141as the "untamed man": it was thus that Goethe conceived and characterised him, Goethe, the exceptional German, for whom a music of equal rank has not yet been found!—Finally, let us consider whether the present, continually extending contempt of melody and the stunting of the sense for melody among Germans should not be understood as a democratic impropriety and an after-effect of the Revolution? For melody has such an obvious delight in conformity to law, and such an aversion to everything evolving, unformed and arbitrary, that it sounds like a note out of the ancient European regime, and as a seduction and re-duction back to it.

German Music.—German music has become European music more than any other genre, as it expresses the changes Europe underwent during the Revolution. Only German music captures the restlessness of the masses and the intense, artificial chaos that doesn’t even need to be overly loud. In contrast, Italian opera, for instance, only portrays the choruses of servants or soldiers, not "the people." Additionally, you can detect a deep bourgeois jealousy of the nobility in all German music, especially a jealousy towards esprit and élégance, which represent the qualities of a courtly, chivalrous, ancient, and confident society. This isn’t music like that of Goethe's musician at the gate, which pleased everyone "in the hall," including the king. It doesn’t have lines like: "The knights watched with a martial air; the ladies with bashful eyes." Even the Graces aren’t welcomed in German music without a hint of remorse; it’s only with Pleasantness, the country counterpart of the Graces, that Germans start to feel morally at ease—and as he moves from that point to his enthusiastic, educated, and often gruff "sublimity" (the Beethoven-like greatness), that sense of ease grows more and more. If we want to picture the man of this music, let’s imagine Beethoven as he appeared next to Goethe at their meeting in Teplitz: as semi-barbarism alongside culture, as the masses next to the nobility, as the easygoing man beside the refined and more than "refined" man, as the dreamer beside the artist, as the person in need of comfort beside the comforted, as the exaggerator and skeptic next to the rational person, as the eccentric and self-tormenter, as the crazy, entranced, blissfully unfortunate, sincerely excessive man, as the pretentious and clumsy person—ultimately, as the "wild man": this is how Goethe portrayed him, Goethe, the remarkable German, for whom a music of equal stature has not yet been found!—Finally, let’s think about whether the current, ever-growing disdain for melody and the diminishing appreciation for melodic music among Germans should be seen as a democratic indiscretion and a leftover effect of the Revolution. Melody embodies such a clear appreciation for structure and such a dislike for anything chaotic, unformed, and arbitrary that it feels like a remnant of the ancient European regime and a temptation to revert back to it.

104.

The Tone of the German Language.—We know whence the German originated which for several centuries has been the universal, literary language of Germany. The Germans, with their reverence for everything that came from the court, intentionally took the chancery style as their pattern in all that they had to write, especially in their letters, records, wills, &c. To write in the chancery style, that was to write in court and government style,—that was regarded as something select compared with the language of the city in which a person lived. People gradually drew this inference, and spoke also as they wrote,—they thus became still more select in the forms of their words, in the choice of their terms and modes of expression, and finally also in their tones: they affected a court tone when they spoke, and the affectation at last became 142natural. Perhaps nothing quite similar has ever happened elsewhere:—the predominance of the literary style over the talk, and the formality and affectation of an entire people, becoming the basis of a common and no longer dialectical language. I believe that the sound of the German language in the Middle Ages, and especially after the Middle Ages, was extremely rustic and vulgar; it has ennobled itself somewhat during the last centuries, principally because it was found necessary to imitate so many French, Italian, and Spanish sounds, and particularly on the part of the German (and Austrian) nobility, who could not at all content themselves with their mother-tongue. But notwithstanding this practice, German must have sounded intolerably vulgar to Montaigne, and even to Racine: even at present, in the mouths of travellers among the Italian populace, it still sounds very coarse, sylvan, and hoarse, as if it had originated in smoky rooms and outlandish districts.—Now I notice that at present a similar striving after selectness of tone is spreading among the former admirers of the chancery style, and that the Germans are beginning to accommodate themselves to a peculiar "witchery of sound," which might in the long run become an actual danger to the German language,—for one may seek in vain for more execrable sounds in Europe. Something mocking, cold, indifferent, and careless in the voice: that is what at present sounds "noble" to the Germans—and I hear the approval of this nobleness in the voices of young officials, teachers, women, and trades-people; indeed, even 143the little girls already imitate this German of the officers. For the officer, and in fact the Prussian officer is the inventor of these tones: this same officer, who, as soldier and professional man possesses that admirable tact for modesty which the Germans as a whole might well imitate (German professors and musicians included!). But as soon as he speaks and moves he is the most immodest and inelegant figure in old Europe—no doubt unconsciously to himself! And unconsciously also to the good Germans, who gaze at him as the man of the foremost and most select society, and willingly let him "give them his tone." And indeed he gives it to them!—in the first place it is the sergeant-majors and non-commissioned officers that imitate his tone and coarsen it. One should note the roars of command, with which the German cities are absolutely surrounded at present, when there is drilling at all the gates: what presumption, furious imperiousness, and mocking coldness speaks in this uproar! Could the Germans actually be a musical people?—It is certain that the Germans martialise themselves at present in the tone of their language: it is probable that, being exercised to speak martially, they will finally write martially also. For habituation to definite tones extends deeply into the character:—people soon have the words and modes of expression, and finally also the thoughts which just suit these tones! Perhaps they already write in the officers' style; perhaps I only read too little of what is at present written in Germany to know this. But one thing I know all the surer: the German public declarations 144which also reach places abroad, are not inspired by German music, but just by that new tone of tasteless arrogance. Almost in every speech of the foremost German statesman, and even when he makes himself heard through his imperial mouth-piece, there is an accent which the ear of a foreigner repudiates with aversion: but the Germans endure it,—they endure themselves.

The Tone of the German Language.—We know where the German language originated that has been the universal literary language of Germany for several centuries. The Germans, with their admiration for everything that came from the court, intentionally adopted the style of official documents as their standard in everything they had to write, especially in their letters, records, wills, etc. Writing in official style meant writing in the style of the court and government—this was considered more refined compared to the everyday language of the cities. Gradually, people started to adopt this and spoke as they wrote—they became even more selective in their word choices, expressions, and ultimately in their tones: they developed a courtly way of speaking, and this affected tone eventually became natural. Perhaps nothing quite like this has ever happened elsewhere:—the dominance of literary style over casual conversation, and the formality and pretension of an entire people, led to the establishment of a common language that was no longer just a dialect. I believe that the sound of the German language in the Middle Ages, and especially after that period, was very rough and unrefined; it has somewhat improved over the last few centuries, mainly because it became necessary to imitate many French, Italian, and Spanish sounds, particularly among the German (and Austrian) nobility, who were never satisfied with their native tongue. However, despite this trend, German must have sounded quite crude to Montaigne and even to Racine: even today, when spoken by travelers among the Italian populace, it still comes across as very coarse, rugged, and grating, as if it emerged from smoky rooms and remote regions.—Now I notice that a similar desire for refinement is spreading among former fans of the bureaucratic style, and that Germans are starting to adapt to a peculiar "witchery of sound," which could ultimately pose a real threat to the German language—because one could hardly find worse sounds in Europe. Something mocking, cold, indifferent, and careless in the voice: that is what currently sounds "noble" to the Germans—and I hear this approval of such nobility in the voices of young officials, teachers, women, and tradespeople; indeed, even little girls are already imitating this officer's German. For the officer, and specifically the Prussian officer, is the creator of these tones: this same officer, who, as a soldier and professional, possesses that admirable sense of modesty which the Germans as a whole could well imitate (German professors and musicians included!). But as soon as he speaks and moves, he is the most immodest and inelegant figure in old Europe—no doubt unconsciously to himself! And also unconsciously to the good Germans, who see him as the representative of the most elite society, and willingly let him "set their tone." And indeed, he does set it for them!—first, it is the sergeant-majors and non-commissioned officers who mimic his tone and make it coarser. One should observe the loud commands that currently surround German cities, especially during drill sessions at all the gates: what arrogance, furious imperiousness, and mocking coldness is evident in this noise! Could the Germans actually be a musical people?—It is certain that the Germans are currently adopting a martial tone in their language: it is likely that by becoming accustomed to speaking in a martial way, they will also start writing that way. Because getting used to certain tones runs deep into one's character:—people soon have the words and expressions, and ultimately the thoughts that fit these tones perfectly! Perhaps they already write in the officer's style; perhaps I just read too little of what is currently being written in Germany to know this. But one thing I know for sure: the public declarations from Germany that also reach abroad are not inspired by German music, but rather by that new tone of tasteless arrogance. Almost every speech from leading German statesmen, even when made through their imperial spokesperson, carries an accent that a foreign ear rejects with distaste: yet the Germans tolerate it—they tolerate themselves.

105.

The Germans as Artists.—When once a German actually experiences passion (and not only, as is usual, the mere inclination to it), he then behaves just as he must do in passion, and does not think further of his behaviour. The truth is, however, that he then behaves very awkwardly and uglily, and as if destitute of rhythm and melody; so that onlookers are pained or moved thereby, but nothing more—unless he elevate himself to the sublimity and enrapturedness of which certain passions are capable. Then even the German becomes beautiful. The perception of the height at which beauty begins to shed its charm even over Germans, raises German artists to the height, to the supreme height, and to the extravagances of passion: they have an actual, profound longing, therefore, to get beyond, or at least to look beyond the ugliness and awkwardness—into a better, easier, more southern, more sunny world. And thus their convulsions are often merely indications that they would like to dance: these poor bears in whom hidden nymphs and satyrs, and sometimes still higher divinities, carry on their game!

The Germans as Artists.—When a German truly feels passion (not just the usual inclination toward it), he acts as one would in passion and doesn’t think about his actions anymore. The reality, though, is that he often behaves quite awkwardly and clumsily, lacking rhythm and melody; onlookers might feel pained or moved, but that’s about it—unless he rises to the sublime and intense heights that certain passions can reach. Then even the German becomes beautiful. The realization of the level at which beauty can enchant even Germans elevates German artists to those heights, to the ultimate heights, and to the extremes of passion: they have a deep, genuine desire to rise above, or at least see beyond the awkwardness and clumsiness—into a more refined, easier, southern, sunnier world. Thus, their struggles are often just signs that they want to dance: these poor bears, where hidden nymphs and satyrs, and sometimes even higher divinities, are playing!

145

106.

Music as Advocate.—"I have a longing for a master of the musical art," said an innovator to his disciple, "that he may learn from me my ideas and speak them more widely in his language: I shall thus be better able to reach men's ears and hearts. For by means of tones one can seduce men to every error and every truth: who could refute a tone?"—"You would, therefore, like to be regarded as irrefutable?" said his disciple. The innovator answered: "I should like the germ to become a tree. In order that a doctrine may become a tree, it must be believed in for a considerable period; in order that it may be believed in it must be regarded as irrefutable. Storms and doubts and worms and wickedness are necessary to the tree, that it may manifest its species and the strength of its germ; let it perish if it is not strong enough! But a germ is always merely annihilated,—not refuted!"—When he had said this, his disciple called out impetuously: "But I believe in your cause, and regard it as so strong that I will say everything against it, everything that I still have in my heart."—The innovator laughed to himself and threatened the disciple with his finger. "This kind of discipleship," said he then, "is the best, but it is dangerous, and not every kind of doctrine can stand it."

Music as Advocate.—"I have a desire for a master of music," said an innovator to his disciple, "so he can learn from me my ideas and express them more broadly in his own way: this will help me reach more people's ears and hearts. With music, you can lead people to every error and every truth: who could argue against a melody?"—"So you want to be seen as unchallengeable?" asked his disciple. The innovator responded: "I want the seed to grow into a tree. For a belief to grow into a tree, it needs to be believed in for a long time; to be believed in, it must be seen as unchallengeable. Storms, doubts, pests, and evil are necessary for the tree to show its type and the strength of its seed; let it die if it’s not strong enough! But a seed can only be destroyed—not disproven!"—After saying this, his disciple exclaimed passionately: "But I believe in your cause, and I see it as so strong that I will voice everything against it, everything I still hold in my heart."—The innovator chuckled to himself and warned the disciple with a finger wag. "This type of following," he said, "is the best, but it’s risky, and not every doctrine can withstand it."

107.

Our Ultimate Gratitude to Art.—If we had not approved of the Arts and invented this sort of cult 146of the untrue, the insight into the general untruth and falsity of things now given us by science—an insight into delusion and error as conditions of intelligent and sentient existence—would be quite unendurable. Honesty would have disgust and suicide in its train. Now, however, our honesty has a counterpoise which helps us to escape such consequences;—namely, Art, as the good-will to illusion. We do not always restrain our eyes from rounding off and perfecting in imagination: and then it is no longer the eternal imperfection that we carry over the river of Becoming—for we think we carry a goddess, and are proud and artless in rendering this service. As an æsthetic phenomenon existence is still endurable to us; and by Art, eye and hand and above all the good conscience are given to us, to be able to make such a phenomenon out of ourselves. We must rest from ourselves occasionally by contemplating and looking down upon ourselves, and by laughing or weeping over ourselves from an artistic remoteness: we must discover the hero, and likewise the fool, that is hidden in our passion for knowledge; we must now and then be joyful in our folly, that we may continue to be joyful in our wisdom! And just because we are heavy and serious men in our ultimate depth, and are rather weights than men, there is nothing that does us so much good as the fool's cap and bells: we need them in presence of ourselves—we need all arrogant, soaring, dancing, mocking, childish and blessed Art, in order not to lose the free dominion over things which our ideal demands of us. It would be backsliding for us, 147with our susceptible integrity, to lapse entirely into morality, and actually become virtuous monsters and scarecrows, on account of the over-strict requirements which we here lay down for ourselves. We ought also to be able to stand above morality, and not only stand with the painful stiffness of one who every moment fears to slip and fall, but we should also be able to soar and play above it! How could we dispense with Art for that purpose, how could we dispense with the fool?—And as long as you are still ashamed of yourselves in any way, you still do not belong to us!

Our Ultimate Gratitude to Art.—If we hadn’t embraced the Arts and created this kind of cult around the untrue, the understanding of the overall falsehood and deceitfulness of things that science now provides—an understanding of delusion and error as part of intelligent and conscious existence—would be completely unbearable. Honesty would lead to disgust and suicide. However, our honesty now has a balance that allows us to avoid such outcomes; namely, Art, as the goodwill toward illusion. We don’t always hold back from enhancing and perfecting things in our imagination: then it’s no longer the endless imperfection that we carry across the river of Becoming—because we believe we carry a goddess, and we feel proud and natural in performing this task. As an aesthetic experience, existence is still endurable to us; and through Art, our eyes, hands, and especially our good conscience enable us to create such a phenomenon from ourselves. We must occasionally take a break from ourselves by reflecting on and observing ourselves, and by laughing or crying over ourselves from a distance: we need to find the hero, as well as the fool, hidden in our thirst for knowledge; we should sometimes revel in our folly so we can continue to find joy in our wisdom! And because we are deep down serious and heavy individuals, and tend to be more like weights than people, nothing benefits us more than the fool's cap and bells: we need them in the face of ourselves—we need all the arrogant, soaring, dancing, mocking, childish, and blessed Art, so we don’t lose the free dominion over things that our ideals demand. It would be backsliding for us, with our sensitive integrity, to completely fall into morality, to actually become virtuous monsters and scarecrows, due to the overly strict standards we impose on ourselves. We should also be able to rise above morality, not just stand stiffly, fearing we’ll slip and fall, but also be able to soar and play above it! How could we do without Art for that purpose, how could we do without the fool?—And as long as you are still ashamed of yourselves in any way, you still do not belong to us!

149

BOOK THIRD

151

108.

New Struggles.—After Buddha was dead people showed his shadow for centuries afterwards in a cave,—an immense frightful shadow. God is dead: but as the human race is constituted, there will perhaps be caves for millenniums yet, in which people will show his shadow,—And we—we have still to overcome his shadow!

New Struggles.—After Buddha died, people displayed his shadow for centuries in a cave—a massive, terrifying shadow. God is dead: yet given the nature of humanity, there will likely be caves for millennia to come where people will showcase his shadow—and we—we still have to conquer his shadow!

109.

Let us be on our Guard.—Let us be on our guard against thinking that the world is a living being. Where could it extend itself? What could it nourish itself with? How could it grow and increase? We know tolerably well what the organic is; and we are to reinterpret the emphatically derivative, tardy, rare and accidental, which we only perceive on the crust of the earth, into the essential, universal and eternal, as those do who call the universe an organism? That disgusts me. Let us now be on our guard against believing that the universe is a machine; it is assuredly not constructed with a view to one end; we invest it with far too high an honour with the word "machine." Let us be on our guard against supposing that anything so methodical as the cyclic motions of our neighbouring stars obtains generally and throughout the universe; indeed a glance at the 152Milky Way induces doubt as to whether there are not many cruder and more contradictory motions there, and even stars with continuous, rectilinearly gravitating orbits, and the like. The astral arrangement in which we live is an exception; this arrangement, and the relatively long durability which is determined by it, has again made possible the exception of exceptions, the formation of organic life. The general character of the world, on the other hand, is to all eternity chaos; not by the absence of necessity, but in the sense of the absence of order, structure, form, beauty, wisdom, and whatever else our æsthetic humanities are called. Judged by our reason, the unlucky casts are far oftenest the rule, the exceptions are not the secret purpose; and the whole musical box repeats eternally its air, which can never be called a melody,—and finally the very expression, "unlucky cast" is already an anthropomorphising which involves blame. But how could we presume to blame or praise the universe! Let us be on our guard against ascribing to it heartlessness and unreason, or their opposites; it is neither perfect, nor beautiful, nor noble; nor does it seek to be anything of the kind, it does not at all attempt to imitate man! It is altogether unaffected by our æsthetic and moral judgments! Neither has it any self-preservative instinct, nor instinct at all; it also knows no law. Let us be on our guard against saying that there are laws in nature. There are only necessities: there is no one who commands, no one who obeys, no one who transgresses. When you know that there is no design, you know 153also that there is no chance: for it is only where there is a world of design that the word "chance" has a meaning. Let us be on our guard against saying that death is contrary to life. The living being is only a species of dead being, and a very rare species.—Let us be on our guard against thinking that the world eternally creates the new. There are no eternally enduring substances; matter is just another such error as the God of the Eleatics. But when shall we be at an end with our foresight and precaution! When will all these shadows of God cease to obscure us? When shall we have nature entirely undeified! When shall we be permitted to naturalise ourselves by means of the pure, newly discovered, newly redeemed nature?

Let’s be cautious.—Let’s be cautious about thinking that the world is a living thing. Where could it expand? What could it feed on? How could it develop and grow? We have a decent understanding of what’s organic; we shouldn't reinterpret the clearly derivative, slow, rare, and accidental aspects we only notice on the earth’s surface as the essential, universal, and eternal, like those who refer to the universe as an organism. That bothers me. Let’s now be careful about believing that the universe is a machine; it definitely wasn’t built for one purpose; we give it too much credit by calling it a "machine." Let’s be cautious about assuming that anything as systematic as the cyclic movements of our nearby stars occurs everywhere in the universe; in fact, just looking at the 152Milky Way raises doubts about whether there are many rougher and more contradictory movements there, and even stars with straight-line gravitational orbits and so on. The stellar arrangement we’re part of is an exception; this arrangement, along with its relatively long stability, has allowed for the exceptional exception: the emergence of organic life. The overall nature of the world, however, is chaos for all time; not because of the lack of necessity, but in the sense of lacking order, structure, form, beauty, wisdom, and everything else we define in our aesthetic interpretation of humanity. By our reasoning, the unlucky outcomes are often the norm, and the exceptions aren't the intended purpose; the whole music box endlessly plays its tune, which can never be called a melody,—and in the end, even the phrase "unlucky cast" is already a form of anthropomorphism that assigns blame. But how could we dare to blame or praise the universe! Let’s be cautious about attributing heartlessness or irrationality to it, or their opposites; it is neither perfect, nor beautiful, nor noble; it doesn’t aim to be any of those things, nor does it try to imitate humans! It is completely unaffected by our aesthetic and moral evaluations! It has no instinct for self-preservation, nor any instinct at all; it is also unaware of any laws. Let’s be cautious about claiming that there are laws in nature. There are only necessities: no one commands, no one obeys, no one violates. When you realize there’s no design, you also understand there’s no chance: only in a world of design does the term "chance" make sense. Let’s be cautious about saying that death opposes life. A living being is merely a kind of dead being, and a very rare kind at that.—Let’s be cautious about thinking that the world constantly generates the new. There are no eternally lasting substances; matter is just another such mistake, like the God of the Eleatics. But when will we stop with our foresight and caution! When will all these shadows of God cease to obscure us? When will we completely deify nature? When will we be allowed to naturalize ourselves through the pure, newly discovered, newly redeemed nature?

110.

Origin of Knowledge.—Throughout immense stretches of time the intellect has produced nothing but errors; some of them proved to be useful and preservative of the species: he who fell in with them, or inherited them, waged the battle for himself and his offspring with better success. Those erroneous articles of faith which were successively transmitted by inheritance, and have finally become almost the property and stock of the human species, are, for example, the following:—that there are enduring things, that there are equal things, that there are things, substances, and bodies, that a thing is what it appears, that our will is free, that what is good for me is also good absolutely. It was only very late that the deniers and 154doubters of such propositions came forward,—it was only very late that truth made its appearance as the most impotent form of knowledge. It seemed as if it were impossible to get along with truth, our organism was adapted for the very opposite; all its higher functions, the perceptions of the senses, and in general every kind of sensation co-operated with those primevally embodied, fundamental errors. Moreover, those propositions became the very standards of knowledge according to which the "true" and the "false" were determined—throughout the whole domain of pure logic. The strength of conceptions does not, therefore, depend on their degree of truth, but on their antiquity, their embodiment, their character as conditions of life. Where life and knowledge seemed to conflict, there has never been serious contention; denial and doubt have there been regarded as madness. The exceptional thinkers like the Eleatics, who, in spite of this, advanced and maintained the antitheses of the natural errors, believed that it was possible also to live these counterparts: it was they who devised the sage as the man of immutability, impersonality and universality of intuition, as one and all at the same time, with a special faculty for that reverse kind of knowledge; they were of the belief that their knowledge was at the same time the principle of life. To be able to affirm all this, however, they had to deceive themselves concerning their own condition: they had to attribute to themselves impersonality and unchanging permanence, they had to mistake the nature of the philosophic individual, deny the force 155of the impulses in cognition, and conceive of reason generally as an entirely free and self-originating activity; they kept their eyes shut to the fact that they also had reached their doctrines in contradiction to valid methods, or through their longing for repose or for exclusive possession or for domination. The subtler development of sincerity and of scepticism finally made these men impossible; their life also and their judgments turned out to be dependent on the primeval impulses and fundamental errors of all sentient being.—The subtler sincerity and scepticism arose whenever two antithetical maxims appeared to be applicable to life, because both of them were compatible with the fundamental errors; where, therefore, there could be contention concerning a higher or lower degree of utility for life; and likewise where new maxims proved to be, not in fact useful, but at least not injurious, as expressions of an intellectual impulse to play a game that was, like all games, innocent and happy. The human brain was gradually filled with such judgments and convictions; and in this tangled skein there arose ferment, strife and lust for power. Not only utility and delight, but every kind of impulse took part in the struggle for "truths": the intellectual struggle became a business, an attraction, a calling, a duty, an honour—: cognizing and striving for the true finally arranged themselves as needs among other needs. From that moment, not only belief and conviction, but also examination, denial, distrust and contradiction became forces; all "evil" instincts were subordinated to knowledge, were placed in its service, and acquired the 156prestige of the permitted, the honoured, the useful, and finally the appearance and innocence of the good. Knowledge, thus became a portion of life itself, and as life it became a continually growing power: until finally the cognitions and those primeval, fundamental, errors clashed with each other, both as life, both as power, both in the same man. The thinker is now the being in whom the impulse to truth and those life-preserving errors wage their first conflict, now that the impulse to truth has also proved itself to be a life-preserving power. In comparison with the importance of this conflict everything else is indifferent; the final question concerning the conditions of life is here raised, and the first attempt is here made to answer it by experiment. How far is truth susceptible of embodiment?—that is the question, that is the experiment.

Origin of Knowledge.—Over vast periods of time, our intellect has mostly generated errors; some of these turned out to be useful and helped preserve our species: those who encountered or inherited these errors fought for themselves and their offspring more successfully. The mistaken beliefs that have been passed down and have nearly become common knowledge among humans include ideas like: that there are permanent things, that there are equal things, that things, substances, and bodies exist, that a thing is what it seems, that our will is free, and that what benefits me is universally good. Only much later did critics of these ideas arise—it was only much later that truth emerged as the weakest form of knowledge. It seemed impossible to deal with the truth; our systems were built for the opposite. All our higher functions, sensory perceptions, and generally every type of sensation aligned with those ancient, fundamental errors. Moreover, these beliefs became the very standards of knowledge by which we determined "true" and "false" throughout the entire realm of pure logic. The strength of concepts doesn't rely on their truthfulness but on their age, their embodiment, and their role as life conditions. Where life and knowledge appeared to conflict, there was never serious debate; denial and doubt were seen as madness. Exceptional thinkers like the Eleatics, who nonetheless challenged these natural errors, believed it was possible to also live by these opposing ideas: they envisioned the sage as a person embodying stability, impersonality, and universal intuition, being everything all at once, with a special ability for this alternative kind of knowledge; they believed their understanding was also the foundation of life. To affirm all this, however, they had to deceive themselves about their own state: they had to attribute to themselves traits of impersonality and constant permanence, misinterpret the nature of the philosophical individual, dismiss the influence of impulses in cognition, and view reason generally as a completely free and self-originating activity; they chose to ignore that they too reached their ideas contrary to valid methods, or through a desire for rest, exclusive ownership, or control. The more refined development of sincerity and skepticism eventually made these thinkers untenable; their lives and judgments also turned out to rely on the primitive impulses and fundamental errors of all conscious beings.—The refined sincerity and skepticism emerged whenever two opposing maxims seemed applicable to life because both could coexist with the fundamental errors; where, thus, contention could arise about a higher or lower degree of utility for life; and also where new maxims proved to be not actually useful, but at least not harmful, as expressions of an intellectual drive to engage in a game that was, like all games, innocent and enjoyable. The human mind gradually became filled with such judgments and beliefs; and within this complex web, excitement, conflict, and a thirst for power emerged. Not only utility and pleasure but every type of impulse participated in the struggle for "truths": the intellectual contest turned into a business, a draw, a calling, a duty, and an honor—cognition and the pursuit of truth ultimately became needs among other needs. From that moment on, not just belief and conviction, but also examination, denial, distrust, and contradiction became forces; all "evil" instincts were subordinated to knowledge, were put to its service, and gained the prestige of being permitted, honored, useful, and ultimately taking on the appearance and innocence of the good. Knowledge thus became a part of life itself, and as life, it transformed into an ever-growing power: until finally, the cognitions and those primitive, fundamental errors clashed with each other, both as life, both as power, both within the same individual. The thinker is now the entity in which the impulse for truth and those life-sustaining errors engage in their initial conflict, now that the drive for truth has also proved to be a life-sustaining power. In relation to the significance of this conflict, everything else pales in comparison; the ultimate question regarding the conditions of life is raised here, and the first attempt is made to answer it through experimentation. How far can truth exist in tangible form?—that is the question, that is the experiment.

111.

Origin of the Logical.—Where has logic originated in men's heads? Undoubtedly out of the illogical, the domain of which must originally have been immense. But numberless beings who reasoned otherwise than we do at present, perished; albeit that they may have come nearer to truth than we! Whoever, for example, could not discern the "like" often enough with regard to food, and with regard to animals dangerous to him, whoever, therefore, deduced too slowly, or was too circumspect in his deductions, had smaller probability of survival than he who in all similar things immediately divined the equality. The preponderating 157inclination, however, to deal with the similar as the equal—an illogical inclination, for there is nothing equal in itself—first created the whole basis of logic. It was just so (in order that the conception of substance might originate, this being indispensable to logic, although in the strictest sense nothing actual corresponds to it) that for a long period the changing process in things had to be overlooked, and remain unperceived; the beings not seeing correctly had an advantage over those who saw everything "in flux." In itself every high degree of circumspection in conclusions, every sceptical inclination, is a great danger to life. No living being would have been preserved unless the contrary inclination—to affirm rather than suspend judgment, to mistake and fabricate rather than wait, to assent rather than deny, to decide rather than be in the right—had been cultivated with extraordinary assiduity.—The course of logical thought and reasoning in our modern brain corresponds to a process and struggle of impulses, which singly and in themselves are all very illogical and unjust; we experience usually only the result of the struggle, so rapidly and secretly does this primitive mechanism now operate in us.

Origin of the Logical.—Where did logic come from in people's minds? It undoubtedly arose from the illogical, which must have been vast at the beginning. Yet countless beings who thought differently than we do now have vanished; they may have approached the truth more closely than we! For instance, anyone who couldn’t frequently recognize the similarities regarding food or dangerous animals, who therefore deduced too slowly or was too cautious in their reasoning, had a lower chance of survival than those who instinctively understood the equality in similar things. However, the dominant tendency to treat the similar as equal—an illogical tendency, since nothing is equal in itself—initially created the entire foundation of logic. It happened that, in order for the concept of substance to emerge, which is essential to logic, the changing nature of things had to be ignored and remain unnoticed for a long time; those who did not see things accurately had an advantage over those who recognized everything as "in flux." In fact, a high degree of caution in conclusions and a skeptical attitude can be a significant threat to life. No living being would have survived unless the opposite tendency—to affirm rather than withhold judgment, to mistake and create rather than wait, to agree rather than oppose, to make decisions rather than seek to be right—had been developed with extraordinary diligence. The process of logical thought and reasoning in our modern minds reflects a struggle of impulses, which individually and inherently are all quite illogical and unjust; we usually only experience the outcome of this struggle, as this primitive mechanism operates so swiftly and secretly within us now.

112.

Cause and Effect.—We say it is "explanation"; but it is only in "description" that we are in advance of the older stages of knowledge and science. We describe better,—we explain just as little as our predecessors. We have discovered a manifold succession where the naïve man and 158investigator of older cultures saw only two things, "cause" and "effect," as it was said; we have perfected the conception of becoming, but have not got a knowledge of what is above and behind the conception. The series of "causes" stands before us much more complete in every case; we conclude that this and that must first precede in order that that other may follow—but we have not grasped anything thereby. The peculiarity, for example, in every chemical process seems a "miracle," the same as before, just like all locomotion; nobody has "explained" impulse. How could we ever explain! We operate only with things which do not exist, with lines, surfaces, bodies, atoms, divisible times, divisible spaces—how can explanation ever be possible when we first make everything a conception, our conception! It is sufficient to regard science as the exactest humanising of things that is possible; we always learn to describe ourselves more accurately by describing things and their successions. Cause and effect: there is probably never any such duality; in fact there is a continuum before us, from which we isolate a few portions;—just as we always observe a motion as isolated points, and therefore do not properly see it, but infer it. The abruptness with which many effects take place leads us into error; it is however only an abruptness for us. There is an infinite multitude of processes in that abrupt moment which escape us. An intellect which could see cause and effect as a continuum, which could see the flux of events not according to our mode of perception, as things arbitrarily separated and broken—would throw aside 159the conception of cause and effect, and would deny all conditionality.

Cause and Effect.—We call it "explanation"; but we are only ahead of earlier stages of knowledge and science when it comes to "description." Our descriptions are better, but our explanations are just as limited as those of our predecessors. We've uncovered a complex series of events where the naive individuals and investigators of past cultures only identified "cause" and "effect," as it was once put; we’ve refined the idea of becoming, but we haven’t grasped what exists beyond and behind that concept. The sequence of "causes" is much more comprehensive in every situation; we conclude that certain factors must come first for others to follow—but we haven't really understood anything as a result. The uniqueness, for instance, in every chemical process still seems like a "miracle," just like all forms of motion; no one has "explained" impulse. How could we ever provide an explanation! We only deal with things that don't exist, like lines, surfaces, bodies, atoms, divisible times, and divisible spaces—how can we explain anything when we first reduce everything to a concept, our concept! It’s enough to view science as the most precise way of humanizing things that’s possible; we always learn to describe ourselves more accurately by describing things and their sequences. Cause and effect: there’s probably never such a simple duality; in reality, there’s a continuum before us from which we isolate a few fragments;—just as we always perceive motion as isolated points, and therefore don't really see it but infer it. The suddenness with which many effects occur misleads us; it’s only abrupt from our perspective. There are countless processes happening in that abrupt moment which we miss. An intellect that could perceive cause and effect as a continuum, that could see the flow of events not as we perceive it—broken and arbitrarily divided—would discard the idea of cause and effect, and would reject all conditionality.

113.

The Theory of Poisons.—So many things have to be united in order that scientific thinking may arise, and all the necessary powers must have been devised, exercised, and fostered singly! In their isolation, however, they have very often had quite a different effect than at present, when they are confined within the limits of scientific thinking and kept mutually in check:—they have operated as poisons; for example, the doubting impulse, the denying impulse, the waiting impulse, the collecting impulse, the disintegrating impulse. Many hecatombs of men were sacrificed ere these impulses learned to understand their juxtaposition and regard themselves as functions of one organising force in one man! And how far are we still from the point at which the artistic powers and the practical wisdom of life shall co-operate with scientific thinking, so that a higher organic system may be formed, in relation to which the scholar, the physician, the artist, and the lawgiver, as we know them at present, will seem sorry antiquities!

The Theory of Poisons.—So many factors need to come together for scientific thinking to develop, and all the necessary abilities must have been created, used, and nurtured individually! However, in their isolation, they often had a very different impact than they do now when they are limited by scientific thinking and kept in check with each other:—they acted as poisons; for instance, the sense of doubt, the need to deny, the urge to wait, the desire to collect, the impulse to break apart. Many lives were lost before these impulses learned to recognize their relationship and see themselves as parts of one organizing force within a single person! And how far are we from the moment when artistic abilities and practical wisdom will work together with scientific thinking, creating a higher unified system, in which the scholar, the physician, the artist, and the lawmaker, as we recognize them today, will seem like outdated relics!

114.

The Extent of the Moral.—We construct a new picture, which we see immediately with the aid of all the old experiences which we have had, always according to the degree of our honesty and justice. The only events are moral events, even in the domain of sense-perception.

The Extent of the Moral.—We create a new image, which we immediately recognize with the help of all our past experiences, always based on our level of honesty and fairness. The only events that matter are moral events, even in the realm of sensory perception.

160

115.

The Four Errors.—Man has been reared by his errors: firstly, he saw himself always imperfect; secondly, he attributed to himself imaginary qualities; thirdly, he felt himself in a false position in relation to the animals and nature; fourthly, he always devised new tables of values, and accepted them for a time as eternal and unconditioned, so that at one time this, and at another time that human impulse or state stood first, and was ennobled in consequence. When one has deducted the effect of these four errors, one has also deducted humanity, humaneness, and "human dignity."

The Four Errors.—Humans have been shaped by their mistakes: first, they always saw themselves as imperfect; second, they attributed imaginary qualities to themselves; third, they felt they were in a false position concerning animals and nature; fourth, they constantly created new value systems and accepted them for a while as eternal and unconditional, so that at one time, this human impulse or state was prioritized and elevated, and at another time, that one was. When you account for the impact of these four errors, you also account for humanity, compassion, and "human dignity."

116.

Herd-Instinct.—Wherever we meet with a morality we find a valuation and order of rank of the human impulses and activities. These valuations and orders of rank are always the expression of the needs of a community or herd: that which is in the first place to its advantage—and in the second place and third place—is also the authoritative standard for the worth of every individual. By morality the individual is taught to become a function of the herd, and to ascribe to himself value only as a function. As the conditions for the maintenance of one community have been very different from those of another community, there have been very different moralities; and in respect to the future essential transformations of herds and communities, states and societies, one can prophesy that there will still be very divergent 161moralities. Morality is the herd-instinct in the individual.

Herd Instinct.—Whenever we encounter a form of morality, we find a system of values and a hierarchy of human impulses and activities. These values and hierarchies reflect the needs of a community or group: what benefits it the most—and the second and third most beneficial aspects—become the guiding standard for determining the worth of each individual. Through morality, individuals learn to see themselves as part of the group and to value themselves only to the extent that they fulfill that role. Since the circumstances for the survival of one community have been very different from those of another, various moralities have emerged; regarding the essential future changes of groups and communities, states, and societies, one can predict that there will still be very different moralities. Morality is the herd instinct within the individual.

117.

The Herd's Sting of Conscience.—In the longest and remotest ages of the human race there was quite a different sting of conscience from that of the present day. At present one only feels responsible for what one intends and for what one does, and we have our pride in ourselves. All our professors of jurisprudence start with this sentiment of individual independence and pleasure, as if the source of right had taken its rise here from the beginning. But throughout the longest period in the life of mankind there was nothing more terrible to a person than to feel himself independent. To be alone, to feel independent, neither to obey nor to rule, to represent an individual—that was no pleasure to a person then, but a punishment; he was condemned "to be an individual." Freedom of thought was regarded as discomfort personified. While we feel law and regulation as constraint and loss, people formerly regarded egoism as a painful thing, and a veritable evil. For a person to be himself, to value himself according to his own measure and weight—that was then quite distasteful. The inclination to such a thing would have been regarded as madness; for all miseries and terrors were associated with being alone. At that time the "free will" had bad conscience in close proximity to it; and the less independently a person acted, the more the herd-instinct, and not his personal character, expressed itself in his 162conduct, so much the more moral did he esteem himself. All that did injury to the herd, whether the individual had intended it or not, then caused him a sting of conscience—and his neighbour likewise, indeed the whole herd!—It is in this respect that we have most changed our mode of thinking.

The Herd's Sting of Conscience.—In the farthest and earliest times of humanity, the sense of guilt was very different from what it is today. Nowadays, people feel responsible only for their intentions and actions, and we take pride in that. All our legal experts start with the idea of individual independence and personal satisfaction, as if the notion of what is right has always originated from this mindset. But for much of human history, nothing was more terrifying for a person than to feel independent. To be alone, to feel free from obligation or authority, to be seen as an individual—that was not a source of pride back then, but a punishment; it was like being condemned "to be an individual." Freedom of thought was seen as a source of distress. While we view laws and rules as constraints or losses, people in the past regarded selfishness as a painful affliction and a true evil. For someone to assert their individuality and to judge themselves by their own standards was then seen as quite unpleasant. Any tendency towards that would have been labeled as madness; being alone was associated with suffering and fear. At that time, "free will" was closely tied to guilt; the less independently a person acted, the more the urge to conform to the group—and not their own character—was reflected in their behavior, making them feel more moral. Anything that harmed the group, whether intended by the individual or not, then brought on a sense of guilt for them—and for their neighbors too, the whole group!—In this regard, our way of thinking has changed significantly.

118.

Benevolence.—Is it virtuous when a cell transforms itself into the function of a stronger cell? It must do so. And is it wicked when the stronger one assimilates the other? It must do so likewise: it is necessary, for it has to have abundant indemnity and seeks to regenerate itself. One has therefore to distinguish the instinct of appropriation, and the instinct of submission, in benevolence, according as the stronger or the weaker feels benevolent. Gladness and covetousness are united in the stronger person, who wants to transform something to his function: gladness and desire-to-be-coveted in the weaker person, who would like to become a function.—The former case is essentially pity, a pleasant excitation of the instinct of appropriation at the sight of the weaker: it is to be remembered, however, that "strong" and "weak" are relative conceptions.

Benevolence.—Is it virtuous when a cell changes into a stronger cell? It has to do that. And is it wrong when the stronger one takes in the other? It has to do that too: it’s necessary for its own survival and growth. One needs to differentiate between the instinct to take and the instinct to submit in benevolence, depending on whether the stronger or weaker feels benevolent. The stronger person feels both gladness and greed; they want to make something serve their purpose. The weaker person feels gladness and a desire to be valued; they want to become part of the stronger's function. The former situation is essentially pity, a pleasant stirring of the instinct to take when seeing the weaker: it’s important to remember, however, that "strong" and "weak" are relative concepts.

119.

No Altruism!—I see in many men an excessive impulse and delight in wanting to be a function; they strive after it, and have the keenest scent for all those positions in which precisely they themselves can be functions. Among such persons 163are those women who transform themselves into just that function of a man that is but weakly developed in him, and then become his purse, or his politics, or his social intercourse. Such beings maintain themselves best when they insert themselves in an alien organism; if they do not succeed they become vexed, irritated, and eat themselves up.

No Altruism!—I see many men with a strong urge and enjoyment in wanting to be useful; they go after it and are really good at spotting those roles where they can be useful. Among such people are those women who turn themselves into exactly the part of a man that is only weakly developed in him, becoming his wallet, his political stance, or his social life. These individuals do best when they fit into someone else's life; if they can't make it work, they become frustrated, annoyed, and end up consuming themselves.

120.

Health of the Soul.—The favourite medico-moral formula (whose originator was Ariston of Chios), "Virtue is the health of the soul," would, at least in order to be used, have to be altered to this: "Thy virtue is the health of thy soul." For there is no such thing as health in itself, and all attempts to define a thing in that way have lamentably failed. It is necessary to know thy aim, thy horizon, thy powers, thy impulses, thy errors, and especially the ideals and fantasies of thy soul, in order to determine what health implies even for thy body. There are consequently innumerable kinds of physical health; and the more one again permits the unique and unparalleled to raise its head, the more one unlearns the dogma of the "Equality of men," so much the more also must the conception of a normal health, together with a normal diet and a normal course of disease, be abrogated by our physicians. And then only would it be time to turn our thoughts to the health and disease of the soul and make the special virtue of everyone consist in its health; but, to be sure, what appeared as health in one person might appear as the contrary 164of health in another. In the end the great question might still remain open: whether we could do without sickness, even for the development of our virtue, and whether our thirst for knowledge and self-knowledge would not especially need the sickly soul as well as the sound one; in short, whether the mere will to health is not a prejudice, a cowardice, and perhaps an instance of the subtlest barbarism and unprogressiveness.

Health of the Soul.—The popular medical and moral phrase (originally coined by Ariston of Chios), "Virtue is the health of the soul," would need to be rephrased to, "Your virtue is the health of your soul," to be relevant today. There’s no such thing as health in a vacuum, and all efforts to define it that way have unfortunately failed. It’s crucial to understand your goals, your perspective, your abilities, your instincts, your mistakes, and especially the ideals and fantasies of your soul to figure out what health means, even for your body. This means that there are countless kinds of physical health, and as one allows the unique and exceptional to emerge, one increasingly abandons the dogma of "Equality of men." Consequently, the idea of normal health, along with a standard diet and predictable illness, must also be re-evaluated by our healthcare professionals. Only then would it be appropriate to focus on the health and illness of the soul and to acknowledge that each person's special virtue lies in its health. However, what seems like health for one person might be seen as the opposite for another. Ultimately, we might still question whether we could do without illness, even for the growth of our virtue, and whether our desire for knowledge and self-awareness doesn't particularly require both the ailing soul and the healthy one; in short, whether the mere desire for health isn't a form of prejudice, cowardice, and perhaps the most subtle kind of barbarism and stagnation.

121.

Life no Argument.—We have arranged for ourselves a world in which we can live—by the postulating of bodies, lines, surfaces, causes and effects, motion and rest, form and content: without these articles of faith no one could manage to live at present! But for all that they are still unproved. Life is no argument; error might be among the conditions of life.

Life no Argument.—We've created a world for ourselves where we can exist—by assuming things like bodies, lines, surfaces, causes and effects, motion and rest, form and content: without these fundamental beliefs, no one could survive today! Yet, even so, they remain unproven. Life isn't an argument; mistakes might be part of living.

122.

The Element of Moral Scepticism in Christianity.—Christianity also has made a great contribution to enlightenment, and has taught moral scepticism in a very impressive and effective manner—accusing and embittering, but with untiring patience and subtlety; it annihilated in every individual the belief in his virtues: it made the great virtuous ones, of whom antiquity had no lack, vanish for ever from the earth, those popular men, who, in the belief in their perfection, walked about with the dignity of a hero of the bull-fight. When, trained in this Christian school of scepticism, we 165now read the moral books of the ancients, for example those of Seneca and Epictetus, we feel a pleasurable superiority, and are full of secret insight and penetration,—it seems to us as if a child talked before an old man, or a pretty, gushing girl before La Rochefoucauld:—we know better what virtue is! After all, however, we have applied the same scepticism to all religious states and processes, such as sin, repentance, grace, sanctification, &c., and have allowed the worm to burrow so well, that we have now the same feeling of subtle superiority and insight even in reading all Christian books:—we know also the religious feelings better! And it is time to know them well and describe them well, for the pious ones of the old belief die out also; let us save their likeness and type, at least for the sake of knowledge.

The Element of Moral Skepticism in Christianity.—Christianity has also made a significant contribution to enlightenment and has taught moral skepticism in a very impactful and effective way—accusing and embittering, yet with tireless patience and subtlety; it destroyed in every individual the belief in their own virtues: it made the great virtuous individuals, of whom antiquity had plenty, disappear forever from the earth—those admired figures who, believing in their perfection, moved about with the dignity of a bullfighter. Now, having been trained in this Christian school of skepticism, when we read the moral books of the ancients, like those of Seneca and Epictetus, we feel a sense of pleasurable superiority, and are filled with secret insight and perception—it seems as if a child is speaking before an old man, or a charming, enthusiastic girl is speaking before La Rochefoucauld:—we understand what virtue really is! However, we have applied the same skepticism to all religious states and processes, such as sin, repentance, grace, sanctification, etc., and have allowed the worm to burrow so deeply that we now feel the same subtle superiority and insight even when reading all Christian texts:—we also understand religious feelings better! And it’s time to understand them well and describe them accurately, as the devout of the old belief are also fading away; let us preserve their likeness and essence, at least for the sake of knowledge.

123.

Knowledge more than a Means.—Also without this passion—I refer to the passion for knowledge—science would be furthered: science has hitherto increased and grown up without it. The good faith in science, the prejudice in its favour, by which States are at present dominated (it was even the Church formerly), rests fundamentally on the fact that the absolute inclination and impulse has so rarely revealed itself in it, and that science is regarded not as a passion, but as a condition and an "ethos." Indeed, amour-plaisir of knowledge (curiosity) often enough suffices, amour-vanité suffices, and habituation to it, with the afterthought of obtaining honour and bread; it even suffices 166for many that they do not know what to do with a surplus of leisure, except to continue reading, collecting, arranging, observing and narrating; their "scientific impulse" is their ennui. Pope Leo X. once (in the brief to Beroaldus) sang the praise of science; he designated it as the finest ornament and the greatest pride of our life, a noble employment in happiness and in misfortune; "without it," he says finally, "all human undertakings would be without a firm basis,—even with it they are still sufficiently mutable and insecure!" But this rather sceptical Pope, like all other ecclesiastical panegyrists of science, suppressed his ultimate judgment concerning it. If one may deduce from his words what is remarkable enough for such a lover of art, that he places science above art, it is after all, however, only from politeness that he omits to speak of that which he places high above all science: the "revealed truth," and the "eternal salvation of the soul,"—what are ornament, pride, entertainment and security of life to him, in comparison thereto? "Science is something of secondary rank, nothing ultimate or unconditioned, no object of passion"—this judgment was kept back in Leo's soul: the truly Christian judgment concerning science! In antiquity its dignity and appreciation were lessened by the fact that, even among its most eager disciples, the striving after virtue stood foremost, and that people thought they had given the highest praise to knowledge when they celebrated it as the best means to virtue. It is something new in history that knowledge claims to be more than a means.

Knowledge More Than a Means.—Also without this passion—I’m talking about the passion for knowledge—science would still progress: science has developed without it up to now. The good faith in science, the support it currently receives from the States (and even the Church in the past), fundamentally rests on the fact that this deep inclination and drive has rarely shown itself in it, and that science is seen not as a passion, but as a condition and an "ethos." In fact, the love of knowledge (curiosity) is often enough, the love of vanity is enough, and getting used to it, with the motivation of gaining honor and a living; for many, it's enough that they don't know what to do with their extra free time except keep reading, collecting, organizing, observing, and telling stories; their "scientific impulse" is their boredom. Pope Leo X. once (in the brief to Beroaldus) praised science; he called it the finest ornament and the greatest pride of our lives, a noble pursuit in happiness and in hardship; "without it," he says at last, "all human endeavors would have no solid foundation,—even with it, they are still quite changeable and insecure!" But this somewhat skeptical Pope, like all other church supporters of science, held back his final judgment about it. If we can take from his words that it’s notable enough for such an art lover to place science above art, it’s still only out of politeness that he fails to mention what he places even higher than all science: the "revealed truth," and the "eternal salvation of the soul,"—what are ornaments, pride, entertainment, and life security to him compared to those? "Science is something of secondary importance, nothing ultimate or unconditional, no object of passion"—this judgment was held back in Leo’s mind: the truly Christian perspective on science! In ancient times, its dignity and value were diminished by the fact that even among its most enthusiastic supporters, the pursuit of virtue was the priority, and people thought they were giving the highest praise to knowledge when they celebrated it as the best means to virtue. It's a new thing in history that knowledge claims to be more than just a means.

167

124.

In the Horizon of the Infinite.—We have left the land and have gone aboard ship! We have broken down the bridge behind us,—nay, more, the land behind us! Well, little ship! look out! Beside thee is the ocean; it is true it does not always roar, and sometimes it spreads out like silk and gold and a gentle reverie. But times will come when thou wilt feel that it is infinite, and that there is nothing more frightful than infinity. Oh, the poor bird that felt itself free, and now strikes against the walls of this cage! Alas, if homesickness for the land should attack thee, as if there had been more freedom there,—and there is no "land" any longer!

In the Horizon of the Infinite.—We have left the land and boarded the ship! We’ve burned the bridge behind us—no, even more, we’ve left the land behind! Well, little ship! watch out! Beside you is the ocean; it’s true it doesn’t always roar, and sometimes it spreads out like silk and gold in a gentle dream. But there will be times when you’ll feel that it is infinite, and there is nothing more terrifying than infinity. Oh, the poor bird that thought it was free and now beats against the walls of its cage! Alas, if homesickness for the land should hit you, as if there had been more freedom there—and there is no "land" anymore!

125.

The Madman.—Have you ever heard of the madman who on a bright morning lighted a lantern and ran to the market-place calling out unceasingly: "I seek God! I seek God!"—As there were many people standing about who did not believe in God, he caused a great deal of amusement. Why! is he lost? said one. Has he strayed away like a child? said another. Or does he keep himself hidden? Is he afraid of us? Has he taken a sea-voyage? Has he emigrated?—the people cried out laughingly, all in a hubbub. The insane man jumped into their midst and transfixed them with his glances. "Where is God gone?" he called out. "I mean to tell you! We have killed him,—you and I! We are all his murderers! But how have we done it? How were we able to drink up the 168sea? Who gave us the sponge to wipe away the whole horizon? What did we do when we loosened this earth from its sun? Whither does it now move? Whither do we move? Away from all suns? Do we not dash on unceasingly? Backwards, sideways, forwards, in all directions? Is there still an above and below? Do we not stray, as through infinite nothingness? Does not empty space breathe upon us? Has it not become colder? Does not night come on continually, darker and darker? Shall we not have to light lanterns in the morning? Do we not hear the noise of the grave-diggers who are burying God? Do we not smell the divine putrefaction?—for even Gods putrefy! God is dead! God remains dead! And we have killed him! How shall we console ourselves, the most murderous of all murderers? The holiest and the mightiest that the world has hitherto possessed, has bled to death under our knife,—who will wipe the blood from us? With what water could we cleanse ourselves? What lustrums, what sacred games shall we have to devise? Is not the magnitude of this deed too great for us? Shall we not ourselves have to become Gods, merely to seem worthy of it? There never was a greater event,—and on account of it, all who are born after us belong to a higher history than any history hitherto!"—Here the madman was silent and looked again at his hearers; they also were silent and looked at him in surprise. At last he threw his lantern on the ground, so that it broke in pieces and was extinguished. "I come too early," he then said, "I am not yet at the right time. This 169prodigious event is still on its way, and is travelling,—it has not yet reached men's ears. Lightning and thunder need time, the light of the stars needs time, deeds need time, even after they are done, to be seen and heard. This deed is as yet further from them than the furthest star,—and yet they have done it!"—It is further stated that the madman made his way into different churches on the same day, and there intoned his Requiem aeternam deo. When led out and called to account, he always gave the reply: "What are these churches now, if they are not the tombs and monuments of God?"—

The Madman.—Have you heard about the madman who, on a bright morning, lit a lantern and ran to the marketplace shouting continuously, "I’m looking for God! I’m looking for God!"? Since many people were around who didn’t believe in God, he amused them greatly. "Is he lost?" one asked. "Has he wandered off like a child?" another said. "Or is he hiding? Is he scared of us? Has he gone on a sea trip? Has he moved away?"—the crowd laughed, all making noise. The madman jumped into their midst and stared at them intensely. "Where has God gone?" he shouted. "I need to tell you! We have killed him—you and I! We are all his murderers! But how did we do it? How were we able to drink up the sea? Who gave us the sponge to wipe away the entire horizon? What did we do when we detached this earth from its sun? Where does it move now? Where are we moving? Away from all suns? Don’t we keep rushing on endlessly? Backwards, sideways, forwards, in every direction? Is there still an above and below? Are we not lost in infinite nothingness? Does empty space not breathe on us? Has it not gotten colder? Does night not come on continuously, getting darker? Won’t we have to light lanterns in the morning? Don’t we hear the sound of the grave-diggers burying God? Don’t we smell the divine decay?—for even gods decay! God is dead! God remains dead! And we have killed him! How will we console ourselves, the most ruthless of all murderers? The holiest and most powerful being the world has ever known has bled to death under our knife—who will wipe the blood from us? With what water can we cleanse ourselves? What rituals, what sacred games must we create? Is the weight of this act not too great for us? Must we ourselves become gods just to seem worthy of it? There has never been a greater event—and because of it, everyone born after us belongs to a higher history than any history before!"—Here the madman fell silent and looked at his audience; they were also silent and stared at him in shock. Finally, he threw his lantern to the ground, shattering it and extinguishing the light. "I come too early," he said, "I am not yet at the right moment. This extraordinary event is still on its way and traveling—it hasn’t yet reached people’s ears. Lightning and thunder take time; the light of stars takes time; deeds need time, even after they are done, to be seen and heard. This deed is still farther from them than the furthest star—and yet they have done it!"—It’s also reported that the madman entered various churches that same day and chanted his Requiem aeternam deo. When he was taken out and questioned, he always replied: "What are these churches now, if they are not the tombs and monuments of God?"—

126.

Mystical Explanations.—Mystical explanations are regarded as profound; the truth is that they do not even go the length of being superficial.

Mystical Explanations.—Mystical explanations are considered deep, but the reality is that they don't even scratch the surface.

127.

After-Effect of the most Ancient Religiousness.—The thoughtless man thinks that the Will is the only thing that operates, that willing is something simple, manifestly given, underived, and comprehensible in itself. He is convinced that when he does anything, for example, when he delivers a blow, it is he who strikes, and he has struck because he willed to strike. He does not notice anything of a problem therein, but the feeling of willing suffices to him, not only for the acceptance of cause and effect, but also for the belief that he understands their relationship. Of the mechanism of the occurrence and of the manifold subtle operations 170that must be performed in order that the blow may result, and likewise of the incapacity of the Will in itself to effect even the smallest part of those operations—he knows nothing. The Will is to him a magically operating force; the belief in the Will as the cause of effects is the belief in magically operating forces. In fact, whenever he saw anything happen, man originally believed in a Will as cause, and in personally willing beings operating in the background,—the conception of mechanism was very remote from him. Because, however, man for immense periods of time believed only in persons (and not in matter, forces, things, &c.), the belief in cause and effect has become a fundamental belief with him, which he applies everywhere when anything happens,—and even still uses instinctively as a piece of atavism of remotest origin. The propositions, "No effect without a cause," and "Every effect again implies a cause," appear as generalisations of several less general propositions:—"Where there is operation there has been willing," "Operating is only possible on willing beings." "There is never a pure, resultless experience of activity, but every experience involves stimulation of the Will" (to activity, defence, revenge or retaliation). But in the primitive period of the human race, the latter and the former propositions were identical, the first were not generalisations of the second, but the second were explanations of the first.—Schopenhauer, with his assumption that all that exists is something volitional, has set a primitive mythology on the throne; he seems never to have attempted an analysis of the Will, because 171he believed like everybody in the simplicity and immediateness of all volition:—while volition is in fact such a cleverly practised mechanical process that it almost escapes the observing eye. I set the following propositions against those of Schopenhauer:—Firstly, in order that Will may arise, an idea of pleasure and pain is necessary. Secondly, that a vigorous excitation may be felt as pleasure or pain, is the affair of the interpreting intellect, which, to be sure, operates thereby for the most part unconsciously to us, and one and the same excitation may be interpreted as pleasure or pain. Thirdly, it is only in an intellectual being that there is pleasure, displeasure and Will; the immense majority of organisms have nothing of the kind.

After-Effect of the Most Ancient Religiousness.—The thoughtless person assumes that Will is the only thing at work, that wanting is something simple, obviously given, self-evident, and easy to understand. They believe that whenever they do something, like throwing a punch, it’s they who has done it, and they struck because they wanted to. They notice no problem with this understanding; the feeling of willing is enough for them, not just to accept cause and effect, but also to believe they understand their connection. They know nothing of the mechanisms involved or the many subtle actions required for the punch to happen, nor do they recognize that Will, by itself, is incapable of carrying out even the smallest of those actions. To them, Will is a magically operating force; the belief in Will as a cause of effects is simply belief in magical forces. In reality, whenever something occurs, early humans believed in a Will as the cause, with personally willing beings at play in the background—the idea of mechanisms was completely foreign to them. However, since humans for vast stretches of time believed only in persons (not in matter, forces, things, etc.), their belief in cause and effect has become fundamental, one they apply universally whenever something happens, and it still operates instinctively as a remnant of the distant past. The statements, "No effect without a cause," and "Every effect implies a cause," serve as generalizations of less broad propositions:—"Where there is an action, there has been willing,” "Action is only possible with willing beings." "There is never a purely resultless experience of activity; every experience involves stimulating the Will" (to action, defense, revenge, or retaliation). But during the early times of humanity, the latter and former propositions were the same; the first were not generalizations of the second, but the second were explanations of the first.—Schopenhauer, in his belief that everything that exists is volitional, has elevated a primitive mythology to prominence; he seemingly never tried to analyze Will, because he 171 believed, like everyone else, in the simplicity and immediacy of all volition:—while volition is actually such a cleverly executed mechanical process that it almost eludes detection. I present the following propositions against those of Schopenhauer:—First, for Will to arise, an idea of pleasure and pain is required. Second, that a strong stimulus feels like pleasure or pain is the job of the interpreting intellect, which operates largely unconsciously for us, and the same stimulus can be felt as pleasure or pain. Third, pleasure, displeasure, and Will exist only in intellectual beings; the vast majority of organisms lack these qualities.

128.

The Value of Prayer.—Prayer has been devised for such men as have never any thoughts of their own, and to whom an elevation of the soul is unknown, or passes unnoticed; what shall these people do in holy places and in all important situations in life which require repose and some kind of dignity? In order at least that they may not disturb, the wisdom of all the founders of religions, the small as well as the great, has commended to them the formula of prayer, as a long mechanical labour of the lips, united with an effort of the memory, and with a uniform, prescribed attitude of hands and feet—and eyes! They may then, like the Tibetans, chew the cud of their "om mane padme hum," innumerable times, or, as in Benares, count the name of God Ram-Ram-Ram (and so on, with or 172without grace) on their fingers; or honour Vishnu with his thousand names of invocation, Allah with his ninety-nine; or they may make use of the prayer-wheels and the rosary: the main thing is that they are settled down for a time at this work, and present a tolerable appearance; their mode of prayer is devised for the advantage of the pious who have thought and elevation of their own. But even these have their weary hours when a series of venerable words and sounds and a mechanical, pious ritual does them good. But supposing that these rare men—in every religion the religious man is an exception—know how to help themselves, the poor in spirit do not know, and to forbid them the prayer-babbling would mean to take their religion from them, a fact which Protestantism brings more and more to light. All that religion wants with such persons is that they should keep still with their eyes, hands, legs, and all their organs: they thereby become temporarily beautified and—more human-looking!

The Value of Prayer.—Prayer is designed for people who never have any thoughts of their own and for whom a lift of the soul is unfamiliar or goes unnoticed. What should these individuals do in sacred places and during significant moments in life that demand calmness and some level of dignity? At the very least, so they do not disturb, the wisdom of all founders of religions, whether small or great, has recommended to them the formula of prayer, which is a long, mechanical exercise of the lips, combined with a mental effort and a consistent, prescribed posture of hands, feet, and—eyes! They can then, like the Tibetans, repeatedly chant their "om mane padme hum," or, as in Benares, count the name of God Ram-Ram-Ram (and so on, with or without grace) on their fingers; or they might honor Vishnu with his thousand names or Allah with his ninety-nine. They can also use prayer wheels and rosaries: the main point is that they are settled down for a while in this activity, presenting a decent appearance; their way of praying benefits the devout who have their own thoughts and inspirations. Yet even these individuals have their tiring moments when a sequence of sacred words and sounds and a mechanical, pious ritual provide them comfort. But supposing these rare people—the religious among us are generally exceptions—know how to help themselves, the spiritually poor do not, and banning them from their repetitive prayers would mean taking their religion away, a reality that Protestantism increasingly exposes. All religion requires from such individuals is that they should keep still with their eyes, hands, legs, and all their other parts: in doing so, they become temporarily more composed and—more human in appearance!

129.

The Conditions for God.—"God himself cannot subsist without wise men," said Luther, and with good reason; but "God can still less subsist without unwise men,"—good Luther did not say that!

The Conditions for God.—"God himself cannot exist without wise people," said Luther, and he had a good point; but "God can even less exist without unwise people,"—good Luther did not say that!

130.

A Dangerous Resolution.—The Christian resolution to find the world ugly and bad has made the world ugly and bad.

A Dangerous Resolution.—The Christian decision to see the world as ugly and bad has made the world ugly and bad.

173

131.

Christianity and Suicide.—Christianity made use of the excessive longing for suicide at the time of its origin as a lever for its power: it left only two forms of suicide, invested them with the highest dignity and the highest hopes, and forbade all others in a dreadful manner. But martyrdom and the slow self-annihilation of the ascetic were permitted.

Christianity and Suicide.—Christianity took advantage of the intense desire for suicide during its early days as a tool for its influence: it recognized only two types of suicide, elevated them with supreme honor and hope, and strictly prohibited all others in a terrifying way. However, martyrdom and the gradual self-denial of the ascetic were allowed.

132.

Against Christianity.—It is now no longer our reason, but our taste that decides against Christianity.

Against Christianity.—It's no longer our logic, but our preferences that turn us away from Christianity.

133.

Axioms.—An unavoidable hypothesis on which mankind must always fall back again, is, in the long run, more powerful than the most firmly believed belief in something untrue (like the Christian belief). In the long run: that means a hundred thousand years from now.

Axioms.—An unavoidable assumption that humanity will always revert to is, in the long run, more powerful than the strongest belief in something false (like the Christian belief). In the long run: that means a hundred thousand years from now.

134.

Pessimists as Victims.—When a profound dislike of existence gets the upper hand, the after-effect of a great error in diet of which a people has been long guilty comes to light. The spread of Buddhism (not its origin) is thus to a considerable extent dependent on the excessive and almost exclusive rice-fare of the Indians, and on the universal enervation that results therefrom. Perhaps the modern, European discontentedness is to be looked 174upon as caused by the fact that the world of our forefathers, the whole Middle Ages, was given to drink, owing to the influence of German tastes in Europe: the Middle Ages, that means the alcoholic poisoning of Europe.—The German dislike of life (including the influence of the cellar-air and stove-poison in German dwellings), is essentially a cold-weather complaint.

Pessimists as Victims.—When a deep dislike of life takes over, the consequences of a long-standing poor diet of a population become apparent. The spread of Buddhism (not its origin) is largely influenced by the excessive and nearly exclusive consumption of rice among the Indians, along with the overall weakness that results from it. Perhaps today's European discontent stems from the fact that the world of our ancestors, the entire Middle Ages, became intoxicated due to the influence of German tastes in Europe: the Middle Ages, which represents the alcoholic poisoning of Europe. The German aversion to life (including the effects of stale air and fumes from stoves in German homes) essentially reflects a cold-weather issue.

135.

Origin of Sin.—Sin, as it is at present felt wherever Christianity prevails or has prevailed, is a Jewish feeling and a Jewish invention; and in respect to this background of all Christian morality, Christianity has in fact aimed at "Judaising" the whole world. To what an extent this has succeeded in Europe is traced most accurately in the extent of our alienness to Greek antiquity—a world without the feeling of sin—in our sentiments even at present; in spite of all the good will to approximation and assimilation, which whole generations and many distinguished individuals have not failed to display. "Only when thou repentest is God gracious to thee"—that would arouse the laughter or the wrath of a Greek: he would say, "Slaves may have such sentiments." Here a mighty being, an almighty being, and yet a revengeful being, is presupposed; his power is so great that no injury whatever can be done to him, except in the point of honour. Every sin is an infringement of respect, a crimen læsæ majestatis divinæ—and nothing more! Contrition, degradation, rolling-in-the-dust,—these are the first and 175last conditions on which his favour depends: the restoration, therefore, of his divine honour! If injury be caused otherwise by sin, if a profound, spreading evil be propagated by it, an evil which, like a disease, attacks and strangles one man after another—that does not trouble this honour-craving Oriental in heaven; sin is an offence against him, not against mankind!—to him on whom he has bestowed his favour he bestows also this indifference to the natural consequences of sin. God and mankind are here thought of as separated, as so antithetical that sin against the latter cannot be at all possible,—all deeds are to be looked upon solely with respect to their supernatural consequences, and not with respect to their natural results: it is thus that the Jewish feeling, to which all that is natural seems unworthy in itself, would have things. The Greeks, on the other hand, were more familiar with the thought that transgression also may have dignity,—even theft, as in the case of Prometheus, even the slaughtering of cattle as the expression of frantic jealousy, as in the case of Ajax; in their need to attribute dignity to transgression and embody it therein, they invented tragedy,—an art and a delight, which in its profoundest essence has remained alien to the Jew, in spite of all his poetic endowment and taste for the sublime.

Origin of Sin.—Sin, as we currently experience it wherever Christianity exists or has existed, is a Jewish emotion and a Jewish concept; in relation to this foundation of all Christian morality, Christianity has essentially sought to "Judaize" the entire world. The extent to which this has been successful in Europe can be traced most accurately in our sense of disconnect from Greek antiquity—a world without the sense of sin—even in our feelings today, despite the goodwill for closeness and integration that entire generations and many notable individuals have demonstrated. "Only when you repent is God merciful to you"—this would provoke laughter or anger from a Greek: he would say, "Only slaves have such feelings." Here, a powerful being, an all-powerful being, yet a vengeful one, is assumed; his power is so immense that no harm can be done to him except in matters of honor. Every sin is a violation of respect, a crimen læsæ majestatis divinæ—and nothing more! Repentance, humbling oneself, ashes on the ground—these are the first and last prerequisites for regaining his favor: thus, the restoration of his divine honor! If sin causes further harm, if deep, spreading evil emerges from it, an evil that, like a disease, attacks and suffocates one person after another—that does not concern this honor-seeking Oriental in heaven; sin is an offense against him, not against humanity!—to the one who has received his favor, he also grants this indifference to the natural consequences of sin. God and mankind are viewed here as separate, so oppositional that sin against the latter is seen as impossible—every action should be regarded only in terms of its supernatural consequences, not its natural outcomes: this is how the Jewish sentiment, which regards everything natural as inherently unworthy, would prefer things to be. The Greeks, on the other hand, were more attuned to the idea that wrongdoing can also hold dignity—even theft, as in the case of Prometheus, even the slaughter of cattle driven by intense jealousy, as with Ajax; in their need to assign dignity to transgression and embody it, they created tragedy—an art and joy that, in its deepest essence, has remained foreign to the Jew, despite his poetic gifts and appreciation for the sublime.

136.

The Chosen People.—The Jews, who regard themselves as the chosen people among the nations, and that too because they are the moral genius among the nations (in virtue of their capacity for despising 176the human in themselves more than any other people)—the Jews have a pleasure in their divine monarch and saint similar to that which the French nobility had in Louis XIV. This nobility had allowed its power and autocracy to be taken from it, and had become contemptible: in order not to feel this, in order to be able to forget it, an unequalled royal magnificence, royal authority and plenitude of power was needed, to which there was access only for the nobility. As in accordance with this privilege they raised themselves to the elevation of the court, and from that elevation saw everything under them,—saw everything contemptible,—they got beyond all uneasiness of conscience. They thus elevated intentionally the tower of the royal power more and more into the clouds, and set the final coping-stone of their own power thereon.

The Chosen People.—The Jews, who see themselves as the chosen people among the nations, believe this is true because they are the moral leaders among them (thanks to their ability to despise the human flaws within themselves more than any other group)—the Jews take great pride in their divine ruler and sacred figure, much like the French nobility took pride in Louis XIV. This nobility had allowed its power and authority to be stripped away, becoming insignificant. To avoid confronting this reality, and to help them forget it, they needed unmatched royal grandeur, authority, and total power, which was only available to them. By virtue of this privilege, they elevated themselves to the heights of court life, where from that vantage point they looked down on everything beneath them—viewing it all as contemptible—and thus, they transcended any feelings of guilt. In doing so, they intentionally raised the tower of royal power higher and higher into the clouds, placing the final capstone of their own authority upon it.

137.

Spoken in Parable.—A Jesus Christ was only possible in a Jewish landscape—I mean in one over which the gloomy and sublime thunder-cloud of the angry Jehovah hung continually. Here only was the rare, sudden flashing of a single sunbeam through the dreadful, universal and continuous nocturnal-day regarded as a miracle of "love," as a beam of the most unmerited "grace." Here only could Christ dream of his rainbow and celestial ladder on which God descended to man; everywhere else the clear weather and the sun were considered the rule and the commonplace.

Spoken in Parable.—A Jesus Christ could only exist in a Jewish setting—I mean in one constantly overshadowed by the dark and majestic storm cloud of an angry Jehovah. Here alone was the rare, sudden flash of a single sunbeam breaking through the dreadful, universal, and ongoing nighttime seen as a miracle of "love," a ray of the most undeserved "grace." Here only could Christ envision his rainbow and celestial ladder on which God came down to man; everywhere else, clear skies and sunshine were seen as the norm and the ordinary.

177

138.

The Error of Christ.—The founder of Christianity thought there was nothing from which men suffered so much as from their sins:—it was his error, the error of him who felt himself without sin, to whom experience was lacking in this respect! It was thus that his soul filled with that marvellous, fantastic pity which had reference to a trouble that even among his own people, the inventors of sin, was rarely a great trouble! But Christians understood subsequently how to do justice to their master, and to sanctify his error into a "truth."

The Error of Christ.—The founder of Christianity believed that there was nothing people suffered from more than their sins: it was his mistake, the mistake of someone who considered himself sinless, and who lacked experience in this area! This was how his soul became filled with a marvelous, fantastical pity for a problem that, even among his own people, the creators of sin, was rarely a significant issue! But Christians later learned how to honor their teacher and transform his mistake into a "truth."

139.

Colour of the Passions.—Natures such as the apostle Paul, have an evil eye for the passions; they learn to know only the filthy, the distorting, and the heart-breaking in them,—their ideal aim, therefore, is the annihilation of the passions; in the divine they see complete purification from passion. The Greeks, quite otherwise than Paul and the Jews, directed their ideal aim precisely to the passions, and loved, elevated, embellished and deified them: in passion they evidently not only felt themselves happier, but also purer and diviner than otherwise.—And now the Christians? Have they wished to become Jews in this respect? Have they perhaps become Jews!

Color of the Passions.—Natures like the apostle Paul have a negative view of the passions; they focus only on the filthy, distorting, and heart-wrenching aspects of them. Their ultimate goal is to completely eliminate the passions; they see the divine as a way to achieve total purification from passion. The Greeks, in stark contrast to Paul and the Jews, aimed their ideals directly at the passions and cherished, elevated, beautified, and even deified them. Through passion, they felt not only happier but also purer and more divine than they otherwise would.—And what about the Christians? Have they aspired to become Jews in this regard? Have they perhaps actually become Jews!

140.

Too Jewish.—If God had wanted to become an object of love, he would first of all have had to 178forgo judging and justice:—a judge, and even a gracious judge, is no object of love. The founder of Christianity showed too little of the finer feelings in this respect—being a Jew.

Too Jewish.—If God wanted to be a figure of love, he would have needed to set aside judgment and justice first:—a judge, even a kind one, isn't someone you love. The founder of Christianity didn't express enough of the more delicate emotions in this area—being a Jew.

141.

Too Oriental.—What? A God who loves men, provided that they believe in him, and who hurls frightful glances and threatenings at him who does not believe in this love! What? A conditioned love as the feeling of an almighty God! A love which has not even become master of the sentiment of honour and of the irritable desire for vengeance! How Oriental is all that! "If I love thee, what does it concern thee?"[9] is already a sufficient criticism of the whole of Christianity.

Too Oriental.—What? A God who loves people, as long as they believe in Him, and who casts terrifying looks and threats at those who do not accept this love! What? A love that comes with conditions from an all-powerful God! A love that hasn't even mastered the sense of honor and the restless urge for revenge! It’s all so Eastern! "If I love you, what does it matter to you?"[9] is already a sufficient criticism of the whole of Christianity.

142.

Frankincense.—Buddha says: "Do not flatter thy benefactor!" Let one repeat this saying in a Christian church:—it immediately purifies the air of all Christianity.

Frankincense.—Buddha says: "Don’t flatter your benefactor!" Let someone say this in a Christian church:—it instantly clears the air of all Christianity.

143.

The Greatest Utility of Polytheism.—For the individual to set up his own ideal and derive from it his laws, his pleasures and his rights—that has perhaps been hitherto regarded as the most monstrous of all human aberrations, and as idolatry in itself; in fact, the few who have ventured to do this have always needed to apologise to themselves, 179usually in this wise: "Not I! not I! but a God, through my instrumentality!" It was in the marvellous art and capacity for creating Gods—in polytheism—that this impulse was permitted to discharge itself, it was here that it became purified, perfected, and ennobled; for it was originally a commonplace and unimportant impulse, akin to stubbornness, disobedience and envy. To be hostile to this impulse towards the individual ideal,—that was formerly the law of every morality. There was then only one norm, "the man"—and every people believed that it had this one and ultimate norm. But above himself, and outside of himself, in a distant over-world, a person could see a multitude of norms: the one God was not the denial or blasphemy of the other Gods! It was here that individuals were first permitted, it was here that the right of individuals was first respected. The inventing of Gods, heroes and supermen of all kinds, as well as co-ordinate men and undermen—dwarfs, fairies, centaurs, satyrs, demons, devils—was the inestimable preliminary to the justification of the selfishness and sovereignty of the individual: the freedom which was granted to one God in respect to other Gods, was at last given to the individual himself in respect to laws, customs and neighbours. Monotheism, on the contrary, the rigid consequence of the doctrine of one normal human being—consequently the belief in a normal God, beside whom there are only false, spurious Gods—has perhaps been the greatest danger of mankind in the past: man was then threatened by that premature state of inertia, which, so far as we can see, most of the 180other species of animals reached long ago, as creatures who all believe in one normal animal and ideal in their species, and definitely translated their morality of custom into flesh and blood. In polytheism man's free-thinking and many-sided thinking had a prototype set up: the power to create for himself new and individual eyes, always newer and more individualised: so that it is for man alone, of all the animals, that there are no eternal horizons and perspectives.

The Greatest Utility of Polytheism.—For an individual to create their own ideal and derive their laws, pleasures, and rights from it has probably been seen as the most outrageous of all human behaviors, essentially viewed as idolatry; indeed, those few who have dared to do this have always felt the need to justify it to themselves, often thinking, "Not me! Not me! But a God, through me!" It was in the extraordinary art and ability to create Gods—in polytheism—that this drive was allowed to express itself; here, it became refined, perfected, and elevated, as it originally stemmed from a trivial and inconsequential impulse, similar to stubbornness, disobedience, and envy. To be against this drive towards an individual ideal was once the rule of every moral code. There was only one standard, "the man"—and each society believed it had this single ultimate standard. But above and beyond themselves, in a distant otherworld, people could perceive a multitude of norms: the one God was not a denial or insult to the other Gods! It was here that individuals were first allowed to be recognized, and it was here that individual rights were first acknowledged. The creation of Gods, heroes, and superhumans of all kinds, along with equal men and lesser beings—dwarfs, fairies, centaurs, satyrs, demons, devils—was an invaluable precursor to justifying the selfishness and independence of the individual: the freedom granted to one God in relation to other Gods was eventually extended to the individual themselves in relation to laws, customs, and neighbors. On the other hand, monotheism, the strict outcome of believing in one normal human being—leading to the belief in a normal God, alongside which there are only false, inferior Gods—may have posed the greatest threat to humanity in the past: humans then faced the risk of falling into an early state of inertia, which, as far as we know, many other animal species reached long ago, where every creature believed in one standard animal and ideal of their kind, effectively turning their customary morality into reality. In polytheism, humanity's free-thinking and diverse thinking had a model established: the ability to create for oneself new and unique perspectives, always newer and more individualized; thus, it is only for humans, unlike all other animals, that there are no eternal horizons and viewpoints.

144.

Religious Wars.—The greatest advance of the masses hitherto has been religious war, for it proves that the masses have begun to deal reverently with conceptions of things. Religious wars only result, when human reason generally has been refined by the subtle disputes of sects; so that even the populace becomes punctilious and regards trifles as important, actually thinking it possible that the "eternal salvation of the soul" may depend upon minute distinctions of concepts.

Religious Wars.—The biggest progress made by the masses so far has been through religious wars, as they show that people are starting to treat ideas with respect. Religious wars only happen when human reason has been sharpened by the intricate disagreements among different sects; as a result, even ordinary people become meticulous and see small details as significant, truly believing that the "eternal salvation of the soul" might hinge on slight differences in concepts.

145.

Danger of Vegetarians.—The immense prevalence of rice-eating impels to the use of opium and narcotics, in like manner as the immense prevalence of potato-eating impels to the use of brandy:—it also impels, however, in its more subtle after-effects to modes of thought and feeling which operate narcotically. This is in accord with the fact that those who promote narcotic modes of thought and feeling, like those Indian teachers, 181praise a purely vegetable diet, and would like to make it a law for the masses: they want thereby to call forth and augment the need which they are in a position to satisfy.

Danger of Vegetarians.—The widespread consumption of rice leads to the use of opium and other narcotics, just as the widespread consumption of potatoes leads to the use of brandy. However, it also influences more subtle thoughts and feelings that act like narcotics. This aligns with the fact that those who encourage narcotic ways of thinking and feeling, like certain Indian teachers, promote a strictly vegetable diet and would love to make it a law for everyone. They aim to create and increase a need that they can fulfill.

146.

German Hopes.—Do not let us forget that the names of peoples are generally names of reproach. The Tartars, for example, according to their name, are "the dogs"; they were so christened by the Chinese. "Deutschen" (Germans) means originally "heathen": it is thus that the Goths after their conversion named the great mass of their unbaptized fellow-tribes, according to the indication in their translation of the Septuagint, in which the heathen are designated by the word which in Greek signifies "the nations." (See Ulfilas.)—It might still be possible for the Germans to make an honourable name ultimately out of their old name of reproach, by becoming the first non-Christian nation of Europe; for which purpose Schopenhauer, to their honour, regarded them as highly qualified. The work of Luther would thus be consummated,—he who taught them to be anti-Roman and to say: "Here I stand! I cannot do otherwise!"—

German Hopes.—Let’s not forget that the names of peoples often carry negative connotations. For instance, the Tartars, whose name means "the dogs," were labeled as such by the Chinese. The term "Deutschen" (Germans) originally means "heathen": this is how the Goths referred to the majority of their unbaptized fellow tribes after their conversion, based on their translation of the Septuagint, where the heathens are described with a Greek word that signifies "the nations." (See Ulfilas.)—It might still be possible for the Germans to turn their old name of reproach into an honorable one by becoming the first non-Christian nation in Europe; for this reason, Schopenhauer considered them very capable. The work of Luther would thereby be fulfilled—he who taught them to be anti-Roman and to declare: "Here I stand! I cannot do otherwise!"—

147.

Question and Answer.—What do savage tribes at present accept first of all from Europeans? Brandy and Christianity, the European narcotics.—And by what means are they fastest ruined?—By the European narcotics.

Question and Answer.—What do savage tribes currently accept first from Europeans? Brandy and Christianity, the European drugs. —And how are they most quickly ruined? —By the European drugs.

182

148.

Where Reformations Originate.—At the time of the great corruption of the church it was least of all corrupt in Germany: it was on that account that the Reformation originated here, as a sign that even the beginnings of corruption were felt to be unendurable. For, comparatively speaking, no people was ever more Christian than the Germans at the time of Luther; their Christian culture was just about to burst into bloom with a hundred-fold splendour,—one night only was still lacking; but that night brought the storm which put an end to all.

Where Reformations Originate.—At the time of the church's great corruption, Germany was the least corrupt. Because of this, the Reformation started here, showing that even the first signs of corruption were seen as intolerable. Compared to other nations, no people were ever more Christian than the Germans during Luther's time; their Christian culture was on the verge of flourishing in a magnificent way,—only one night remained; but that night brought the storm that ended it all.

149.

The Failure of Reformations.—It testifies to the higher culture of the Greeks, even in rather early ages, that attempts to establish new Grecian religions frequently failed; it testifies that quite early there must have been a multitude of dissimilar individuals in Greece, whose dissimilar troubles were not cured by a single recipe of faith and hope. Pythagoras and Plato, perhaps also Empedocles, and already much earlier the Orphic enthusiasts, aimed at founding new religions; and the two first-named were so endowed with the qualifications for founding religions, that one cannot be sufficiently astonished at their failure: they just reached the point of founding sects. Every time that the Reformation of an entire people fails and only sects raise their heads, one may conclude that the people already contains many types, and has begun to free itself from the gross 183herding instincts and the morality of custom,—a momentous state of suspense, which one is accustomed to disparage as decay of morals and corruption, while it announces the maturing of the egg and the early rupture of the shell. That Luther's Reformation succeeded in the north, is a sign that the north had remained backward in comparison with the south of Europe, and still had requirements tolerably uniform in colour and kind; and there would have been no Christianising of Europe at all, if the culture of the old world of the south had not been gradually barbarized by an excessive admixture of the blood of German barbarians, and thus lost its ascendency. The more universally and unconditionally an individual, or the thought of an individual, can operate, so much more homogeneous and so much lower must be the mass that is there operated upon; while counter-strivings betray internal counter-requirements, which also want to gratify and realise themselves. Reversely, one may always conclude with regard to an actual elevation of culture, when powerful and ambitious natures only produce a limited and sectarian effect: this is true also for the separate arts, and for the provinces of knowledge. Where there is ruling there are masses: where there are masses there is need of slavery. Where there is slavery the individuals are but few, and have the instincts and conscience of the herd opposed to them.

The Failure of Reformations.—It highlights the advanced culture of the Greeks, even in earlier times, that efforts to create new Grecian religions often failed; it shows that, quite early on, there were many different individuals in Greece whose unique issues couldn't be solved by a single belief or hope. Pythagoras and Plato, perhaps Empedocles as well, and even earlier, the Orphic enthusiasts, tried to establish new religions; and the first two had such the right qualities for founding religions that it’s astonishing they didn’t fully succeed: they only managed to create sects. Whenever a whole population's reform fails and only sects emerge, it's a sign that the population already consists of many types and has started to move away from primitive instincts and conventional morality—a critical state of tension often dismissed as moral decay and corruption, while it actually signals the maturation of an idea and the impending breaking of its constraints. The fact that Luther's Reformation succeeded in the north indicates that the north lagged behind compared to the south of Europe, still having fairly uniform needs in color and kind; there would have been no Christianization of Europe at all if the culture of the ancient southern world hadn’t been progressively diluted by an excessive mixture of German barbarian blood, thus losing its dominance. The more universally and unconditionally a person, or the thought of a person, can function, the more homogeneous and simpler the mass being acted upon must be; while opposing forces reveal internal demands that also seek to satisfy and realize themselves. Conversely, when powerful and ambitious individuals only have a limited and sectarian impact, it suggests an actual rise in culture: this applies to different arts and fields of knowledge as well. Where there is authority, there are masses; where there are masses, there is a need for control. Where there is control, the individuals are few, and their instincts and conscience often clash with those of the herd.

150.

Criticism of Saints.—Must one then, in order to have a virtue, be desirous of having it precisely 184in its most brutal form?—as the Christian saints desired and needed;—those who only endured life with the thought that at the sight of their virtue self-contempt might seize every man. A virtue with such an effect I call brutal.

Criticism of Saints.—Does one have to want a virtue in its most brutal form to actually possess it?—like the Christian saints did; those who merely endured life with the hope that their virtue might provoke self-contempt in everyone else. A virtue that produces such an effect, I call brutal.

151.

The Origin of Religion.—The metaphysical requirement is not the origin of religions, as Schopenhauer claims, but only a later sprout from them. Under the dominance of religious thoughts we have accustomed ourselves to the idea of "another (back, under, or upper) world," and feel an uncomfortable void and privation through the annihilation of the religious illusion;—and then "another world" grows out of this feeling once more, but now it is only a metaphysical world, and no longer a religious one. That however which in general led to the assumption of "another world" in primitive times, was not an impulse or requirement, but an error in the interpretation of certain natural phenomena, a difficulty of the intellect.

The Origin of Religion.—The need for metaphysics isn't the root of religions, as Schopenhauer suggests, but rather a later development from them. Under the influence of religious ideas, we've grown used to the concept of an "other (back, below, or higher) world" and experience a troubling emptiness and loss with the end of religious beliefs;—and then, once again, an "other world" emerges from this feeling, but now it's just a metaphysical world, not a religious one. What originally led to the belief in "another world" in ancient times wasn't a desire or need, but rather an error in understanding certain natural phenomena, a challenge for the intellect.

152.

The greatest Change.—The lustre and the hues of all things have changed! We no longer quite understand how earlier men conceived of the most familiar and frequent things,—for example, of the day, and the awakening in the morning: owing to their belief in dreams the waking state seemed to them differently illuminated. And similarly of the whole of life, with its reflection of death and its significance: our "death" is an entirely different 185death. All events were of a different lustre, for a God shone forth in them; and similarly of all resolutions and peeps into the distant future: for people had oracles, and secret hints, and believed in prognostication. "Truth" was conceived in quite a different manner, for the insane could formerly be regarded as its mouthpiece—a thing which makes us shudder, or laugh. Injustice made a different impression on the feelings: for people were afraid of divine retribution, and not only of legal punishment and disgrace. What joy was there in an age when men believed in the devil and tempter! What passion was there when people saw demons lurking close at hand! What philosophy was there when doubt was regarded as sinfulness of the most dangerous kind, and in fact as an outrage on eternal love, as distrust of everything good, high, pure, and compassionate!—We have coloured things anew, we paint them over continually,—but what have we been able to do hitherto in comparison with the splendid colouring of that old master!—I mean ancient humanity.

The greatest Change.—The shine and colors of everything have shifted! We no longer fully grasp how people in the past viewed the most familiar and common things—like the day and waking up in the morning. Their belief in dreams made waking life seem differently lit to them. And the same goes for life as a whole, including its reflection on death and its meaning: our "death" is a completely different 185death. Every event had a different shine because a God was present in them; and the same applies to all decisions and glimpses into the future: people relied on oracles, secret signs, and believed in predictions. "Truth" was understood in an entirely different way; the insane were once considered its spokespersons—a thought that makes us shudder or laugh. Injustice felt different too: people feared divine punishment, not just legal consequences and shame. What joy existed in a time when people believed in the devil and tempter! What passion did they experience when they sensed demons lurking nearby! What philosophy thrived when doubt was seen as a grave sin, an affront to eternal love, a distrust of all that is good, noble, pure, and kind!—We have re-colored things, we constantly paint over them—but what have we accomplished so far compared to the stunning colors of that old master!—I mean ancient humanity.

153.

Homo poeta.—"I myself who have made this tragedy of tragedies altogether independently, in so far as it is completed; I who have first entwined the perplexities of morality about existence, and have tightened them so that only a God could unravel them—so Horace demands!—I have already in the fourth act killed all the Gods—for the sake of morality! What is now to be done about the fifth act? Where shall I get the 186tragic dénouement! Must I now think about a comic dénouement?"

Homo poeta.—"I, who have created this tragedy of tragedies completely on my own, as it stands finished; I, who have woven the complexities of morality into existence, tightening them so much that only a God could untangle them—just as Horace says!—I have already in the fourth act killed off all the Gods—for the sake of morality! What should I do now for the fifth act? Where will I find the tragic dénouement? Do I now have to consider a comic dénouement?"

154.

Differences in the Dangerousness of Life.—You don't know at all what you experience; you run through life as if intoxicated, and now and then fall down a stair. Thanks however to your intoxication you still do not break your limbs: your muscles are too languid and your head too confused to find the stones of the staircase as hard as we others do! For us life is a greater danger: we are made of glass—alas, if we should strike against anything! And all is lost if we should fall!

Differences in the Dangerousness of Life.—You don’t really understand what you’re going through; you race through life like you’re under the influence, and every now and then you tumble down a flight of stairs. Fortunately, thanks to your dazed state, you don’t break any bones: your muscles are too relaxed and your mind too muddled to realize that the stones of the staircase are as hard as they are for the rest of us! For us, life poses a greater threat: we’re fragile—oh, if we were to bump into anything! And it’s all over if we were to fall!

155.

What we Lack.—We love the grandeur of Nature and have discovered it; that is because human grandeur is lacking in our minds. It was the reverse with the Greeks: their feeling towards Nature was quite different from ours.

What we Lack.—We appreciate the grandeur of Nature and have recognized it; that’s because we lack a sense of human grandeur in our minds. The situation was the opposite for the Greeks: their attitude toward Nature was very different from ours.

156.

The most Influential Person.—The fact that a person resists the whole spirit of his age, stops it at the door, and calls it to account, must exert an influence! It is indifferent whether he wishes to exert an influence; the point is that he can.

The most Influential Person.—The fact that a person stands against the entire spirit of their time, pushes it away, and challenges it, has to create an impact! It doesn't matter if they want to make an impact; the key point is that they can.

157.

Mentiri.—Take care!—he reflects: he will have a lie ready immediately. This is a stage in 187the civilisation of whole nations. Consider only what the Romans expressed by mentiri!

Mentiri.—Be careful!—he thinks: he will have a lie ready right away. This is a phase in the development of entire nations. Just think about what the Romans meant by mentiri!

158.

An Inconvenient Peculiarity.—To find everything deep is an inconvenient peculiarity: it makes one constantly strain one's eyes, so that in the end one always finds more than one wishes.

An Inconvenient Peculiarity.—Finding everything deeply is an annoying quirk: it makes you constantly squint, so in the end, you always discover more than you want.

159.

Every Virtue has its Time.—The honesty of him who is at present inflexible often causes him remorse; for inflexibility is the virtue of a time different from that in which honesty prevails.

Every Virtue has its Time.—The honesty of someone who is currently rigid often brings them regret; because being rigid is a virtue from a different time than the one where honesty is valued.

160.

In Intercourse with Virtues.—One can also be undignified and flattering towards a virtue.

In Intercourse with Virtues.—One can also be unrefined and sycophantic towards a virtue.

161.

To the Admirers of the Age.—The runaway priest and the liberated criminal are continually making grimaces; what they want is a look without a past.—But have you ever seen men who know that their looks reflect the future, and who are so courteous to you, the admirers of the "age," that they assume a look without a future.

To the Admirers of the Age.—The runaway priest and the freed criminal keep making faces; what they want is an appearance without a past.—But have you ever seen men who understand that their expressions reflect the future, and who are so polite to you, the admirers of the "age," that they put on a look without a future?

162.

Egoism.—Egoism is the perspective law of our sentiment, according to which the near appears large and momentous, while in the distance the magnitude and importance of all things diminish.

Egoism.—Egoism is the perspective principle of our feelings, where what’s close seems big and important, while things that are far away lose their size and significance.

188

163.

After a Great Victory.—The best thing in a great victory is that it deprives the conqueror of the fear of defeat. "Why should I not be worsted for once?" he says to himself, "I am now rich enough to stand it."

After a Great Victory.—The best part of a big win is that it takes away the conqueror's fear of losing. "Why shouldn't I get beaten this time?" he thinks to himself, "I've got enough money to handle it."

164.

Those who Seek Repose.—I recognise the minds that seek repose by the many dark objects with which they surround themselves: those who want to sleep darken their chambers, or creep into caverns. A hint to those who do not know what they really seek most, and would like to know!

Those who Seek Repose.—I see the minds that look for peace by the many dark things they surround themselves with: those who want to rest darken their rooms or hide away in caves. A tip for those who aren't sure what they truly want and would like to find out!

165.

The Happiness of Renunciation.—He who has absolutely dispensed with something for a long time will almost imagine, when he accidentally meets with it again, that he has discovered it,—and what happiness every discoverer has! Let us be wiser than the serpents that lie too long in the same sunshine.

The Happiness of Letting Go.—Someone who has completely given up something for a long time will almost feel like they’ve found it again when they come across it unexpectedly—and what joy every discoverer feels! Let's be smarter than the snakes that stay too long in the same sunlight.

166.

Always in our own Society.—All that is akin to me in nature and history speaks to me, praises me, urges me forward and comforts me—: other things are unheard by me, or immediately forgotten. We are only in our own society always.

Always in our own Society.—Everything related to me in nature and history communicates with me, supports me, encourages me to move ahead, and provides comfort—other things go unnoticed or are quickly forgotten. We are always only in our own society.

167.

Misanthropy and Philanthropy.—We only speak about being sick of men when we can no longer 189digest them, and yet have the stomach full of them. Misanthropy is the result of a far too eager philanthropy and "cannibalism,"—but who ever bade you swallow men like oysters, my Prince Hamlet!

Misanthropy and Philanthropy.—We only talk about being fed up with people when we can't take them anymore, yet our minds are still overwhelmed with thoughts of them. Misanthropy is what happens when our desire to help others becomes excessive and turns into "cannibalism"—but who told you to consume people like they’re oysters, my Prince Hamlet!

168.

Concerning an Invalid.—"Things go badly with him!"—What is wrong?—"He suffers from the longing to be praised, and finds no sustenance for it."—Inconceivable! All the world does honour to him, and he is reverenced not only in deed but in word!—"Certainly, but he is dull of hearing for the praise. When a friend praises him it sounds to him as if the friend praised himself; when an enemy praises him, it sounds to him as if the enemy wanted to be praised for it; when, finally, some one else praises him—there are by no means so many of these, he is so famous!—he is offended because they neither want him for a friend nor for an enemy; he is accustomed to say: 'What do I care for those who can still pose as the all-righteous towards me!'"

About Someone Feeling Invalidated.—"Things aren't going well for him!"—What's the issue?—"He craves recognition and can't find it."—That's hard to believe! Everyone admires him, and he’s respected in both action and words!—"True, but he’s tone-deaf to the praise. When a friend praises him, it sounds like the friend is just bragging. When an enemy praises him, it feels like the enemy is just trying to self-promote. And when someone else praises him—there aren’t many of those, given how famous he is!—he gets upset because they don't want to be his friend or his enemy; he often says: 'What do I care about those who still think they can act morally superior towards me!'"

169.

Avowed Enemies.—Bravery in presence of an enemy is a thing by itself: a person may possess it and still be a coward and an irresolute numskull. That was Napoleon's opinion concerning the "bravest man" he knew, Murat:—whence it follows that avowed enemies are indispensable to some men, if they are to attain to their virtue, to their manliness, to their cheerfulness.

Open Enemies.—Being brave in front of an enemy is its own thing: a person can have that bravery and still be a coward and a waffler. That was Napoleon's view on the “bravest man” he knew, Murat:—which implies that open enemies are essential for some people if they want to achieve their virtue, their strength, and their happiness.

190

170.

With the Multitude.—He has hitherto gone with the multitude and is its panegyrist; but one day he will be its opponent! For he follows it in the belief that his laziness will find its advantage thereby; he has not yet learned that the multitude is not lazy enough for him! that it always presses forward! that it does not allow any one to stand still!—And he likes so well to stand still!

With the Multitude.—He has so far gone along with the crowd and praised it; but one day he will oppose it! He follows it thinking his laziness will benefit, but he hasn’t realized that the crowd isn’t lazy enough for him! It always moves forward! It doesn’t let anyone stand still!—And he enjoys standing still way too much!

171.

Fame.—When the gratitude of many to one casts aside all shame, then fame originates.

Fame.—When the gratitude of many towards one person puts aside all embarrassment, that's when fame begins.

172.

The Perverter of Taste.—A: "You are a perverter of taste—they say so everywhere!" B: "Certainly! I pervert every one's taste for his party:—no party forgives me for that."

The Perverter of Taste.—A: "You're ruining people's taste—everyone says so!" B: "Absolutely! I ruin everyone's taste for their party:—no party forgives me for that."

173.

To be Profound and to Appear Profound.—He who knows that he is profound strives for clearness; he who would like to appear profound to the multitude strives for obscurity. The multitude thinks everything profound of which it cannot see the bottom; it is so timid and goes so unwillingly into the water.

To Be Deep and to Seem Deep.—The one who understands that they are deep aims for clarity; the one who wants to seem deep to the masses aims for confusion. The masses believe that everything is deep if they can’t see the bottom; they are so cautious and hesitant to dive in.

174.

Apart.—Parliamentarism, that is to say, the public permission to choose between five main political 191opinions, insinuates itself into the favour of the numerous class who would fain appear independent and individual, and like to fight for their opinions. After all, however, it is a matter of indifference whether one opinion is imposed upon the herd, or five opinions are permitted to it.—He who diverges from the five public opinions and goes apart, has always the whole herd against him.

Apart.—Parliamentarism, meaning the public's ability to choose from five main political views, appeals to the many who want to seem independent and unique, and who enjoy fighting for their beliefs. Ultimately, it doesn't really matter if one opinion is forced on the masses or if five opinions are allowed. —Anyone who strays from these five public opinions and stands apart will always have the entire crowd against them.

175.

Concerning Eloquence.—What has hitherto had the most convincing eloquence? The rolling of the drum: and as long as kings have this at their command, they will always be the best orators and popular leaders.

Concerning Eloquence.—What has been the most persuasive form of eloquence so far? The sound of the drum: and as long as kings have this at their disposal, they will always be the most effective speakers and popular leaders.

176.

Compassion.—The poor, ruling princes! All their rights now change unexpectedly into claims, and all these claims immediately sound like pretensions! And if they but say "we," or "my people," wicked old Europe begins laughing. Verily, a chief-master-of-ceremonies of the modern world would make little ceremony with them; perhaps he would decree that "les souverains rangent aux parvenus."

Compassion.—The poor ruling princes! All their rights suddenly turn into demands, and those demands immediately come off as pretentious! And if they dare to say "we" or "my people," wicked old Europe starts laughing. Truly, a modern-day master of ceremonies wouldn’t bother with them; maybe he would order that "les souverains rangent aux parvenus."

177.

On "Educational Matters."—In Germany an important educational means is lacking for higher men; namely, the laughter of higher men; these men do not laugh in Germany.

On "Educational Matters."—In Germany, there’s a key educational element missing for accomplished individuals; specifically, the laughter of these intellectuals. These individuals do not laugh in Germany.

192

178.

For Moral Enlightenment.—The Germans must be talked out of their Mephistopheles—and out of their Faust also. These are two moral prejudices against the value of knowledge.

For Moral Enlightenment.—The Germans need to move past their Mephistopheles—and their Faust as well. These are two moral biases against the value of knowledge.

179.

Thoughts.—Thoughts are the shadows of our sentiments—always, however, obscurer, emptier, and simpler.

Thoughts.—Thoughts are the shadows of our feelings—always, however, more obscure, emptier, and simpler.

180.

The Good Time for Free Spirits.—Free Spirits take liberties even with regard to Science—and meanwhile they are allowed to do so,—while the Church still remains!—In so far they have now their good time.

The Good Time for Free Spirits.—Free Spirits take liberties even with Science—and they’re allowed to do so—while the Church still exists! In this way, they are enjoying their freedom.

181.

Following and Leading.—A: "Of the two, the one will always follow, the other will always lead, whatever be the course of their destiny. And yet the former is superior to the other in virtue and intellect." B: "And yet? And yet? That is spoken for the others; not for me, not for us!—Fit secundum regulam."

Following and Leading.—A: "Of the two, one will always follow, and the other will always lead, no matter what their destiny is. And yet the former is superior to the latter in virtue and intellect." B: "And yet? And yet? That's what you say about others; it doesn't apply to me, not to us!—Fit secundum regulam."

182.

In Solitude.—When one lives alone one does not speak too loudly, and one does not write too loudly either, for one fears the hollow reverberation—the criticism of the nymph Echo.—And all voices sound differently in solitude!

In Solitude.—When you live alone, you don't speak too loudly, and you don't write too loudly either, because you fear the empty echo— the judgment of the nymph Echo.—And all voices sound different in solitude!

193

183.

The Music of the Best Future.—The first musician for me would be he who knew only the sorrow of the profoundest happiness, and no other sorrow: there has not hitherto been such a musician.

The Music of the Best Future.—The first musician for me would be someone who understood only the sadness of the deepest happiness, and no other sadness: there has never been such a musician before.

184.

Justice.—Better allow oneself to be robbed than have scarecrows around one—that is my taste. And under all circumstances it is just a matter of taste—and nothing more!

Justice.—It’s better to let yourself be robbed than to have scarecrows around you—that’s just my preference. And in any case, it’s really just a matter of taste—and nothing more!

185.

Poor.—He is now poor, but not because everything has been taken from him, but because he has thrown everything away:—what does he care? He is accustomed to find new things.—It is the poor who misunderstand his voluntary poverty.

Poor.—He is now poor, but not because everything has been taken from him; it's because he has given everything up:—what does he care? He’s used to finding new things. It’s the poor who misunderstand his choice of voluntary poverty.

186.

Bad Conscience.—All that he now does is excellent and proper—and yet he has a bad conscience with it all. For the exceptional is his task.

Bad Conscience.—Everything he does now is excellent and appropriate—yet he feels guilty about it all. His true challenge lies in achieving the extraordinary.

187.

Offensiveness in Expression.—This artist offends me by the way in which he expresses his ideas, his very excellent ideas: so diffusely and forcibly, and with such gross rhetorical artifices, as if he were speaking to the mob. We feel always as if "in bad company" when devoting some time to his art.

Offensiveness in Expression.—This artist bothers me with how he shares his ideas, which are actually quite good: he does it so broadly and aggressively, using such cheap rhetorical tricks, as if he’s talking to a crowd. It always feels like we’re "in bad company" when we spend time with his art.

194

188.

Work.—How close work and the workers now stand even to the most leisurely of us! The royal courtesy in the words: "We are all workers," would have been a cynicism and an indecency even under Louis XIV.

Work.—How closely work and workers are intertwined even with the most relaxed among us! The royal courtesy in the phrase: "We are all workers," would have seemed cynical and inappropriate even under Louis XIV.

189.

The Thinker.—He is a thinker: that is to say, he knows how to take things more simply than they are.

The Thinker.—He is a thinker: in other words, he understands how to see things more simply than they truly are.

190.

Against Eulogisers.—A: "One is only praised by one's equals!" B: "Yes! And he who praises you says: 'You are my equal!'"

Against Eulogisers.—A: "You only get praised by those who are your equals!" B: "Exactly! And when someone praises you, they’re saying: 'You are my equal!'"

191.

Against many a Vindication.—The most perfidious manner of injuring a cause is to vindicate it intentionally with fallacious arguments.

Against many a Vindication.—The most treacherous way to harm a cause is to defend it deliberately using misleading arguments.

192.

The Good-natured.—What is it that distinguishes the good-natured, whose countenances beam kindness, from other people? They feel quite at ease in presence of a new person, and are quickly enamoured of him; they therefore wish him well; their first opinion is: "He pleases me." With them there follow in succession the wish to appropriate (they make little scruple about the person's worth), rapid appropriation, joy in the possession, and actions in favour of the person possessed.

The Good-natured.—What sets apart the good-natured people, whose faces radiate kindness, from others? They feel comfortable around new individuals and quickly become fond of them; they genuinely wish them well. Their initial thought is, "I like them." From there, they tend to want to claim the relationship (without much concern for the person's value), swiftly build a connection, take joy in the bond, and act in support of the person they’ve grown attached to.

195

193.

Kant's Joke.—Kant tried to prove, in a way that dismayed "everybody," that "everybody" was in the right:—that was his secret joke. He wrote against the learned, in favour of popular prejudice; he wrote, however, for the learned and not for the people.

Kant's Joke.—Kant attempted to show, in a way that shocked "everyone," that "everyone" was correct:—that was his hidden joke. He wrote against the intellectuals, supporting common beliefs; however, he wrote for the intellectuals and not for the general public.

194.

The "Open-hearted" Man.—That man acts probably always from concealed motives; for he has always communicable motives on his tongue, and almost in his open hand.

The "Open-hearted" Man.—That man likely always acts on hidden motives; because he always has shareable motives on his lips, and almost in his open hand.

195.

Laughable!—See! See! He runs away from men—: they follow him, however, because he runs before them,—they are such a gregarious lot!

Ridiculous!—Look! Look! He runs away from people—: they chase after him, though, because he runs ahead of them,—they're such a social bunch!

196.

The Limits of our Sense of Hearing.—We hear only the questions to which we are capable of finding an answer.

The Limits of our Sense of Hearing.—We only hear the questions that we can actually find answers to.

197.

Caution therefore!—There is nothing we are fonder of communicating to others than the seal of secrecy—together with what is under it.

Be careful!—There’s nothing we love more than sharing secrets—with everything that comes with them.

198.

Vexation of the Proud Man.—The proud man is vexed even with those who help him forward: he looks angrily at his carriage-horses!

Vexation of the Proud Man.—The proud man is irritated even by those who assist him: he glares at his carriage horses!

196

199.

Liberality.—Liberality is often only a form of timidity in the rich.

Liberality.—Generosity is often just a way for wealthy people to hide their insecurity.

200.

Laughing.—To laugh means to love mischief, but with a good conscience.

Laughing.—To laugh is to enjoy mischief, but in a good way.

201.

In Applause.—In applause there is always some kind of noise: even in self-applause.

In Applause.—In applause, there’s always some sort of noise: even in self-applause.

202.

A Spendthrift.—He has not yet the poverty of the rich man who has counted all his treasure,—he squanders his spirit with the irrationalness of the spendthrift Nature.

A Spendthrift.—He doesn't yet know the poverty of the wealthy man who has counted all his riches—he wastes his energy with the recklessness of a spendthrift.

203.

Hic niger est.—Usually he has no thoughts,—but in exceptional cases bad thoughts come to him.

This one is dark.—Usually he has no thoughts,—but in rare cases, negative thoughts cross his mind.

204.

Beggars and Courtesy.—"One is not discourteous when one knocks at a door with a stone when the bell-pull is awanting"—so think all beggars and necessitous persons, but no one thinks they are in the right.

Beggars and Courtesy.—"It's not rude to knock on a door with a stone when there's no doorbell"—that's what all beggars and people in need believe, but no one agrees that they're justified.

205.

Need.—Need is supposed to be the cause of things; but in truth it is often only the effect of the things themselves.

Need.—Need is thought to be the reason for things; but in reality, it’s often just the result of the things themselves.

197

206.

During the Rain.—It rains, and I think of the poor people who now crowd together with their many cares, which they are unaccustomed to conceal; all of them, therefore, ready and anxious to give pain to one another, and thus provide themselves with a pitiable kind of comfort, even in bad weather. This, this only, is the poverty of the poor!

During the Rain.—It’s raining, and I think about the struggling people who are huddled together with their worries that they usually try to hide; all of them are eager and tense to hurt each other, finding a sad sort of comfort even in the bad weather. This is the true poverty of the poor!

207.

The Envious Man.—That is an envious man—it is not desirable that he should have children; he would be envious of them, because he can no longer be a child.

The Envious Man.—That man is filled with envy—it’s not ideal for him to have kids; he would envy them, because he can no longer be a child.

208.

A Great Man!—Because a person is "a great man," we are not authorised to infer that he is a man. Perhaps he is only a boy, or a chameleon of all ages, or a bewitched girl.

A Great Man!—Just because someone is called "a great man," we can't assume that he is actually a man. He might just be a boy, or someone who changes with every age, or even an enchanted girl.

209.

A Mode of Asking for Reasons.—There is a mode of asking for our reasons which not only makes us forget our best reasons, but also arouses in us a spite and repugnance against reason generally:—a very stupefying mode of questioning, and properly an artifice of tyrannical men!

A Way of Asking for Reasons.—There’s a way of asking for our reasons that not only makes us forget our best ones but also creates a feeling of resentment and dislike for reason in general:—a really confusing way of questioning, and truly a tactic used by controlling people!

210.

Moderation in Diligence.—One must not be anxious to surpass the diligence of one's father—that would make one ill.

Moderation in Diligence.—You shouldn’t be overly eager to outdo your father's hard work—that could make you unwell.

198

211.

Secret Enemies.—To be able to keep a secret enemy—that is a luxury which the morality even of the highest-minded persons can rarely afford.

Secret Enemies.—Being able to maintain a secret enemy—that’s a luxury that even the most principled individuals can hardly manage.

212.

Not Letting oneself be Deluded.—His spirit has bad manners, it is hasty and always stutters with impatience; so that one would hardly suspect the deep breathing and the large chest of the soul in which it resides.

Not Letting Oneself Be Deluded.—His spirit has poor manners, it's impulsive and always fumbles with impatience; so much so that you'd hardly notice the deep breath and the vast chest of the soul it inhabits.

213.

The Way to Happiness.—A sage asked of a fool the way to happiness. The fool answered without delay, like one who had been asked the way to the next town: "Admire yourself, and live on the street!" "Hold," cried the sage, "you require too much; it suffices to admire oneself!" The fool replied: "But how can one constantly admire without constantly despising?"

The Way to Happiness.—A wise person asked a fool how to find happiness. The fool answered immediately, as if he had been asked for directions to the nearest town: "Love yourself, and live on the street!" "Wait," said the wise person, "that's asking for too much; it's enough just to love yourself!" The fool responded: "But how can someone truly love themselves without also feeling contempt for everything else?"

214.

Faith Saves.—Virtue gives happiness and a state of blessedness only to those who have a strong faith in their virtue:—not, however, to the more refined souls whose virtue consists of a profound distrust of themselves and of all virtue. After all, therefore, it is "faith that saves" here also!—and be it well observed, not virtue!

Faith Saves.—Virtue brings happiness and a sense of fulfillment only to those who have a strong belief in their own virtue:—not to those more introspective individuals whose virtue is rooted in deep self-doubt and skepticism about all virtue. Ultimately, it’s "faith that saves" in this context too!—and let it be clear, not virtue!

199

215.

The Ideal and the Material.—You have a noble ideal before your eyes: but are you also such a noble stone that such a divine image could be formed out of you? And without that—is not all your labour barbaric sculpturing? A blasphemy of your ideal!

The Ideal and the Material.—You have a great ideal in front of you: but are you really the kind of person who could shape that divine image? Without that, is all your effort just a crude attempt at sculpting? It’s a disrespect to your ideal!

216.

Danger in the Voice.—With a very loud voice a person is almost incapable of reflecting on subtle matters.

Danger in the Voice.—With a really loud voice, a person can hardly think about subtle issues.

217.

Cause and Effect.—Before the effect one believes in other causes than after the effect.

Cause and Effect.—Before the outcome, one believes in other causes than after the outcome.

218.

My Antipathy.—I do not like those people who, in order to produce an effect, have to burst like bombs, and in whose neighbourhood one is always in danger of suddenly losing one's hearing—or even something more.

My Antipathy.—I don’t like those people who, to make an impression, have to explode like bombs, and around whom you’re always at risk of suddenly losing your hearing—or even something more.

219.

The Object of Punishment.—The object of punishment is to improve him who punishes,—that is the ultimate appeal of those who justify punishment.

The Object of Punishment.—The purpose of punishment is to improve the one who punishes—this is the ultimate reasoning of those who defend punishment.

220.

Sacrifice.—The victims think otherwise than the spectators about sacrifice and sacrificing: but they have never been allowed to express their opinion.

Sacrifice.—The victims view sacrifice and sacrificing differently than the spectators do: however, they've never been given a chance to share their thoughts.

200

221.

Consideration.—Fathers and sons are much more considerate of one another than mothers and daughters.

Consideration.—Fathers and sons tend to be more thoughtful of each other than mothers and daughters.

222.

Poet and Liar.—The poet sees in the liar his foster-brother whose milk he has drunk up; the latter has thus remained wretched, and has not even attained to a good conscience.

Poet and Liar.—The poet views the liar as a brother figure who he has grown up with; the liar, in turn, remains miserable and hasn't even gained a clear conscience.

223.

Vicariousness of the Senses.—"We have also eyes in order to hear with them,"—said an old confessor who had grown deaf; "and among the blind he that has the longest ears is king."

Vicariousness of the Senses.—"We have eyes so we can hear with them," said an old priest who had become deaf; "and among the blind, the one with the longest ears is the ruler."

224.

Animal Criticism.—I fear the animals regard man as a being like themselves, very seriously endangered by a loss of sound animal understanding;—they regard him perhaps as the absurd animal, the laughing animal, the crying animal, the unfortunate animal.

Animal Criticism.—I worry that animals see humans as creatures like themselves, seriously at risk due to a lack of true animal instinct;—they might view us as the ridiculous animal, the laughing animal, the crying animal, the unfortunate animal.

225.

The Natural.—"Evil has always had the great effect! And Nature is evil! Let us therefore be natural!"—so reason secretly the great aspirants after effect, who are too often counted among great men.

The Natural.—"Evil has always had a big impact! And Nature is evil! So let's just be natural!"—this is how the ambitious individuals chasing influence think, even though they are often considered great men.

201

226.

The Distrustful and their Style.—We say the strongest things simply, provided people are about us who believe in our strength:—such an environment educates to "simplicity of style." The distrustful, on the other hand, speak emphatically; they make things emphatic.

The Distrustful and their Style.—We express the most powerful ideas simply, as long as there are people around us who believe in our strength; this kind of environment fosters "simplicity of style." In contrast, those who are distrustful speak with great emphasis; they make everything sound more important.

227.

Fallacy, Fallacy.—He cannot rule himself; therefore that woman concludes that it will be easy to rule him, and throws out her lines to catch him;—the poor creature, who in a short time will be his slave.

Fallacy, Fallacy.—He can't control himself; so that woman thinks it will be easy to control him and tries to reel him in;—the poor guy, who soon enough will be her puppet.

228.

Against Mediators.—He who attempts to mediate between two decided thinkers is rightly called mediocre: he has not an eye for seeing the unique; similarising and equalising are signs of weak eyes.

Against Mediators.—Someone who tries to mediate between two strong thinkers is justifiably seen as mediocre: they lack the ability to recognize the unique; trying to make things similar and equal is a sign of weak perception.

229.

Obstinacy and Loyalty.—Out of obstinacy he holds fast to a cause of which the questionableness has become obvious,—he calls that, however, his "loyalty."

Obstinacy and Loyalty.—Out of stubbornness he clings to a cause that has clearly become questionable—he calls that, however, his "loyalty."

230.

Lack of Reserve.—His whole nature fails to convince—that results from the fact that he has never been reticent about a good action he has performed.

Lack of Reserve.—His entire character lacks the ability to convince—which comes from the fact that he has never held back about any good deed he has done.

202

231.

The "Plodders."—Persons slow of apprehension think that slowness forms part of knowledge.

The "Plodders."—People who are slow to understand believe that being slow is part of being knowledgeable.

232.

Dreaming.—Either one does not dream at all, or one dreams in an interesting manner. One must learn to be awake in the same fashion:—either not at all, or in an interesting manner.

Dreaming.—You either don’t dream at all, or you dream in a fascinating way. You have to learn to be awake in the same way:—either not at all, or in an interesting way.

233.

The most Dangerous Point of View.—What I now do, or neglect to do, is as important for all that is to come, as the greatest event of the past: in this immense perspective of effects all actions are equally great and small.

The most Dangerous Point of View.—What I do now, or choose not to do, is just as important for everything that lies ahead, as the most significant events of the past: in this vast perspective of consequences, all actions carry equal weight, whether they're big or small.

234.

Consolatory Words of a Musician.—"Your life does not sound into people's ears: for them you live a dumb life, and all refinements of melody, all fond resolutions in following or leading the way, are concealed from them. To be sure you do not parade the thoroughfares with regimental music,—but these good people have no right to say on that account that your life is lacking in music. He that hath ears let him hear."

Consolatory Words of a Musician.—"Your life doesn’t resonate with others: for them, you live a silent life, and all the beauty of melody, all the heartfelt intentions in guiding or following the path, are hidden from them. Sure, you don’t march through the streets with band music—but these good folks can’t claim that your life is without music just because of that. Those who have ears should listen."

235.

Spirit and Character.—Many a one attains his full height of character, but his spirit is not adapted to the elevation,—and many a one reversely.

Spirit and Character.—Many people reach their full potential in character, but their spirit isn't suited for that level, and many others do the opposite.

203

236.

To Move the Multitude.—Is it not necessary for him who wants to move the multitude to give a stage representation of himself? Has he not first to translate himself into the grotesquely obvious, and then set forth his whole personality and cause in that vulgarised and simplified fashion!

To Move the Multitude.—Isn’t it essential for someone who wants to influence the masses to present a version of themselves? Do they not have to first transform themselves into something ridiculously straightforward, and then show their entire personality and message in that simplified and exaggerated way?

237.

The Polite Man.—"He is so polite!"—Yes, he has always a sop for Cerberus with him, and is so timid that he takes everybody for Cerberus, even you and me,—that is his "politeness."

The Polite Man.—"He's so polite!"—Yes, he always has a way to appease the monster, and he's so timid that he thinks everyone is a monster, even you and me—that's his "politeness."

238.

Without Envy.—He is wholly without envy, but there is no merit therein: for he wants to conquer a land which no one has yet possessed and hardly any one has even seen.

Without Envy.—He is completely free from envy, but that doesn't make him admirable: because he seeks to conquer a land that no one has ever claimed and barely anyone has even laid eyes on.

239.

The Joyless Person.—A single joyless person is enough to make constant displeasure and a clouded heaven in a household; and it is only by a miracle that such a person is lacking!—Happiness is not nearly such a contagious disease;—how is that!

The Joyless Person.—One joyless person can create constant unhappiness and a gloomy atmosphere in a household; and it’s truly a miracle when such a person isn’t around!—Happiness isn’t nearly as contagious;—why is that?

240.

On the Sea-Shore.—I would not build myself a house (it is an element of my happiness not to be a house-owner!). If I had to do so, however, I should build it, like many of the Romans, right 204into the sea,—I should like to have some secrets in common with that beautiful monster.

On the Sea-Shore.—I don’t want to own a house (it’s part of my happiness not to be a homeowner!). But if I had to, I would build it, like many Romans, right into the sea—I would love to share some secrets with that beautiful monster.

241.

Work and Artist.—This artist is ambitious and nothing more; ultimately, however, his work is only a magnifying glass, which he offers to every one who looks in his direction.

Work and Artist.—This artist is ambitious and nothing else; in the end, though, his work is just a magnifying glass that he holds out to anyone who looks his way.

242.

Suum cuique.—However great be my greed of knowledge, I cannot appropriate aught of things but what already belongs to me,—the property of others still remains in the things. How is it possible for a man to be a thief or a robber!

Suum cuique.—No matter how much I crave knowledge, I can’t claim anything that doesn’t already belong to me—other people's property remains theirs. How can someone be a thief or a robber!

243.

Origin of "Good" and "Bad."—He only will devise an improvement who can feel that "this is not good."

Origin of "Good" and "Bad."—Only someone who can sense that "this is not good" will come up with an improvement.

244.

Thoughts and Words.—Even our thoughts we are unable to render completely in words.

Thoughts and Words.—Even our thoughts can't be fully expressed in words.

245.

Praise in Choice.—The artist chooses his subjects; that is his mode of praising.

Praise in Choice.—The artist picks his subjects; that’s how he shows his appreciation.

246.

Mathematics.—We want to carry the refinement and rigour of mathematics into all the sciences, as far as it is in any way possible, not in the belief that 205we shall apprehend things in this way, but in order thereby to assert our human relation to things. Mathematics is only a means to general and ultimate human knowledge.

Mathematics.—We aim to bring the precision and rigor of mathematics into all sciences whenever possible, not because we believe this will help us fully understand things, but to emphasize our human relationship with them. Mathematics is merely a tool for achieving broader and deeper human understanding.

247.

Habits.—All habits make our hand wittier and our wit unhandier.

Habits.—All habits make our hands quicker and our thinking slower.

248.

Books.—Of what account is a book that never carries us away beyond all books!

Books.—What value does a book have if it never takes us beyond all others?

249.

The Sigh of the Seeker of Knowledge.—"Oh, my covetousness! In this soul there is no disinterestedness—but an all-desiring self, which, by means of many individuals, would fain see as with its own eyes, and grasp as with its own hands—a self bringing back even the entire past, and wanting to lose nothing that could in any way belong to it! Oh, this flame of my covetousness! Oh, that I were reincarnated in a hundred individuals!"—He who does not know this sigh by experience, does not know the passion of the seeker of knowledge either.

The Sigh of the Seeker of Knowledge.—“Oh, my greed! In this soul, there is no selflessness—only an insatiable self that, through many others, longs to see as if with its own eyes and hold as if with its own hands—a self that wishes to reclaim even the entire past and desires to lose nothing that might belong to it in any way! Oh, this fire of my greed! Oh, that I could be reborn in a hundred individuals!”—Whoever hasn’t felt this sigh firsthand doesn’t understand the passion of the seeker of knowledge either.

250.

Guilt.—Although the most intelligent judges of the witches, and even the witches themselves, were convinced of the guilt of witchcraft, the guilt, nevertheless, was not there. So it is with all guilt.

Guilt.—Even though the smartest judges of the witches, and the witches themselves, believed in the guilt of witchcraft, that guilt simply wasn’t present. The same goes for all guilt.

206

251.

Misunderstood Sufferers.—Great natures suffer otherwise than their worshippers imagine; they suffer most severely from the ignoble, petty emotions of certain evil moments; in short, from doubt of their own greatness;—not however from the sacrifices and martyrdoms which their tasks require of them. As long as Prometheus sympathises with men and sacrifices himself for them, he is happy and proud in himself; but on becoming envious of Zeus and of the homage which mortals pay him—then Prometheus suffers!

Misunderstood Sufferers.—Great individuals experience pain differently than their admirers think; they suffer the most from the base, trivial emotions of certain negative moments, essentially from doubting their own greatness—not from the sacrifices and struggles their responsibilities demand of them. As long as Prometheus empathizes with humans and makes sacrifices for them, he feels happy and proud within himself; but when he becomes envious of Zeus and the respect that mortals give him—then Prometheus suffers!

252.

Better to be in Debt.—"Better to remain in debt than to pay with money which does not bear our stamp!"—that is what our sovereignty prefers.

Better to be in Debt.—"Better to stay in debt than to use money that doesn't have our stamp!"—that's what our sovereignty prefers.

253.

Always at Home.—One day we attain our goal—and then refer with pride to the long journeys we have made to reach it. In truth, we did not notice that we travelled. We got into the habit of thinking that we were at home in every place.

Always at Home.—One day we reach our goal—and then we proudly look back at the long journeys we took to get there. The truth is, we didn’t even realize we were traveling. We became so used to thinking that we were at home everywhere.

254.

Against Embarrassment.—He who is always thoroughly occupied is rid of all embarrassment.

Against Embarrassment.—Someone who is constantly busy has no room for embarrassment.

255.

Imitators.—A: "What? You don't want to have imitators?" B: "I don't want people to do anything 207after me; I want every one to do something before himself (as a pattern to himself)—just as I do." A: "Consequently—?"

Imitators.—A: "What? You don't want imitators?" B: "I don’t want anyone to do anything 207after me; I want everyone to do something for themselves (as their own example)—just like I do." A: "So—?"

256.

Skinniness.—All profound men have their happiness in imitating the flying-fish for once, and playing on the crests of the waves; they think that what is best of all in things is their surface: their skinniness—sit venia verbo.

Skinniness.—All deep thinkers find joy in mimicking flying fish for a moment, riding on the tops of the waves; they believe that the best part of anything is its surface: their skinniness—sit venia verbo.

257.

From Experience.—A person often does not know how rich he is, until he learns from experience what rich men even play the thief on him.

From Experience.—A person often doesn’t realize how wealthy they are until they discover through experience how wealthy people can even cheat them.

258.

The Deniers of Chance.—No conqueror believes in chance.

The Deniers of Chance.—No conqueror believes in luck.

259.

From Paradise.—"Good and Evil are God's prejudices"—said the serpent.

From Paradise.—"Good and Evil are God's biases"—said the serpent.

260.

One times One.—One only is always in the wrong, but with two truth begins.—One only cannot prove himself right; but two are already beyond refutation.

One times One.—One is always wrong, but with two, truth starts to emerge.—One alone can't prove he's right; but two are already beyond dispute.

261.

Originality.—What is originality? To see something that does not yet bear a name, that cannot yet be named, although it is before everybody's 208eyes. As people are usually constituted, it is the name that first makes a thing generally visible to them.—Original persons have also for the most part been the namers of things.

Originality.—What is originality? To see something that doesn't have a name yet, that can't be named, even though it is right in front of everyone. For most people, it’s the name that first makes something widely visible to them. Original individuals have mostly been the ones who name things.

262.

Sub specie aeterni.—A: "You withdraw faster and faster from the living; they will soon strike you out of their lists!"—B: "It is the only way to participate in the privilege of the dead." A: "In what privilege?"—B: "No longer having to die."

Sub specie aeterni.—A: "You're pulling away from the living more and more; soon they'll just forget you!"—B: "It's the only way to share in the privilege of the dead." A: "What privilege?"—B: "The privilege of not having to die."

263.

Without Vanity.—When we love we want our defects to remain concealed,—not out of vanity, but lest the person loved should suffer therefrom. Indeed, the lover would like to appear as a God,—and not out of vanity either.

Without Vanity.—When we love, we want our flaws to stay hidden—not because of vanity, but to spare the person we love from suffering because of them. In fact, the lover wishes to seem like a God—not out of vanity either.

264.

What we Do.—What we do is never understood, but only praised and blamed.

What we Do.—What we do is never really understood, only praised or criticized.

265.

Ultimate Scepticism.—But what after all are man's truths?—They are his irrefutable errors.

Ultimate Skepticism.—But what are man's truths, really?—They are his irrefutable mistakes.

266.

Where Cruelty is Necessary.—He who is great is cruel to his second-rate virtues and judgments.

Where Cruelty is Necessary.—Those who are exceptional can be harsh toward their lesser virtues and judgments.

209

267.

With a high Aim.—With a high aim a person is superior even to justice, and not only to his deeds and his judges.

With a high Aim.—With a high aim, a person is greater than just justice, and not only surpasses their actions and their judges.

268.

What makes Heroic?—To face simultaneously one's greatest suffering and one's highest hope.

What makes Heroic?—To confront both your deepest pain and your greatest hope at the same time.

269.

What dost thou Believe in?—In this: That the weights of all things must be determined anew.

What do you believe in?—In this: That we must re-evaluate the value of everything.

270.

What Saith thy Conscience?—"Thou shalt become what thou art."

What Does Your Conscience Say?—"You will become what you are."

271.

Where are thy Greatest Dangers?—In pity.

Where are your Greatest Dangers?—In pity.

272.

What dost thou Love in others?—My hopes.

What do you love in others?—My hopes.

273.

Whom dost thou call Bad?—Him who always wants to put others to shame.

Who do you call bad?—Someone who always wants to humiliate others.

274.

What dost thou think most humane?—To spare a person shame.

What do you think is the most humane thing?—To spare someone from shame.

275.

What is the Seal of Liberty Attained?—To be no longer ashamed of oneself.

What is the Seal of Liberty Attained?—To no longer feel ashamed of who you are.

211

BOOK FOURTH
 
SANCTUS JANUARIUS

Thou who with cleaving fiery lances
The stream of my soul from its ice dost free,
Till with a rush and a roar it advances
To enter with glorious hoping the sea:
Brighter to see and purer ever,
Free in the bonds of thy sweet constraint,—
So it praises thy wondrous endeavour,
January, thou beauteous saint!

Genoa, January 1882.

Genoa, January 1882.

213

276.

For the New Year.—I still live, I still think; I must still live, for I must still think. Sum, ergo cogito: cogito, ergo sum. To-day everyone takes the liberty of expressing his wish and his favourite thought: well, I also mean to tell what I have wished for myself to-day, and what thought first crossed my mind this year,—a thought which ought to be the basis, the pledge and the sweetening of all my future life! I want more and more to perceive the necessary characters in things as the beautiful:—I shall thus be one of those who beautify things. Amor fati: let that henceforth be my love! I do not want to wage war with the ugly. I do not want to accuse, I do not want even to accuse the accusers. Looking aside, let that be my sole negation! And all in all, to sum up: I wish to be at any time hereafter only a yea-sayer!

For the New Year.—I'm still alive, and I'm still thinking; I must continue to live because I must continue to think. I am, therefore I think: I think, therefore I am. Today, everyone feels free to share their wishes and favorite thoughts: well, I also want to share what I wished for myself today and the thought that first came to mind this year—a thought that should be the foundation, the promise, and the sweetness of all my future life! I want to increasingly see the necessary qualities in things as beautiful:—that way, I’ll be one of those who beautify things. Amor fati: let that be my love from now on! I don’t want to fight against the ugly. I don't want to blame, and I don’t even want to blame the blamers. Looking aside, let that be my only rejection! And to sum it all up: I wish to be a yes-sayer at all times from now on!

277.

Personal Providence.—There is a certain climax in life, at which, notwithstanding all our freedom, and however much we may have denied all directing reason and goodness in the beautiful chaos of existence, we are once more in great danger of intellectual bondage, and have to face our 214hardest test. For now the thought of a personal Providence first presents itself before us with its most persuasive force, and has the best of advocates, apparentness, in its favour, now when it is obvious that all and everything that happens to us always turns out for the best. The life of every day and of every hour seems to be anxious for nothing else but always to prove this proposition anew; let it be what it will, bad or good weather, the loss of a friend, a sickness, a calumny, the non-receipt of a letter, the spraining of one's foot, a glance into a shop-window, a counter-argument, the opening of a book, a dream, a deception:—it shows itself immediately, or very soon afterwards as something "not permitted to be absent,"—it is full of profound significance and utility precisely for us! Is there a more dangerous temptation to rid ourselves of the belief in the Gods of Epicurus, those careless, unknown Gods, and believe in some anxious and mean Divinity, who knows personally every little hair on our heads, and feels no disgust in rendering the most wretched services? Well—I mean in spite of all this! we want to leave the Gods alone (and the serviceable genii likewise), and wish to content ourselves with the assumption that our own practical and theoretical skilfulness in explaining and suitably arranging events has now reached its highest point. We do not want either to think too highly of this dexterity of our wisdom, when the wonderful harmony which results from playing on our instrument sometimes surprises us too much: a harmony which sounds too well for 215us to dare to ascribe it to ourselves. In fact, now and then there is one who plays with us—beloved Chance: he leads our hand occasionally, and even the all-wisest Providence could not devise any finer music than that of which our foolish hand is then capable.

Personal Providence.—There’s a certain peak in life where, despite all our freedom, and no matter how much we have dismissed any guiding reason and goodness in the beautiful chaos of existence, we find ourselves once again in significant danger of intellectual bondage, facing our toughest test. It's at this point that the idea of a personal Providence first emerges with its strongest appeal, backed by the best advocate—obviousness—when it becomes clear that everything that happens to us always turns out for the best. The daily life and every hour seem to strive for nothing more than to prove this idea repeatedly; whether it’s bad or good weather, the loss of a friend, sickness, slander, not receiving a letter, twisting an ankle, a glance into a store window, a counter-argument, opening a book, a dream, or a deception: it quickly shows itself, or soon afterwards, as something that "must not be absent"—it’s loaded with deep significance and utility specifically for us! Is there a more tempting danger than to rid ourselves of belief in the gods of Epicurus, those indifferent, unknown deities, and instead believe in some petty and anxious divinity, who knows every little hair on our heads and takes pleasure in providing the most miserable services? Well—I mean despite all this! We want to leave the gods alone (and the helpful spirits as well), and prefer to believe that our own practical and theoretical skill in explaining and arranging events has now reached its peak. We don’t want to overestimate this cleverness of our wisdom, especially when the amazing harmony that results from playing our instrument sometimes astonishes us: a harmony that sounds too good for us to dare claim it as our own. In fact, now and then there’s someone who plays with us—beloved Chance: she occasionally guides our hand, and even the wisest Providence could not create any finer music than what our foolish hand is then able to make.

278.

The Thought of Death.—It gives me a melancholy happiness to live in the midst of this confusion of streets, of necessities, of voices: how much enjoyment, impatience and desire, how much thirsty life and drunkenness of life comes to light here every moment! And yet it will soon be so still for all these shouting, lively, life-loving people! How everyone's shadow, his gloomy travelling-companion stands behind him! It is always as in the last moment before the departure of an emigrant-ship: people have more than ever to say to one another, the hour presses, the ocean with its lonely silence waits impatiently behind all the noise—so greedy, so certain of its prey! And all, all, suppose that the past has been nothing, or a small matter, that the near future is everything: hence this haste, this crying, this self-deafening and self-overreaching! Everyone wants to be foremost in this future,—and yet death and the stillness of death are the only things certain and common to all in this future! How strange that this sole thing that is certain and common to all, exercises almost no influence on men, and that they are the furthest from regarding themselves as the brotherhood of death! It makes me happy to see that 216men do not want to think at all of the idea of death! I would fain do something to make the idea of life even a hundred times more worthy of their attention.

The Thought of Death.—It gives me a bittersweet happiness to live in the midst of this chaotic mix of streets, needs, and voices: how much enjoyment, impatience, and desire, how much vibrant life and intoxication of existence emerges every moment! And yet, soon it will be so quiet for all these noisy, lively, life-loving people! Every person's shadow, their gloomy traveling companion, lingers behind them! It's always like that last moment before an emigrant ship departs: people have more to say to one another than ever, time is running out, the ocean with its lonely silence waits impatiently behind all the noise—so eager, so certain of its prey! And everyone believes that the past has meant nothing, or is just a small detail, that the near future is everything: hence this rush, this crying, this self-deafening and self-overreaching! Everyone wants to be ahead in this future,—and yet death and the stillness of death are the only things that are certain and shared by all in this future! How strange that this one certainty and commonality seems to have almost no influence on people, and they are the furthest from seeing themselves as part of the brotherhood of death! It makes me happy to see that people do not want to think about the idea of death at all! I wish to do something that makes the idea of life even a hundred times more worthy of their attention.

279.

Stellar Friendship.—We were friends, and have become strangers to each other. But this is as it ought to be, and we do not want either to conceal or obscure the fact, as if we had to be ashamed of it. We are two ships, each of which has its goal and its course; we may, to be sure, cross one another in our paths, and celebrate a feast together as we did before,—and then the gallant ships lay quietly in one harbour, and in one sunshine, so that it might have been thought they were already at their goal, and that they had had one goal. But then the almighty strength of our tasks forced us apart once more into different seas and into different zones, and perhaps we shall never see one another again,—or perhaps we may see one another, but not know one another again; the different seas and suns have altered us! That we had to become strangers to one another is the law to which we are subject: just by that shall we become more sacred to one another! Just by that shall the thought of our former friendship become holier! There is probably some immense, invisible curve and stellar orbit in which our courses and goals, so widely different, may be comprehended as small stages of the way,—let us raise ourselves to this thought! But our life is too short, and our power of vision too limited for 217us to be more than friends in the sense of that sublime possibility.—And so we will believe in our stellar friendship, though we should have to be terrestrial enemies to one another.

Stellar Friendship.—We were friends, and now we’ve become strangers to each other. But this is as it should be, and we don’t want to hide or ignore it, as if we have to be ashamed of it. We are two ships, each with its own destination and course; we might cross paths and celebrate together as we did before,—and then the brave ships rest peacefully in one harbor, under the same sun, so it might seem like they’ve already reached their destination and shared one goal. But then the powerful demands of our lives pull us apart into different waters and different places, and maybe we’ll never see each other again,—or maybe we will, but we won’t recognize each other; the different seas and suns have changed us! The fact that we had to become strangers is the law we are subject to: through this, we will become more sacred to one another! This will make the memory of our past friendship even more precious! There’s likely a vast, invisible curve and stellar path where our different courses and goals can be comprehended as small stages along the journey,—let’s aspire to this idea! But our lives are too short, and our vision too limited for us to be more than friends in the sense of that lofty possibility.—So we will believe in our stellar friendship, even if we have to be earthly enemies to each other.

280.

Architecture for Thinkers.—An insight is needed (and that probably very soon) as to what is specially lacking in our great cities—namely, quiet, spacious, and widely extended places for reflection, places with long, lofty colonnades for bad weather, or for too sunny days, where no noise of wagons or of shouters would penetrate, and where a more refined propriety would prohibit loud praying even to the priest: buildings and situations which as a whole would express the sublimity of self-communion and seclusion from the world. The time is past when the Church possessed the monopoly of reflection, when the vita contemplativa had always in the first place to be the vita religiosa: and everything that the Church has built expresses this thought. I know not how we could content ourselves with their structures, even if they should be divested of their ecclesiastical purposes: these structures speak a far too pathetic and too biassed speech, as houses of God and places of splendour for supernatural intercourse, for us godless ones to be able to think our thoughts in them. We want to have ourselves translated into stone and plant, we want to go for a walk in ourselves when we wander in these halls and gardens.

Architecture for Thinkers.—We urgently need to understand what's missing in our big cities—specifically, quiet, spacious, and expansive areas for contemplation. These should include long, high colonnades for bad weather or overly sunny days, where the noise of traffic or loud voices can't reach, and where a sense of decorum would even prevent loud prayers, even for the priest. We need buildings and spaces that, as a whole, express the depth of introspection and isolation from the world. The time has passed when the Church had a monopoly on reflection, when the vita contemplativa had to be primarily the vita religiosa: everything the Church has built reflects this notion. I don’t see how we could be satisfied with their structures, even if they were stripped of their religious significance. These buildings convey a tone that's too emotional and biased, as houses of God and places of grandeur for supernatural interaction, for those of us who are not religious to truly think our thoughts there. We want ourselves to be represented in stone and greenery; we want to experience a walk within ourselves when we stroll through these halls and gardens.

218

281.

Knowing how to Find the End.—Masters of the first rank are recognised by knowing in a perfect manner how to find the end, in the whole as well as in the part; be it the end of a melody or of a thought, be it the fifth act of a tragedy or of a state affair. The masters of the second degree always become restless towards the end, and seldom dip down into the sea with such proud, quiet equilibrium as, for example, the mountain-ridge at Porto fino—where the Bay of Genoa sings its melody to an end.

Knowing How to Find the End.—Top-tier masters are recognized by their ability to perfectly understand how to reach the end, whether it’s in a whole piece or a part; whether it’s the conclusion of a melody or an idea, or the fifth act of a play or a political situation. The second-tier masters often become anxious as they approach the end and rarely dive into the depths with the same proud, calm balance as, for instance, the mountain ridge at Porto fino—where the Bay of Genoa brings its melody to a close.

282.

The Gait.—There are mannerisms of the intellect by which even great minds betray that they originate from the populace, or from the semi-populace:—it is principally the gait and step of their thoughts which betray them; they cannot walk. It was thus that even Napoleon, to his profound chagrin, could not walk "legitimately" and in princely fashion on occasions when it was necessary to do so properly, as in great coronation processions and on similar occasions: even there he was always just the leader of a column—proud and brusque at the same time, and very self-conscious of it all.—It is something laughable to see those writers who make the folding robes of their periods rustle around them: they want to cover their feet.

The Gait.—There are ways of thinking that reveal even brilliant minds come from the masses or the middle class: it's mainly the way they move and the pace of their thoughts that give them away; they can't really walk. Even Napoleon, much to his deep embarrassment, couldn't walk "properly" and in a regal manner at times when he needed to, like during important coronation parades and similar events: in those moments, he always appeared just as the leader of a group—proud and brash, yet very aware of it all. It's amusing to watch those writers who make the ornate garments of their times swirl around them: they want to hide their feet.

283.

Pioneers.—I greet all the signs indicating that a more manly and warlike age is commencing, which will, above all, bring heroism again into honour! 219For it has to prepare the way for a yet higher age, and gather the force which the latter will one day require,—the age which will carry heroism into knowledge, and wage war for the sake of ideas and their consequences. For that end many brave pioneers are now needed, who, however, cannot originate out of nothing,—and just as little out of the sand and slime of present-day civilisation and the culture of great cities: men silent, solitary and resolute, who know how to be content and persistent in invisible activity: men who with innate disposition seek in all things that which is to be overcome in them: men to whom cheerfulness, patience, simplicity, and contempt of the great vanities belong just as much as do magnanimity in victory and indulgence to the trivial vanities of all the vanquished: men with an acute and independent judgment regarding all victors, and concerning the part which chance has played in the winning of victory and fame: men with their own holidays, their own work-days, and their own periods of mourning; accustomed to command with perfect assurance, and equally ready, if need be, to obey, proud in the one case as in the other, equally serving their own interests: men more imperilled, more productive, more happy! For believe me!—the secret of realising the largest productivity and the greatest enjoyment of existence is to live in danger! Build your cities on the slope of Vesuvius! Send your ships into unexplored seas! Live in war with your equals and with yourselves! Be robbers and spoilers, ye knowing ones, as long as ye cannot be rulers and possessor! The time will soon pass when you 220can be satisfied to live like timorous deer concealed in the forests. Knowledge will finally stretch out her hand for that which belongs to her:—she means to rule and possess, and you with her!

Pioneers.—I welcome all the signs that a more masculine and combative era is beginning, which will, above all, restore heroism to its rightful place! 219 This is necessary to pave the way for an even greater age, gathering the strength that latter will one day need—the age that will merge heroism with knowledge and fight for ideas and their impact. Many brave pioneers are needed now, but they can't arise from nothing—just as little from the sand and muck of today’s civilization and the culture of big cities: men who are quiet, solitary, and determined, able to find contentment and perseverance in their unseen efforts: men who naturally seek out the challenges in everything: men who embody cheerfulness, patience, simplicity, and disdain for the hollow vanities, just as much as they do for nobility in victory and tolerance towards the trivialities of the defeated: men with sharp and independent judgment about all victors and the role that chance has played in acquiring victory and fame: men who have their own celebrations, their own workdays, and their own periods of mourning; used to commanding with absolute confidence, and equally willing, if necessary, to obey, feeling pride in both roles while serving their own interests: men who are more at risk, more productive, and more fulfilled! For believe me!—the secret to achieving the greatest productivity and the highest enjoyment in life is to live dangerously! Build your cities on the slopes of Vesuvius! Send your ships into uncharted oceans! Engage in struggles with your equals and with yourselves! Be robbers and plunderers, you knowledgeable ones, as long as you cannot be rulers and owners! The time will soon come when you 220 can no longer settle for living like timid deer hiding in the woods. Knowledge will eventually reach out for what belongs to her:—she intends to rule and own, and you will share in that!

284.

Belief in Oneself.—In general, few men have belief in themselves:—and of those few some are endowed with it as a useful blindness or partial obscuration of intellect (what would they perceive if they could see to the bottom of themselves!). The others must first acquire the belief for themselves: everything good, clever, or great that they do, is first of all an argument against the sceptic that dwells in them: the question is how to convince or persuade this sceptic, and for that purpose genius almost is needed. They are signally dissatisfied with themselves.

Belief in Oneself.—Generally, few people truly believe in themselves: and among those few, some possess this belief as a useful form of ignorance or a partial blinding of their intellect (imagine what they would realize if they could see the depths of themselves!). The others must first develop this belief within themselves: everything good, clever, or great that they achieve serves as a proof against the inner skeptic that resides in them: the challenge is how to convince or persuade this skeptic, and for that, one needs a touch of genius. They are distinctly unhappy with who they are.

285.

Excelsior!—"Thou wilt never more pray, never more worship, never more repose in infinite trust—thou refusest to stand still and dismiss thy thoughts before an ultimate wisdom, an ultimate virtue, an ultimate power,—thou hast no constant guardian and friend in thy seven solitudes—thou livest without the outlook on a mountain that has snow on its head and fire in its heart—there is no longer any requiter for thee, nor any amender with his finishing touch—there is no longer any reason in that which happens, or any love in that which will happen to thee—there is no longer any resting-place for thy weary heart, where it has only to find 221and no longer to seek, thou art opposed to any kind of ultimate peace, thou desirest the eternal recurrence of war and peace:—man of renunciation, wilt thou renounce in all these things? Who will give thee the strength to do so? No one has yet had this strength!"—There is a lake which one day refused to flow away, and threw up a dam at the place where it had hitherto flowed away: since then this lake has always risen higher and higher. Perhaps the very renunciation will also furnish us with the strength with which the renunciation itself can be borne; perhaps man will ever rise higher and higher from that point onward, when he no longer flows out into a God.

Excelsior!—"You will never pray again, never worship, never find rest in infinite trust—you refuse to pause and let go of your thoughts before a final wisdom, a final virtue, a final power—you have no constant guardian and friend in your seven solitary places—you live without the view of a mountain with snow on its peak and fire in its core—there is no longer anyone to repay you, nor any healer with his finishing touch—there's no longer any sense in what happens, or any love in what will happen to you—there's no longer a resting place for your weary heart, where it only needs to find and no longer to seek, you are opposed to any kind of ultimate peace, you desire the endless cycle of war and peace:—man of renunciation, will you give up all these things? Who will give you the strength to do so? No one has had this strength yet!"—There is a lake that one day refused to flow away, and built a dam where it used to drain off: since then, this lake has always risen higher and higher. Perhaps that very renunciation will also provide us with the strength to bear the renunciation itself; perhaps humanity will continue to rise higher and higher from that point onward, when they no longer flow out into a God.

286.

A Digression.—Here are hopes; but what will you see and hear of them, if you have not experienced glance and glow and dawn of day in your own souls? I can only suggest—I cannot do more! To move the stones, to make animals men—would you have me do that? Alas, if you are yet stones and animals, seek first your Orpheus!

A Digression.—Here are hopes; but what will you see and hear about them if you haven’t felt the spark and warmth and start of the day in your own hearts? I can only suggest—I can’t do more! To move the stones, to turn animals into humans—would you have me do that? Alas, if you’re still stones and animals, seek out your Orpheus first!

287.

Love of Blindness.—"My thoughts," said the wanderer to his shadow, "ought to show me where I stand, but they should not betray to me whither I go. I love ignorance of the future, and do not want to come to grief by impatience and anticipatory tasting of promised things."

Love of Blindness.—"My thoughts," said the wanderer to his shadow, "should help me understand where I am, but they shouldn't reveal to me where I'm headed. I love not knowing what the future holds, and I don’t want to suffer from impatience or by trying to experience things that are promised."

222

288.

Lofty Moods.—It seems to me that most men do not believe in lofty moods, unless it be for the moment, or at the most for a quarter of an hour,—except the few who know by experience a longer duration of high feeling. But to be absolutely a man with a single lofty feeling, the incarnation of a single lofty mood—that has hitherto been only a dream and an enchanting possibility: history does not yet give us any trustworthy example of it. Nevertheless it could some day produce such men also—when a multitude of favourable conditions have been created and established, which at present even the happiest chance is unable to throw together. Perhaps that very state which has hitherto entered into our soul as an exception, felt with horror now and then, may be the usual condition of those future souls: a continuous movement between high and low, and the feeling of high and low, a constant state of mounting as on steps, and at the same time reposing as on clouds.

Lofty Moods.—Most people seem not to believe in lofty moods, except maybe for a moment or, at most, about fifteen minutes—aside from a few who have experienced a longer duration of high feelings. However, being completely a man with a single lofty feeling, the embodiment of that one mood—that has only been a dream and a captivating possibility so far: history hasn't provided us with a reliable example of it yet. Still, it could eventually create such individuals—when many favorable conditions have been established, which even the best luck can't seem to bring together right now. Perhaps that state, which has so far entered our souls as an exception and has occasionally been felt with dread, may become the norm for those future souls: a constant shift between highs and lows, experiencing both, a continuous ascent like climbing stairs, while also resting like being on clouds.

289.

Aboard Ship!—When one considers how a full philosophical justification of his mode of living and thinking operates upon every individual—namely, as a warming, blessing, and fructifying sun, specially shining on him; how it makes him independent of praise and blame, self-sufficient, rich and generous in the bestowal of happiness and kindness; how it unceasingly transforms the evil to the good, brings all the energies to bloom 223and maturity, and altogether hinders the growth of the greater and lesser weeds of chagrin and discontent:—one at last cries out importunately: Oh, that many such new suns were created! The evil man, also, the unfortunate man, and the exceptional man, shall each have his philosophy, his rights, and his sunshine! It is not sympathy with them that is necessary!—we must unlearn this arrogant fancy, notwithstanding that humanity has so long learned it and used it exclusively—we have not to set up any confessor, exorcist, or pardoner for them! It is a new justice, however, that is necessary! And a new solution! And new philosophers! The moral earth also is round! The moral earth also has its antipodes! The antipodes also have their right to exist! there is still another world to discover—and more than one! Aboard ship! ye philosophers!

Aboard Ship!—When you think about how a comprehensive philosophical understanding of life and thinking affects every individual—like a warm, blessing, and life-giving sun specifically shining on them; how it makes them independent from praise and criticism, self-reliant, generous in sharing happiness and kindness; how it constantly transforms evil into good, brings all energies to flourish and mature, and altogether prevents the growth of both the significant and minor weeds of disappointment and discontent:—one eventually cries out desperately: Oh, if only many such new suns could be created! The evil person, the unlucky person, and the exceptional person should each have their philosophy, their rights, and their sunshine! It's not sympathy for them that's needed!—we must shed this arrogant belief, even though humanity has long held onto it and used it exclusively—we don't need to set up any confessor, exorcist, or pardoner for them! What is needed is a new justice! And a new solution! And new philosophers! The moral world is also round! The moral world has its opposites! The opposites also have their right to exist! There's still another world to discover—and more than one! Aboard ship! you philosophers!

290.

One Thing is Needful.—To "give style" to one's character—that is a grand and a rare art! He who surveys all that his nature presents in its strength and in its weakness, and then fashions it into an ingenious plan, until everything appears artistic and rational, and even the weaknesses enchant the eye—exercises that admirable art. Here there has been a great amount of second nature added, there a portion of first nature has been taken away:—in both cases with long exercise and daily labour at the task. Here the ugly, which does not permit of being taken away, has been concealed, there it has been re-interpreted 224into the sublime. Much of the vague, which refuses to take form, has been reserved and utilised for the perspectives:—it is meant to give a hint of the remote and immeasurable. In the end, when the work has been completed, it is revealed how it was the constraint of the same taste that organised and fashioned it in whole or in part: whether the taste was good or bad is of less importance than one thinks,—it is sufficient that it was a taste!—It will be the strong imperious natures which experience their most refined joy in such constraint, in such confinement and perfection under their own law; the passion of their violent volition lessens at the sight of all disciplined nature, all conquered and ministering nature: even when they have palaces to build and gardens to lay out, it is not to their taste to allow nature to be free.—It is the reverse with weak characters who have not power over themselves, and hate the restriction of style: they feel that if this repugnant constraint were laid upon them, they would necessarily become vulgarised under it: they become slaves as soon as they serve, they hate service. Such intellects—they may be intellects of the first rank—are always concerned with fashioning or interpreting themselves and their surroundings as free nature—wild, arbitrary, fantastic, confused and surprising: and it is well for them to do so, because only in this manner can they please themselves! For one thing is needful: namely, that man should attain to satisfaction with himself—be it but through this or that fable and artifice: it is only then that man's aspect is at all 225endurable! He who is dissatisfied with himself is ever ready to avenge himself on that account: we others will be his victims, if only in having always to endure his ugly aspect. For the aspect of the ugly makes one mean and sad.

One Thing is Needful.—To "give style" to one's character—that's an impressive and rare skill! Someone who takes a good look at all their strengths and weaknesses, and then crafts those into a clever plan, so everything looks artistic and sensible, and even the flaws draw people in—masters that incredible skill. Here, a lot of second nature has been added, while there, some first nature has been removed:—in both scenarios, it takes a lot of practice and daily effort. The ugly parts that can't be removed have been hidden, while some have been reinterpreted 224 into something beautiful. Much of the vague, which refuses to take shape, has been preserved and used for perspective:—it's supposed to hint at the distant and limitless. In the end, when the work is finished, it shows how the same taste shaped and organized it, whether it was good or bad taste matters less than you'd think,—what matters is that it was a taste!—It’s the strong personalities that find their greatest satisfaction in such limitations, in that confinement and perfection according to their own rules; their intense desire dims at the sight of all that disciplined nature, all conquered and serving nature: even when they have grand palaces to build and gardens to create, they prefer nature to be controlled.—The opposite is true for weaker characters who lack self-control and resent stylistic restrictions: they feel that if such an unwelcome constraint were placed on them, they would inevitably become vulgar: they become slaves as soon as they serve, and they dislike serving. Such minds—they might be top-tier intellects—are always focused on shaping or interpreting themselves and their environment as free nature—wild, arbitrary, chaotic, unpredictable: and it’s best for them to do this because that’s the only way they can feel content! One thing is necessary: that man should achieve satisfaction with himself—whether through this or that story and trick: it’s only then that a man's presence is at all 225 tolerable! Anyone who is unhappy with themselves is always ready to take it out on others: we will be his victims, even if it’s just enduring his unpleasant presence. Because the sight of the ugly makes one feel small and sad.

291.

Genoa.—I have looked upon this city, its villas and pleasure-grounds and the wide circuit of its inhabited heights and slopes, for a considerable time: in the end I must say that I see countenances out of past generations,—this district is strewn with the images of bold and autocratic men. They have lived and have wanted to live on—they say so with their houses, built and decorated for centuries, and not for the passing hour: they were well disposed to life, however ill-disposed they may often have been towards themselves. I always see the builder, how he casts his eye on all that is built around him far and near, and likewise on the city, the sea, and the chain of mountains; how he expresses power and conquest in his gaze: all this he wishes to fit into his plan, and in the end make it his property, by its becoming a portion of the same. The whole district is overgrown with this superb, insatiable egoism of the desire to possess and exploit; and as these men when abroad recognised no frontiers, and in their thirst for the new placed a new world beside the old, so also at home everyone rose up against everyone else, and devised some mode of expressing his superiority, and of placing between himself and his neighbour his personal illimitableness. Everyone 226won for himself his home once more by over-powering it with his architectural thoughts, and by transforming it into a delightful sight for his race. When we consider the mode of building cities in the north, the law and the general delight in legality and obedience, impose upon us: we thereby divine the propensity to equality and submission which must have ruled in those builders. Here, however, on turning every corner you find a man by himself, who knows the sea, knows adventure, and knows the Orient, a man who is averse to law and to neighbour, as if it bored him to have to do with them, a man who scans all that is already old and established, with envious glances: with a wonderful craftiness of fantasy, he would like, at least in thought, to establish all this anew, to lay his hand upon it, and introduce his meaning into it—if only for the passing hour of a sunny afternoon, when for once his insatiable and melancholy soul feels satiety, and when only what is his own, and nothing strange, may show itself to his eye.

Genoa.—I've been observing this city, its villas and parks, and the sprawling heights and slopes where people live, for quite a while. In the end, I must say that I see faces from past generations—this area is filled with images of bold and powerful individuals. They have lived and wanted to endure—they express this with their homes, built and adorned for centuries, not just for a momentary enjoyment: they were inclined to life, no matter how often they were at odds with themselves. I can always picture the builder, surveying everything constructed around him far and wide, as well as the city, the sea, and the mountains; how he conveys power and conquest in his gaze: he desires to incorporate all of this into his vision and ultimately make it his property by merging it into the whole. The entire region is consumed with this magnificent, unquenchable urge to possess and exploit; and just as these men recognized no borders abroad, placing a new world alongside the old in their thirst for the novel, at home everyone rose against everyone else, seeking to show off their superiority and to create a barrier between themselves and their neighbors with their personal endlessness. Each person reclaimed their home by overpowering it with their architectural ideas and transforming it into a beautiful sight for their community. When we think of how cities are built in the north, the law and the general joy in legality and compliance become apparent to us: we thus infer the inclination towards equality and submission that must have governed those builders. Here, however, at every turn, you encounter an individual who understands the sea, knows adventure, and is familiar with the East, a person who shuns law and neighbors, as if being involved with them bores him, a man who looks at everything already established with envious eyes: with an incredible creativity of imagination, he wishes, at least in thought, to re-establish all of this, to lay claim to it, and to infuse it with his significance—if only for a fleeting moment during a sunny afternoon, when for once his insatiable and melancholic soul feels satisfied, and only what belongs to him, and nothing foreign, can capture his gaze.

292.

To the Preachers of Morality.—I do not mean to moralise, but to those who do, I would give this advice: if you mean ultimately to deprive the best things and the best conditions of all honour and worth, continue to speak of them in the same way as heretofore! Put them at the head of your morality, and speak from morning till night of the happiness of virtue, of repose of soul, of righteousness, and of reward and punishment in the nature of things: according as you go on in this manner, 227all these good things will finally acquire a popularity and a street-cry for themselves: but then all the gold on them will also be worn off, and more besides: all the gold in them will have changed into lead. Truly, you understand the reverse art of alchemy, the depreciating of the most valuable things! Try, just for once, another recipe, in order not to realise as hitherto the opposite of what you mean to attain: deny those good things, withdraw from them the applause of the populace and discourage the spread of them, make them once more the concealed chastities of solitary souls, say that morality is something forbidden! Perhaps you will thus win over for those things the sort of men who are only of any account, I mean the heroic. But then there must be something formidable in them, and not as hitherto something disgusting! Might one not be inclined to say at present with reference to morality what Master Eckardt says: "I pray God to deliver me from God!"

To the Preachers of Morality.—I don’t mean to moralize, but to those who do, I’d like to offer this advice: if you ultimately want to strip the best things and the best situations of all their honor and value, keep talking about them the same way you always have! Place them at the forefront of your morality, and preach from morning till night about the happiness of virtue, the peace of mind, righteousness, and the concepts of reward and punishment inherent in existence. As you continue in this way, all these good things will eventually gain their own popularity and become a catchphrase: but then all the shine on them will wear off, and even more than that: all the value in them will have turned into something worthless. Truly, you understand the reverse art of alchemy, the act of diminishing the most valuable things! Try, just this once, a different approach, so you don’t end up, as before, achieving the opposite of what you intend: deny those good things, take away their public admiration and discourage their spread, make them once again the hidden treasures of solitary souls, declare that morality is something forbidden! Perhaps this way, you’ll attract the kind of men who really matter, I mean the heroic. But then those things must be something impressive, and not, as before, something repulsive! Might one not be tempted to say at present regarding morality what Master Eckardt says: "I pray God to deliver me from God!"

293.

Our Atmosphere.—We know it well: to him who only casts a glance now and then at science, as in taking a walk (in the manner of women, and alas! also like many artists), the strictness in its service, its inexorability in small matters as well as in great, its rapidity in weighing, judging and condemning, produce something of a feeling of giddiness and fright. It is especially terrifying to him that the hardest is here demanded, that the best is done without the reward of praise or distinction; it is rather as among soldiers—almost 228nothing but blame and sharp reprimand is heard; for doing well prevails here as the rule, doing ill as the exception; the rule, however, has, here as everywhere, a silent tongue. It is the same with this "severity of science" as with the manners and politeness of the best society: it frightens the uninitiated. He, however, who is accustomed to it, does not like to live anywhere but in this clear, transparent, powerful, and highly electrified atmosphere, this manly atmosphere. Anywhere else it is not pure and airy enough for him: he suspects that there his best art would neither be properly advantageous to anyone else, nor a delight to himself, that through misunderstandings half of his life would slip through his fingers, that much foresight, much concealment, and reticence would constantly be necessary,—nothing but great and useless losses of power! In this keen and clear element, however, he has his entire power: here he can fly! Why should he again go down into those muddy waters where he has to swim and wade and soil his wings!—No! There it is too hard for us to live! we cannot help it that we are born for the atmosphere, the pure atmosphere, we rivals of the ray of light; and that we should like best to ride like it on the atoms of ether, not away from the sun, but towards the sun! That, however, we cannot do:—so we want to do the only thing that is in our power: namely, to bring light to the earth, we want to be "the light of the earth!" And for that purpose we have our wings and our swiftness and our severity, on that account we are manly, and even terrible like the fire. Let those fear us, who 229do not know how to warm and brighten themselves by our influence!

Our Atmosphere.—We know it well: for someone who only occasionally glances at science, like a casual stroll (as some women do and, unfortunately, many artists as well), the strictness it demands, its uncompromising nature in both minor and major things, and its speed in weighing, judging, and condemning can create a sense of dizziness and fear. It's especially daunting to realize that the hardest work is expected here, that the best efforts often go unrecognized and uncelebrated; it's much like being among soldiers—where mostly you only hear blame and harsh criticism. Doing well is the norm, while doing poorly is the exception; yet, the norm tends to go unnoticed. This "severity of science" resembles the manners and politeness of elite society: it intimidates those who are unaccustomed to it. However, those who are used to it prefer living in this clear, transparent, powerful, and highly energized atmosphere—this manly atmosphere. Anywhere else feels insufficiently pure and light for them: they suspect that there, their best work would neither benefit others nor bring them joy, that misunderstandings would cause half their life to slip away, and that constant concealment and reluctance would be necessary—resulting in nothing but major and pointless losses of energy! In this sharp and clear environment, however, they possess their full power: here they can soar! Why would they want to plunge back into those murky waters where they have to swim and wade and dirty their wings?—No! Living there is too difficult for us! We can't help that we're born for the atmosphere, the pure atmosphere, as rivals of the ray of light; and that we’d prefer to ride like it on the atoms of ether, not away from the sun, but towards the sun! However, we can't do that: so we aim to do the only thing possible: to bring light to the earth, we want to be "the light of the earth!" And for that purpose, we have our wings and our speed and our strictness; that's why we are manly, and even fierce like fire. Let those who do not know how to warm and enlighten themselves with our influence fear us!

294.

Against the Disparagers of Nature.—They are disagreeable to me, those men in whom every natural inclination forthwith becomes a disease, something disfiguring, or even disgraceful. They have seduced us to the opinion that the inclinations and impulses of men are evil; they are the cause of our great injustice to our own nature, and to all nature! There are enough of men who may yield to their impulses gracefully and carelessly: but they do not do so, for fear of that imaginary "evil thing" in nature! That is the cause why there is so little nobility to be found among men: the indication of which will always be to have no fear of oneself, to expect nothing disgraceful from oneself, to fly without hesitation whithersoever we are impelled—we free-born birds! Wherever we come, there will always be freedom and sunshine around us.

Against the Disparagers of Nature.—I find those people disagreeable who turn every natural instinct into a problem, something ugly or even shameful. They have convinced us that human desires and impulses are bad; they are responsible for the great injustice we do to our own nature and to all of nature! There are plenty of people who can follow their impulses with grace and ease: but they don’t, out of fear of that imaginary "evil thing" in nature! That is the reason we see so little nobility among people: the true sign of nobility is to have no fear of oneself, to expect nothing shameful from oneself, to soar without hesitation wherever we are drawn—we free-born birds! Wherever we go, there will always be freedom and sunshine around us.

295.

Short-lived Habits.—I love short-lived habits, and regard them as an invaluable means for getting a knowledge of many things and various conditions, to the very bottom of their sweetness and bitterness; my nature is altogether arranged for short-lived habits, even in the needs of its bodily health, and in general, as far as I can see, from the lowest up to the highest matters. I always think that this will at last satisfy me permanently (the short-lived habit has also that 230characteristic belief of passion, the belief in everlasting duration; I am to be envied for having found it and recognised it), and then it nourishes me at noon and at eve, and spreads a profound satisfaction around me and in me, so that I have no longing for anything else, not needing to compare, or despise, or hate. But one day the habit has had its time: the good thing separates from me, not as something which then inspires disgust in me—but peaceably and as though satisfied with me, as I am with it; as if we had to be mutually thankful, and thus shook hands for farewell. And already the new habit waits at the door, and similarly also my belief—indestructible fool and sage that I am!—that this new habit will be the right one, the ultimate right one. So it is with me as regards foods, thoughts, men, cities, poems, music, doctrines, arrangements of the day, and modes of life.—On the other hand, I hate permanent habits, and feel as if a tyrant came into my neighbourhood, and as if my life's breath condensed, when events take such a form that permanent habits seem necessarily to grow out of them: for example, through an official position, through constant companionship with the same persons, through a settled abode, or through a uniform state of health. Indeed, from the bottom of my soul I am gratefully disposed to all my misery and sickness, and to whatever is imperfect in me, because such things leave me a hundred back-doors through which I can escape from permanent habits. The most unendurable thing, to be sure, the really terrible thing, would be a life without habits, a life which 231continually required improvisation:—that would be my banishment and my Siberia.

Short-lived Habits.—I love short-lived habits and see them as an invaluable way to gain insight into many things and different situations, getting to the core of their sweetness and bitterness. My nature is completely suited for short-lived habits, even in terms of my physical health, and in general, as far as I can tell, from the lowest to the highest aspects of life. I always think that this will eventually satisfy me permanently (the short-lived habit also carries that characteristic belief of passion, the belief in everlasting duration; I should be envied for having discovered and acknowledged it), and then it sustains me through the day and night, creating a deep sense of fulfillment both around me and within me, so that I feel no desire for anything else, not needing to compare, disdain, or hate. But one day the habit has run its course: the good thing parts from me, not as something that disgusts me, but peacefully, as if satisfied with me, just as I am with it; as though we had to be mutually grateful and thus shook hands to say goodbye. And already the new habit is waiting at the door, along with my belief—indestructible fool and sage that I am!—that this new habit will be the right one, the ultimate right one. So it goes for me regarding food, thoughts, people, cities, poems, music, ideologies, daily routines, and ways of living.—On the other hand, I despise permanent habits, feeling as if a tyrant has moved into my life, and my breath condenses when events shape themselves in such a way that permanent habits seem inevitable: for instance, through an official position, through constant companionship with the same people, through a stable home, or through a consistent state of health. In fact, from the depths of my soul, I am grateful for all my struggles and illnesses, and everything that’s imperfect about me, because those things leave me a hundred escape routes to avoid permanent habits. The most unbearable thing, truly the dreadful thing, would be a life without habits, a life that continuously needed improvisation:—that would be my exile and my Siberia.

296.

A Fixed Reputation.—A fixed reputation was formerly a matter of the very greatest utility; and wherever society continues to be ruled by the herd-instinct, it is still most suitable for every individual to give to his character and business the appearance of unalterableness,—even when they are not so in reality. "One can rely on him, he remains the same"—that is the praise which has most significance in all dangerous conditions of society. Society feels with satisfaction that it has a reliable tool ready at all times in the virtue of this one, in the ambition of that one, and in the reflection and passion of a third one,—it honours this tool-like nature, this self-constancy, this unchangeableness in opinions, efforts, and even in faults, with the highest honours. Such a valuation, which prevails and has prevailed everywhere simultaneously with the morality of custom, educates "characters," and brings all changing, re-learning, and self-transforming into disrepute. Be the advantage of this mode of thinking ever so great otherwise, it is in any case the mode of judging which is most injurious to knowledge: for precisely the good-will of the knowing one ever to declare himself unhesitatingly as opposed to his former opinions, and in general to be distrustful of all that wants to be fixed in him—is here condemned and brought into disrepute. The disposition of the thinker, as incompatible with 232a "fixed reputation," is regarded as dishonourable, while the petrifaction of opinions has all the honour to itself:—we have at present still to live under the interdict of such rules! How difficult it is to live when one feels that the judgment of many millenniums is around one and against one. It is probable that for many millenniums knowledge was afflicted with a bad conscience, and that there must have been much self-contempt and secret misery in the history of the greatest intellects.

A Fixed Reputation.—A fixed reputation used to be extremely useful; and wherever society is still influenced by the herd instinct, it continues to be important for everyone to make their character and business seem unchangeable—even if they aren't truly so. "You can count on him; he stays the same"—that's the praise that holds the most weight in all critical situations of society. People appreciate knowing they have a dependable tool ready at any moment in the virtue of one, in the ambition of another, and in the reflection and passion of yet another—they honor this tool-like nature, this self-consistency, this unchangeability in opinions, efforts, and even in flaws, with the highest respect. This kind of valuation, which has existed alongside the morality of custom everywhere, shapes "characters" and discredits any form of change, re-learning, or self-transformation. No matter how beneficial this way of thinking might be otherwise, it is undoubtedly the type of judgment that is most harmful to knowledge: because the willingness of the knowledgeable person to openly oppose their former opinions and to generally question everything that seeks to become fixed within them is condemned and discredited here. The mindset of the thinker, seen as incompatible with a "fixed reputation," is viewed as dishonorable, while the rigidity of opinions receives all the honor:—we still have to live under the restrictions of these rules! It's incredibly challenging to exist knowing that the judgment of countless millennia surrounds and opposes you. It’s likely that for many millennia, knowledge has struggled with a guilty conscience, and there must have been much self-contempt and hidden distress in the histories of the greatest minds.

297.

Ability to Contradict.—Everyone knows at present that the ability to endure contradiction is a high indication of culture. Some people even know that the higher man courts opposition, and provokes it, so as to get a cue to his hitherto unknown partiality. But the ability to contradict, the attainment of good conscience in hostility to the accustomed, the traditional and the hallowed,—that is more than both the above-named abilities, and is the really great, new and astonishing thing in our culture, the step of all steps of the emancipated intellect: who knows that?—

Ability to Contradict.—Everyone knows today that being able to handle disagreement is a strong sign of sophistication. Some people even realize that a more advanced individual seeks out opposition and stirs it up to discover their previously unknown preferences. However, the ability to contradict, achieving a good conscience in opposition to what is familiar, traditional, and revered—this is more significant than both abilities mentioned above, and it's the truly remarkable and groundbreaking aspect of our culture, the key advancement of a liberated intellect: who truly understands that?—

298.

A Sigh.—I caught this notion on the way, and rapidly took the readiest, poor words to hold it fast, so that it might not again fly away. And now it has died in these dry words, and hangs and flaps about in them—and I hardly know now, when I look upon it, how I could have had such happiness when I caught this bird.

A Sigh.—I picked up this idea along the way and quickly snatched up the simplest, most inadequate words to capture it, so it wouldn’t slip away again. Now it’s trapped in these dry words, fluttering around in them—and I can hardly understand, when I look at it, how I felt such happiness when I first caught this bird.

233

299.

What one should Learn from Artists.—What means have we for making things beautiful, attractive, and desirable, when they are not so?—and I suppose they are never so in themselves! We have here something to learn from physicians, when, for example, they dilute what is bitter, or put wine and sugar into their mixing-bowl; but we have still more to learn from artists, who in fact, are continually concerned in devising such inventions and artifices. To withdraw from things until one no longer sees much of them, until one has even to see things into them, in order to see them at all—or to view them from the side, and as in a frame—or to place them so that they partly disguise themselves and only permit of perspective views—or to look at them through coloured glasses, or in the light of the sunset—or to furnish them with a surface or skin which is not fully transparent: we should learn all that from artists, and moreover be wiser than they. For this fine power of theirs usually ceases with them where art ceases and life begins; we, however, want to be the poets of our life, and first of all in the smallest and most commonplace matters.

What One Should Learn from Artists.—How can we make things beautiful, appealing, and desirable when they aren’t? I think they’re never truly that way on their own! We can learn something from doctors when they dilute bitter substances or mix wine and sugar, but we can learn even more from artists, who are always inventing clever ways to create beauty. They know how to step back from things until they become less visible, to the point where you have to imagine aspects of them just to see them at all—or to look at them from a different angle, like in a framed picture—or to arrange them so they partially conceal themselves and only show certain perspectives—or to view them through tinted glasses, or during sunset—or to give them a surface that isn't completely clear. We should learn all this from artists and strive to be even wiser than they are. Their incredible talent often stops where their art does and life begins; however, we want to be the poets of our own lives, starting with the smallest, most ordinary things.

300.

Prelude to Science.—Do you believe then that the sciences would have arisen and grown up if the sorcerers, alchemists, astrologers and witches had not been their forerunners; those who, with their promisings and foreshadowings, had first to 234create a thirst, a hunger, and a taste for hidden and forbidden powers? Yea, that infinitely more had to be promised than could ever be fulfilled, in order that something might be fulfilled in the domain of knowledge? Perhaps the whole of religion, also, may appear to some distant age as an exercise and a prelude, in like manner as the prelude and preparation of science here exhibit themselves, though not at all practised and regarded as such. Perhaps religion may have been the peculiar means for enabling individual men to enjoy but once the entire self-satisfaction of a God and all his self-redeeming power. Indeed!—one may ask—would man have learned at all to get on the tracks of hunger and thirst for himself, and to extract satiety and fullness out of himself, without that religious schooling and preliminary history? Had Prometheus first to fancy that he had stolen the light, and that he did penance for the theft—in order finally to discover that he had created the light, in that he had longed for the light, and that not only man, but also God had been the work of his hands and the clay in his hands? All mere creations of the creator?—just as the illusion, the theft, the Caucasus, the vulture, and the whole tragic Prometheia of all thinkers!

Prelude to Science.—Do you really think that science would have developed and flourished if sorcerers, alchemists, astrologers, and witches hadn't paved the way? They were the ones who, with their promises and hints, first sparked a thirst, a hunger, and a curiosity for hidden and forbidden powers. Yes, even more had to be promised than could ever be delivered, in order for something to actually come to fruition in the realm of knowledge. Perhaps all of religion might seem, to a future age, like a practice and a prelude, just as the early stages of science do now, even if it was never seen that way. Maybe religion served as a unique way for individuals to briefly experience the total self-satisfaction of a God and his self-redeeming power. Indeed!—one might wonder—would humanity have even learned to pursue hunger and thirst for itself, and to find fulfillment and satisfaction within itself, without that religious education and background? Did Prometheus first have to believe that he had stolen fire, and suffer for that theft—only to eventually realize that he had created fire, by longing for it, and that not just humanity, but also God, were the results of his efforts and the clay he molded? All mere creations of the creator?—just like the illusion, the theft, the Caucasus, the vulture, and the entire tragic Prometheia of all thinkers!

301.

Illusion of the Contemplative.—Higher men are distinguished from lower, by seeing and hearing immensely more, and in a thoughtful manner—and it is precisely this that distinguishes man from the animal, and the higher animal from the lower. The world always becomes fuller for him 235who grows up into the full stature of humanity; there are always more interesting fishing-hooks, thrown out to him; the number of his stimuli is continually on the increase, and similarly the varieties of his pleasure and pain,—the higher man becomes always at the same time happier and unhappier. An illusion, however, is his constant accompaniment all along: he thinks he is placed as a spectator and auditor before the great pantomime and concert of life; he calls his nature a contemplative nature, and thereby overlooks the fact that he himself is also a real creator, and continuous poet of life,—that he no doubt differs greatly from the actor in this drama, the so-called practical man, but differs still more from a mere onlooker or spectator before the stage. There is certainly vis contemplativa, and re-examination of his work peculiar to him as poet, but at the same time, and first and foremost, he has the vis creativa, which the practical man or doer lacks, whatever appearance and current belief may say to the contrary. It is we, we who think and feel, that actually and unceasingly make something which does not yet exist: the whole eternally increasing world of valuations, colours, weights, perspectives, gradations, affirmations and negations. This composition of ours is continually learnt, practised, and translated into flesh and actuality, and even into the commonplace, by the so-called practical men (our actors, as we have said). Whatever has value in the present world, has it not in itself, by its nature,—nature is always worthless:—but a value was once given to it, bestowed upon it, 236and it was we who gave and bestowed! We only have created the world which is of any account to man!—But it is precisely this knowledge that we lack, and when we get hold of it for a moment we have forgotten it the next: we misunderstand our highest power, we contemplative men, and estimate ourselves at too low a rate,—we are neither as proud nor as happy as we might be.

Illusion of the Contemplative.—Higher individuals stand out from lower ones by perceiving and interpreting much more in a thoughtful way—and this is exactly what sets humans apart from animals, and higher animals from lower ones. The world constantly becomes richer for those who reach their full human potential; there are always more intriguing opportunities offered to them; the number of stimuli they experience continues to grow, as do the varieties of their pleasure and pain—higher individuals consistently become both happier and unhappier at the same time. However, an illusion always accompanies them: they believe they are positioned as a spectator and auditor in the grand performance and concert of life; they label their nature as a contemplative nature, overlooking the fact that they themselves are also genuine creators and ongoing poets of life—that while they differ significantly from the actor in this drama, the so-called practical person, they differ even more from a mere onlooker or spectator before the stage. There is undoubtedly a vis contemplativa, and a reevaluation of their work unique to them as poets, but at the same time, and primarily, they possess the vis creativa, which the practical person or doer lacks, no matter what appearances or popular beliefs may suggest. It is we, the thinkers and feelers, who actually and continuously create something that does not yet exist: the entire ever-expanding world of values, colors, weights, perspectives, gradations, affirmations, and negations. This composition of ours is constantly learned, practiced, and transformed into reality, even into the mundane, by the so-called practical individuals (our actors, as we said). Whatever has value in today's world does not possess it by its inherent nature—nature is always valueless—but a value was once assigned to it, granted to it, and it was we who gave and assigned! We alone have crafted the world that matters to humanity!—But we lack this awareness, and when we grasp it for a moment, we forget it the next; we misunderstand our greatest power, we contemplative individuals, and undervalue ourselves—we are neither as proud nor as happy as we could be.

302.

The Danger of the Happiest Ones.—To have fine senses and a fine taste; to be accustomed to the select and the intellectually best as our proper and readiest fare; to be blessed with a strong, bold, and daring soul; to go through life with a quiet eye and a firm step, ever ready for the worst as for a festival, and full of longing for undiscovered worlds and seas, men and Gods; to listen to all joyous music, as if there, perhaps, brave men, soldiers and seafarers, took a brief repose and enjoyment, and in the profoundest pleasure of the moment were overcome with tears and the whole purple melancholy of happiness: who would not like all this to be his possession, his condition! It was the happiness of Homer! The condition of him who invented the Gods for the Greeks,—nay, who invented his Gods for himself! But let us not conceal the fact that with this happiness of Homer in one's soul, one is more liable to suffering than any other creature under the sun! And only at this price do we purchase the most precious pearl that the waves of existence have hitherto washed ashore! As its possessor one always becomes more 237sensitive to pain, and at last too sensitive: a little displeasure and loathing sufficed in the end to make Homer disgusted with life. He was unable to solve a foolish little riddle which some young fishers proposed to him! Yes, the little riddles are the dangers of the happiest ones!—

The Danger of the Happiest Ones.—Having sharp senses and great taste; being used to the best and most refined ideas as our everyday nourishment; being blessed with a strong, courageous, and adventurous spirit; moving through life with a steady gaze and confident stride, always prepared for the worst as well as for a celebration, and filled with a yearning for uncharted worlds and seas, people and deities; listening to all joyful music, as if, perhaps, brave men, soldiers, and sailors, were taking a brief break to enjoy themselves, and in the deepest joy of the moment were overcome with tears and the rich sadness of happiness: who wouldn’t want all of this to be their possession, their state of being! It was the happiness of Homer! The condition of the one who created the Gods for the Greeks,—no, who created his Gods for himself! But let’s not ignore the fact that with this Homeric happiness in your soul, you become more susceptible to suffering than any other being on earth! And it is only at this cost that we obtain the most precious pearl that the tides of existence have ever washed ashore! As its holder, you inevitably become more 237sensitive to pain, and eventually, too sensitive: a little displeasure and disgust was enough to make Homer lose his zest for life. He couldn't figure out a silly little puzzle that some young fishermen posed to him! Yes, the little puzzles are the pitfalls for the happiest ones!—

303.

Two Happy Ones.—Certainly this man, notwithstanding his youth, understands the improvisation of life, and astonishes even the acutest observers. For it seems that he never makes a mistake, although he constantly plays the most hazardous games. One is reminded of the improvising masters of the musical art, to whom even the listeners would fain ascribe a divine infallibility of the hand, notwithstanding that they now and then make a mistake, as every mortal is liable to do. But they are skilled and inventive, and always ready in a moment to arrange into the structure of the score the most accidental tone (where the jerk of a finger or a humour brings it about), and to animate the accident with a fine meaning and a soul.—Here is quite a different man: everything that he intends and plans fails with him in the long run. That on which he has now and again set his heart has already brought him several times to the abyss, and to the very verge of ruin; and if he has as yet got out of the scrape, it certainly has not been merely with a "black eye." Do you think he is unhappy over it? He resolved long ago not to regard his own wishes and plans as of so much importance. "If this does not succeed with 238me,"—he says to himself, "perhaps that will succeed; and on the whole I do not know but that I am under more obligation to thank my failures than any of my successes. Am I made to be headstrong, and to wear the bull's horns? That which constitutes the worth and the sum of life for me, lies somewhere else; I know more of life, because I have been so often on the point of losing it; and just on that account I have more of life than any of you!"

Two Happy Ones.—Definitely this guy, despite his youth, gets the improvisation of life and impresses even the sharpest observers. It seems like he never messes up, even though he regularly takes the biggest risks. You can't help but think of the improvising masters of music, who listeners would almost credit with a divine infallibility, even if they occasionally slip up like any human does. But they're talented and creative, always quick to incorporate the most random note into their performance (thanks to a twitch of a finger or a change in mood) and infuse that accident with real meaning and passion. —Now this is a completely different person: everything he intends and plans eventually falls apart. What he has sometimes set his heart on has nearly dragged him down to rock bottom more than once, and if he has managed to escape from those tight spots, it certainly hasn’t been without some serious consequences. Do you think he’s unhappy about it? He decided a long time ago not to treat his own desires and plans as that important. “If this doesn’t work out for me,” he tells himself, “maybe that will work out; and overall, I think I owe more gratitude to my failures than to any of my successes. Am I meant to be stubborn and wear the bull’s horns? What really matters in life for me is somewhere else; I understand life better because I’ve been close to losing it so many times; and for that reason, I have more of life than any of you!”

304.

In Doing we Leave Undone.—In the main all those moral systems are distasteful to me which say: "Do not do this! Renounce! Overcome thyself!" On the other hand I am favourable to those moral systems which stimulate me to do something, and to do it again from morning till evening, and dream of it at night, and think of nothing else but to do it well, as well as it is possible for me alone! From him who so lives there fall off one after the other the things that do not pertain to such a life: without hatred or antipathy, he sees this take leave of him to-day, and that to-morrow, like the yellow leaves which every livelier breeze strips from the tree: or he does not see at all that they take leave of him, so firmly is his eye fixed upon his goal, and generally forward, not sideways, backward, nor downward. "Our doing must determine what we leave undone; in that we do, we leave undone"—so it pleases me, so runs my placitum. But I do not mean to strive with open eyes for my impoverishment; I do not like any of the negative 239virtues whose very essence is negation and self-renunciation.

In Doing we Leave Undone.—Overall, I find most moral systems that say: "Don't do this! Give it up! Overcome yourself!" to be unpleasant. On the other hand, I support those moral systems that encourage me to take action, to do things repeatedly from morning till night, to dream about them at night, and to focus solely on doing them well, as well as I possibly can on my own! For someone who lives like this, the things that don't relate to such a life naturally fall away, one after the other: without hatred or resentment, they notice this leaving him today, and that tomorrow, like yellow leaves that a lively breeze strips from a tree; or he might not even notice them leaving, so focused is he on his goal, looking ahead, not sideways, backward, or downward. "Our actions must decide what we don't do; in what we undertake, we leave other things undone"—this idea resonates with me, this is my belief. But I don't intend to chase after my own impoverishment with my eyes wide open; I dislike any negative 239 virtues that are all about negation and self-denial.

305.

Self-control.—Those moral teachers who first and foremost order man to get himself into his own power, induce thereby a curious infirmity in him,—namely, a constant sensitiveness with reference to all natural strivings and inclinations, and as it were, a sort of itching. Whatever may henceforth drive him, draw him, allure or impel him, whether internally or externally—it always seems to this sensitive being, as if his self-control were in danger: he is no longer at liberty to trust himself to any instinct, to any free flight, but stands constantly with defensive mien, armed against himself, with sharp distrustful eye, the eternal watcher of his stronghold, to which office he has appointed himself. Yes, he can be great in that position! But how unendurable he has now become to others, how difficult even for himself to bear, how impoverished and cut off from the finest accidents of his soul! Yea, even from all further instruction! For we must be able to lose ourselves at times, if we want to learn something of what we have not in ourselves.

Self-control.—Those moral teachers who primarily tell people to take control of themselves create a strange weakness in them—a constant sensitivity to all natural desires and inclinations, almost like an itch. No matter what drives, pulls, attracts, or pushes them, whether from within or outside, it always feels like their self-control is at risk. They can't trust their instincts or allow themselves to be free; they are always on guard, ready to defend against themselves, with a wary eye, like the ever-watchful guardian of their own stronghold, a role they have taken on for themselves. Yes, they can be great in that role! But they become unbearable to others, difficult even for themselves to endure, and are left impoverished and cut off from the most beautiful experiences of their soul! Yes, even from all further instruction! Because sometimes we need to lose ourselves if we want to learn something that isn't already within us.

306.

Stoic and Epicurean.—The Epicurean selects the situations, the persons, and even the events which suit his extremely sensitive, intellectual constitution; he renounces the rest—that is to say, by far the greater part of experience—because it would be 240too strong and too heavy fare for him. The Stoic, on the contrary, accustoms himself to swallow stones and vermin, glass-splinters and scorpions, without feeling any disgust: his stomach is meant to become indifferent in the end to all that the accidents of existence cast into it:—he reminds one of the Arabic sect of the Assaua, with which the French became acquainted in Algiers; and like those insensible persons, he also likes well to have an invited public at the exhibition of his insensibility, the very thing the Epicurean willingly dispenses with:—he has of course his "garden"! Stoicism may be quite advisable for men with whom fate improvises, for those who live in violent times and are dependent on abrupt and changeable individuals. He, however, who anticipates that fate will permit him to spin "a long thread," does well to make his arrangements in Epicurean fashion; all men devoted to intellectual labour have done it hitherto! For it would be a supreme loss to them to forfeit their fine sensibility, and acquire the hard, stoical hide with hedgehog prickles in exchange.

Stoic and Epicurean.—The Epicurean chooses the situations, people, and events that suit his highly sensitive, intellectual nature; he gives up everything else—that is, much of life’s experiences—because it would be too overwhelming and heavy for him. The Stoic, on the other hand, trains himself to endure harshness and discomfort, like swallowing stones and vermin, glass shards and scorpions, without feeling disgust: his goal is to be indifferent to whatever life throws at him. He reminds one of the Arabic sect of the Assaua, which the French encountered in Algiers; and like those unfeeling individuals, he also enjoys showcasing his indifference to an audience, something the Epicurean prefers to avoid:—he certainly has his "garden"! Stoicism may be beneficial for those who face unpredictable circumstances, especially those living in turbulent times who rely on erratic people. However, for someone who expects that fate will allow him to weave "a long thread," it’s better to approach life in the Epicurean way; all those engaged in intellectual work have traditionally done so! For it would be a great loss for them to sacrifice their refined sensitivity in exchange for a tough, stoic exterior with hedgehog spines.

307.

In Favour of Criticism.—Something now appears to thee as an error which thou formerly lovedst as a truth, or as a probability: thou pushest it from thee and imaginest that thy reason has there gained a victory. But perhaps that error was then, when thou wast still another person—thou art always another person,—just as necessary to thee as all thy present "truths," like a skin, as it 241were, which concealed and veiled from thee much which thou still mayst not see. Thy new life, and not thy reason, has slain that opinion for thee: thou dost not require it any longer, and now it breaks down of its own accord, and the irrationality crawls out of it as a worm into the light. When we make use of criticism it is not something arbitrary and impersonal,—it is, at least very often, a proof that there are lively, active forces in us, which cast a skin. We deny, and must deny, because something in us wants to live and affirm itself, something which we perhaps do not as yet know, do not as yet see!—So much in favour of criticism.

In Favor of Criticism.—Something that once seemed like a truth or a strong possibility to you now appears to be an error; you push it away and think that your reason has won. But maybe that error was essential to you back when you were a different person—you're always evolving—just as necessary as all your current "truths," like a skin that hides and conceals many things you still might not see. Your new life, not your reason, has put that opinion to rest for you: you no longer need it, and now it crumbles on its own, with the irrationality crawling out like a worm into the light. When we use criticism, it’s not random or impersonal—it often shows that there are vibrant, active forces within us that are shedding layers. We deny, and have to deny, because something inside us wants to live and assert itself, something we may not fully understand or see yet!—So much in favor of criticism.

308.

The History of each Day.—What is it that constitutes the history of each day for thee? Look at thy habits of which it consists: are they the product of numberless little acts of cowardice and laziness, or of thy bravery and inventive reason? Although the two cases are so different, it is possible that men might bestow the same praise upon thee, and that thou mightst also be equally useful to them in the one case as in the other. But praise and utility and respectability may suffice for him whose only desire is to have a good conscience,—not however for thee, the "trier of the reins," who hast a consciousness of the conscience!

The History of each Day.—What does the history of each day look like for you? Consider your habits that make it up: are they the result of countless little acts of fear and laziness, or of your courage and creative thinking? Even though the two situations are very different, it’s possible that people might offer you the same praise, and you might be just as helpful to them in either case. But praise, usefulness, and respect might be enough for someone whose only wish is to have a clear conscience—not for you, the "tester of the reins," who has a consciousness of the conscience!

309.

Out of the Seventh Solitude.—One day the wanderer shut a door behind him, stood still, and 242wept. Then he said: "Oh, this inclination and impulse towards the true, the real, the non-apparent, the certain! How I detest it! Why does this gloomy and passionate taskmaster follow just me? I should like to rest, but it does not permit me to do so. Are there not a host of things seducing me to tarry! Everywhere there are gardens of Armida for me, and therefore there will always be fresh separations and fresh bitterness of heart! I must set my foot forward, my weary wounded foot: and because I feel I must do this, I often cast grim glances back at the most beautiful things which could not detain me—because they could not detain me!"

Out of the Seventh Solitude.—One day the wanderer closed a door behind him, paused, and wept. Then he said: "Oh, this urge and drive toward the true, the real, the unseen, the certain! How I hate it! Why does this dark and passionate taskmaster pursue just me? I want to rest, but it won’t let me. Aren’t there countless things tempting me to stay? Everywhere I see enchanting gardens waiting for me, and so there will always be new separations and fresh heartache! I have to move forward, my tired, wounded foot: and because I know I have to do this, I often cast bitter looks back at the most beautiful things that couldn't hold me—because they couldn't hold me!"

310.

Will and Wave.—How eagerly this wave comes hither, as if it were a question of its reaching something! How it creeps with frightful haste into the innermost corners of the rocky cliff! It seems that it wants to forestall some one; it seems that something is concealed there that has value, high value.—And now it retreats somewhat more slowly, still quite white with excitement,—is it disappointed? Has it found what it sought? Does it merely pretend to be disappointed?—But already another wave approaches, still more eager and wild than the first, and its soul also seems to be full of secrets and of longing for treasure-seeking. Thus live the waves,—thus live we who exercise will!—I do not say more.—But what! Ye distrust me? Ye are angry at me, ye beautiful monsters? Do ye fear that I will quite betray your secret? Well! Just 243be angry with me, raise your green, dangerous bodies as high as ye can, make a wall between me and the sun—as at present! Verily, there is now nothing more left of the world save green twilight and green lightning-flashes. Do as ye will, ye wanton creatures, roar with delight and wickedness—or dive under again, pour your emeralds down into the depths, and cast your endless white tresses of foam and spray over them—it is all the same to me, for all is so well with you, and I am so pleased with you for it all: how could I betray you! For—take this to heart!—I know you and your secret, I know your race! You and I are indeed of one race! You and I have indeed one secret!

Will and Wave.—How eagerly this wave rushes here, as if it has to reach something! How it creeps with terrifying speed into the deepest corners of the rocky cliff! It seems like it wants to get ahead of someone; it seems like something valuable is hidden there.—And now it pulls back a bit more slowly, still quite white with excitement—is it disappointed? Has it found what it was after? Is it just pretending to be disappointed?—But already another wave comes in, even more eager and wild than the first, and its essence also seems full of secrets and a thirst for treasure. This is how the waves live—this is how we who have will live!—I won't say more.—But what! You doubt me? You’re angry with me, you beautiful monsters? Do you fear that I will completely expose your secret? Well! Just 243 be angry with me, raise your green, dangerous bodies as high as you can, build a wall between me and the sun—just like now! Truly, there is nothing left in the world except green twilight and green flashes of lightning. Do as you please, you mischievous beings, roar with joy and mischief—or dive down again, pouring your emeralds into the depths, and casting your endless white waves of foam and spray over them—it makes no difference to me, because everything is so good with you, and I’m so delighted with you: how could I betray you! For—remember this!—I know you and your secret, I recognize your kind! You and I are truly of the same kind! You and I really share one secret!

311.

Broken Lights.—We are not always brave, and when we are weary, people of our stamp are liable to lament occasionally in this wise:—"It is so hard to cause pain to men—oh, that it should be necessary! What good is it to live concealed, when we do not want to keep to ourselves that which causes vexation? Would it not be more advisable to live in the madding crowd, and compensate individuals for sins that are committed and must be committed against mankind in general? Foolish with fools, vain with the vain, enthusiastic with enthusiasts? Would that not be reasonable when there is such an inordinate amount of divergence in the main? When I hear of the malignity of others against me—is not my first feeling that of satisfaction? It is well that it should be so!—I seem to myself to say to them—I 244am so little in harmony with you, and have so much truth on my side: see henceforth that ye be merry at my expense as often as ye can! Here are my defects and mistakes, here are my illusions, my bad taste, my confusion, my tears, my vanity, my owlish concealment, my contradictions! Here you have something to laugh at! Laugh then, and enjoy yourselves! I am not averse to the law and nature of things, which is that defects and errors should give pleasure!—To be sure there were once 'more glorious' times, when as soon as any one got an idea, however moderately new it might be, he would think himself so indispensable as to go out into the street with it, and call to everybody: 'Behold! the kingdom of heaven is at hand!'—I should not miss myself, if I were a-wanting. We are none of us indispensable!"—As we have said, however, we do not think thus when we are brave; we do not think about it at all.

Broken Lights.—We aren't always brave, and when we're tired, people like us tend to occasionally sigh: "It's so hard to hurt others—why does it have to be this way? What’s the point of hiding away when we don’t want to keep to ourselves the things that bother us? Wouldn’t it make more sense to live among the bustling crowd and make amends for the wrongs done to humanity as a whole? Foolish with fools, vain with the vain, enthusiastic with the enthusiastic? Wouldn’t that be reasonable given the overwhelming differences we face? When I hear about the ill will others have towards me, isn't my first reaction one of satisfaction? It’s a good thing it is!—I find myself saying to them—I’m so out of sync with you and have so much truth on my side: know that you can laugh at my expense as much as you want! Here are my flaws and mistakes, here are my illusions, my poor taste, my confusion, my tears, my vanity, my secretive nature, my contradictions! Here’s something for you to laugh at! Go ahead, enjoy yourselves! I don’t mind the way things are, which is that flaws and errors should bring joy!—Of course, there were once 'better' times, when as soon as someone had an idea, no matter how slightly new, they would think themselves so essential that they would step into the street and shout: 'Look! The kingdom of heaven is here!'—I wouldn’t miss being here if I wasn’t needed. None of us are essential!"—But as we’ve said, we don’t think this way when we’re brave; we don’t think about it at all.

312.

My Dog.—I have given a name to my suffering, and call it "dog,"—it is just as faithful, just as importunate and shameless, just as entertaining, just as wise, as any other dog—and I can domineer over it, and vent my bad humour on it, as others do with their dogs, servants, and wives.

My Dog.—I have named my suffering and call it "dog"—it’s just as loyal, just as demanding and unashamed, just as amusing, just as clever, as any other dog—and I can boss it around and take out my bad mood on it, just like others do with their dogs, servants, and wives.

313.

No Picture of a Martyr.—I will take my cue from Raphael, and not paint any more martyr 245pictures. There are enough of sublime things without its being necessary to seek sublimity where it is linked with cruelty; moreover my ambition would not be gratified in the least if I aspired to be a sublime executioner.

No Picture of a Martyr.—I will follow Raphael's lead and stop painting martyr pictures. There are plenty of beautiful things without needing to find beauty where it’s connected to brutality; besides, my ambition wouldn’t be fulfilled at all if I aimed to become a magnificent executioner. 245

314.

New Domestic Animals.—I want to have my lion and my eagle about me, that I may always have hints and premonitions concerning the amount of my strength or weakness. Must I look down on them to-day, and be afraid of them? And will the hour come once more when they will look up to me, and tremble?—

New Domestic Animals.—I want to have my lion and my eagle around me, so I can always have clues and warnings about my strength or weaknesses. Do I have to look down on them today and be scared of them? Will there come a time again when they will look up to me and feel fear?—

315.

The Last Hour.—Storms are my danger. Shall I have my storm in which I shall perish, just as Oliver Cromwell perished in his storm? Or shall I go out as a light does, not first blown out by the wind, but grown tired and weary of itself—a burnt-out light? Or finally, shall I blow myself out, so as not to burn out!

The Last Hour.—Storms are my danger. Will I face my storm and perish, just like Oliver Cromwell did in his storm? Or will I fade away like a light, not snuffed out by the wind, but worn out and exhausted—a burnt-out light? Or finally, will I extinguish myself instead of just burning out?

316.

Prophetic Men.—Ye cannot divine how sorely prophetic men suffer: ye think only that a fine "gift" has been given to them, and would fain have it yourselves,—but I will express my meaning by a simile. How much may not the animals suffer from the electricity of the atmosphere and the clouds! Some of them, as we see, have a prophetic faculty with regard to the weather, for example, apes 246(as one can observe very well even in Europe,—and not only in menageries, but at Gibraltar). But it never occurs to us that it is their sufferings—that are their prophets! When strong positive electricity, under the influence of an approaching cloud not at all visible, is suddenly converted into negative electricity, and an alteration of the weather is imminent, these animals then behave as if an enemy were approaching them, and prepare for defence, or flight: they generally hide themselves,—they do not think of the bad weather as weather, but as an enemy whose hand they already feel!

Prophetic People.—You can't imagine how deeply prophetic people suffer: you only think that they have received a special "gift" and wish to have it for yourselves. Let me explain my point with a comparison. How much do animals suffer from the electrical changes in the atmosphere and clouds! Some of them, like apes (as you can clearly see even in Europe—not just in zoos, but at places like Gibraltar), have a sense for predicting the weather. But we rarely consider that it is their suffering that serves as their prophecy! When strong positive electricity suddenly shifts to negative due to an invisible approaching cloud, signaling an upcoming change in weather, these animals act as if a threat is near, getting ready to defend themselves or flee. They typically conceal themselves—they don’t perceive the bad weather as just weather, but as an enemy they can already feel!

317.

Retrospect.—We seldom become conscious of the real pathos of any period of life as such, as long as we continue in it, but always think it is the only possible and reasonable thing for us henceforth, and that it is altogether ethos and not pathos[10]—to speak and distinguish like the Greeks. A few notes of music to-day recalled a winter and a house, and a life of utter solitude to my mind, and at the same time the sentiments in which I then lived: I thought I should be able to live in such a state always. But now I understand that it was entirely pathos and passion, something comparable to this painfully bold and truly comforting music,—it is not one's lot to have these 247sensations for years, still less for eternities: otherwise one would become too "ethereal" for this planet.

Retrospect.—We rarely realize the true emotions of any stage of life while we're still in it; we always believe it’s the only reasonable option for us going forward, and that it’s entirely ethos and not pathos[10]—to speak and differentiate like the Greeks. A few notes of music today brought back memories of a winter, a house, and a life of complete solitude, along with the feelings I experienced during that time: I thought I could live in that state forever. But now I see that it was all just emotions and passion, something akin to this painfully bold yet truly soothing music—it's not realistic to experience these feelings for years, let alone for eternity; otherwise, one would become too "ethereal" for this world.

318.

Wisdom in Pain.—In pain there is as much wisdom as in pleasure: like the latter it is one of the best self-preservatives of a species. Were it not so, pain would long ago have been done away with; that it is hurtful is no argument against it, for to be hurtful is its very essence. In pain I hear the commanding call of the ship's captain: "Take in sail!" "Man," the bold seafarer, must have learned to set his sails in a thousand different ways, otherwise he could not have sailed long, for the ocean would soon have swallowed him up. We must also know how to live with reduced energy: as soon as pain gives its precautionary signal, it is time to reduce the speed—some great danger, some storm, is approaching, and we do well to "catch" as little wind as possible.—It is true that there are men who, on the approach of severe pain, hear the very opposite call of command, and never appear more proud, more martial, or more happy, than when the storm is brewing; indeed, pain itself provides them with their supreme moments! These are the heroic men, the great pain-bringers of mankind: those few and rare ones who need just the same apology as pain generally,—and verily, it should not be denied them! They are forces of the greatest importance for preserving and advancing the species, were it only because they are opposed to smug ease, and do not conceal their disgust at this kind of happiness.

Wisdom in Pain.—In pain, there is as much wisdom as in pleasure; like pleasure, it is one of the best ways to protect a species. If it weren't true, pain would have been eliminated long ago; the fact that it is harmful doesn’t argue against it—being harmful is its very nature. In pain, I hear the ship captain's urgent command: "Reef the sails!" The bold sailor must have learned to adjust his sails in countless ways; otherwise, he wouldn’t survive at sea, as the ocean would have swallowed him up long ago. We also need to know how to operate with less energy: once pain signals its warning, it's time to slow down—some great danger, some storm, is on the way, and we do well to "catch" as little wind as possible. It’s true that some men, when faced with severe pain, respond to the exact opposite call to action, and they look more proud, more fierce, or more joyful than when the storm is coming; indeed, pain itself gives them their greatest moments! These are the heroic men, the great pain-bringers of humanity: those few and rare individuals who deserve the same consideration as pain does in general—and really, we shouldn’t deny them that! They are crucial forces for preserving and advancing the species, especially because they challenge complacent comfort and openly express their disdain for this kind of happiness.

248

319.

As Interpreters of our Experiences.—One form of honesty has always been lacking among founders of religions and their kin:—they have never made their experiences a matter of the intellectual conscience. "What did I really experience? What then took place in me and around me? Was my understanding clear enough? Was my will directly opposed to all deception of the senses, and courageous in its defence against fantastic notions?"—None of them ever asked these questions, nor to this day do any of the good religious people ask them. They have rather a thirst for things which are contrary to reason, and they don't want to have too much difficulty in satisfying this thirst,—so they experience "miracles" and "regenerations," and hear the voices of angels! But we who are different, who are thirsty for reason, want to look as carefully into our experiences, as in the case of a scientific experiment, hour by hour, day by day! We ourselves want to be our own experiments, and our own subjects of experiment.

As Interpreters of our Experiences.—One type of honesty has always been absent among the founders of religions and their followers: they have never made their experiences a matter of intellectual conscience. "What did I really experience? What happened within me and around me? Was my understanding clear enough? Was my will firmly against any deception of the senses, and brave in its defense against fantastical ideas?"—None of them have ever asked these questions, nor do any of the devout religious people today ask them. Instead, they have a desire for things that are contrary to reason, and they prefer not to face too much difficulty in quenching this desire—so they witness "miracles," "regenerations," and hear the voices of angels! But those of us who are different, who seek reason, want to examine our experiences as thoroughly as a scientific experiment, hour by hour, day by day! We want to be our own experiments and our own subjects of experimentation.

320.

On Meeting Again.—A: Do I quite understand you? You are in search of something? Where, in the midst of the present, actual world, is your niche and star? Where can you lay yourself in the sun, so that you also may have a surplus of well-being, that your existence may justify itself? Let everyone do that for himself—you seem to say, —and let him put talk about generalities, concern about others and society, out of his mind!—B: I want more; I am no seeker. I want to create my own sun for myself.

On Meeting Again.—A: Am I getting you right? You're looking for something? Where, in the middle of this real world, is your place and purpose? Where can you bask in the sun, so that you can experience your own happiness, that your life can have meaning? Let everyone take care of that for themselves—you seem to say—and forget about discussions on general issues, concern for others and society!—B: I want more; I’m not just searching. I want to create my own sun for myself.

249

321.

A New Precaution.—Let us no longer think so much about punishing, blaming, and improving! We shall seldom be able to alter an individual, and if we should succeed in doing so, something else may also succeed, perhaps unawares: we may have been altered by him! Let us rather see to it that our own influence on all that is to come outweighs and overweighs his influence! Let us not struggle in direct conflict!—all blaming, punishing, and desire to improve comes under this category. But let us elevate ourselves all the higher! Let us ever give to our pattern more shining colours! Let us obscure the other by our light! No! We do not mean to become darker ourselves on his account, like all that punish and are discontented! Let us rather go aside! Let us look away!

A New Precaution.—Let’s stop focusing so much on punishment, blame, and improvement! It’s rare that we can change someone, and even if we do manage to change them, it’s possible we might be changed by them too, without realizing it. Instead, let’s ensure that our own influence on everything that comes next is stronger than their influence! Let’s avoid direct conflict!—all blame, punishment, and the urge to improve fall into this category. Instead, let’s elevate ourselves even higher! Let’s keep adding more vibrant colors to our approach! Let’s shine our light so brightly that it dims their presence! No! We don’t want to become darker ourselves because of them, like everyone who punishes and feels discontent! Let’s step aside! Let’s look away!

322.

A Simile.—Those thinkers in whom all the stars move in cyclic orbits, are not the most profound. He who looks into himself, as into an immense universe, and carries Milky Ways in himself, knows also how irregular all Milky Ways are; they lead into the very chaos and labyrinth of existence.

A Simile.—Thinkers who see all the stars moving in predictable paths aren’t the deepest. The one who looks within themselves, as if peering into a vast universe, and carries galaxies inside, also understands how chaotic all those galaxies are; they guide us into the true chaos and maze of existence.

323.

Happiness in Destiny.—Destiny confers its greatest distinction upon us when it has made us fight 250for a time on the side of our adversaries. We are thereby predestined to a great victory.

Happiness in Destiny.—Destiny gives us its biggest distinction when it forces us to fight for a while on the side of our enemies. This makes us predestined for a great victory.

324.

In Media Vita.—No! Life has not deceived me! On the contrary, from year to year I find it richer, more desirable and more mysterious—from the day on which the great liberator broke my fetters, the thought that life may be an experiment of the thinker—and not a duty, not a fatality, not a deceit!—And knowledge itself may be for others something different; for example, a bed of ease, or the path to a bed of ease, or an entertainment, or a course of idling,—for me it is a world of dangers and victories, in which even the heroic sentiments have their arena and dancing-floor. "Life as a means to knowledge"—with this principle in one's heart, one can not only be brave, but can even live joyfully and laugh joyfully! And who could know how to laugh well and live well, who did not first understand the full meaning of war and victory!

In Media Vita.—No! Life hasn’t deceived me! On the contrary, every year I find it richer, more desirable, and more mysterious—from the day the great liberator broke my chains, the idea that life could be an experiment for the thinker—and not just a duty, not a fate, not a trick!—And knowledge may mean something different for others; for example, it could be a comfortable life, or the way to a comfortable life, or entertainment, or a way of passing time—for me it’s a world of dangers and victories, where even heroic feelings have their own stage and dance floor. "Life as a means to knowledge"—with this belief in your heart, you can not only be courageous, but you can also live joyfully and laugh joyfully! Who could know how to laugh well and live well without first understanding the full meaning of battle and victory!

325.

What Belongs to Greatness.—Who can attain to anything great if he does not feel the force and will in himself to inflict great pain? The ability to suffer is a small matter: in that line, weak women and even slaves often attain masterliness. But not to perish from internal distress and doubt when one inflicts great anguish and hears the cry of this anguish—that is great, that belongs to greatness.

What Belongs to Greatness.—Who can achieve anything significant if they don't feel the strength and determination within themselves to inflict great pain? The ability to endure suffering is minor: in that regard, vulnerable women and even slaves can often become masters. But to not be consumed by internal turmoil and uncertainty when inflicting great suffering and hearing the cries of that suffering—that is truly remarkable, that is part of greatness.

251

326.

Physicians of the Soul and Pain.—All preachers of morality, as also all theologians, have a bad habit in common: all of them try to persuade man that he is very ill, and that a severe, final, radical cure is necessary. And because mankind as a whole has for centuries listened too eagerly to those teachers, something of the superstition that the human race is in a very bad way has actually come over men: so that they are now far too ready to sigh; they find nothing more in life and make melancholy faces at each other, as if life were indeed very hard to endure. In truth, they are inordinately assured of their life and in love with it, and full of untold intrigues and subtleties for suppressing everything disagreeable and for extracting the thorn from pain and misfortune. It seems to me that people always speak with exaggeration about pain and misfortune, as if it were a matter of good behaviour to exaggerate here: on the other hand people are intentionally silent in regard to the number of expedients for alleviating pain; as for instance, the deadening of it, or feverish flurry of thought, or a peaceful position, or good and bad reminiscences, intentions, hopes,—also many kinds of pride and fellow-feeling which have almost the effect of anæsthetics: while in the greatest degree of pain fainting takes place of itself. We understand very well how to pour sweetness on our bitterness, especially on the bitterness of our soul; we find a remedy in our bravery and sublimity, as well as in the nobler delirium of submission 252and resignation. A loss scarcely remains a loss for an hour: in some way or other a gift from heaven has always fallen into our lap at the same moment—a new form of strength, for example: be it but a new opportunity for the exercise of strength! What have the preachers of morality not dreamt concerning the inner "misery" of evil men! What lies have they not told us about the misfortunes of impassioned men! Yes, lying is here the right word: they were only too well aware of the overflowing happiness of this kind of man, but they kept silent as death about it; because it was a refutation of their theory, according to which happiness only originates through the annihilation of the passions and the silencing of the will! And finally, as regards the recipe of all those physicians of the soul and their recommendation of a severe radical cure, we may be allowed to ask: Is our life really painful and burdensome enough for us to exchange it with advantage for a Stoical mode of life, and Stoical petrification? We do not feel sufficiently miserable to have to feel ill in the Stoical fashion!

Healers of the Soul and Pain.—All moral teachers and theologians share a common flawed approach: they try to convince people that they are deeply unwell and need a tough, final, and radical treatment. Because society has repeatedly paid too much attention to these teachings over centuries, a bit of superstition has taken hold—that humanity is in dire straits. As a result, people are now far too quick to lament; they see nothing but gloom in life and exchange sorrowful looks, as if living were truly hard to endure. In reality, they are excessively confident in their lives, in love with it, and full of countless strategies to mask anything unpleasant while seeking to remove the pain and misfortune thorns. It seems that folks always talk about pain and misfortune in exaggerated terms, almost as if it’s considered appropriate to do so; meanwhile, they intentionally ignore the many ways to ease pain, such as numbing it, distracting themselves with a whirlwind of thoughts, finding a peaceful position, or enjoying good and bad memories, intentions, and hopes—along with various forms of pride and empathy, which can act almost like anesthetics. In the depths of severe pain, people naturally faint. We know very well how to sweeten our bitterness, especially the pain in our souls; we find comfort in our courage and grandeur, as well as in the nobler insanity of surrender and acceptance. A loss hardly remains just that for more than an hour: somehow, a gift from fate always seems to appear at that moment—a new kind of strength, perhaps, even if it's merely a new chance to demonstrate strength! What haven't moral teachers imagined about the inner "misery" of wrongdoers? What lies have they spun about the misfortunes of passionate individuals! Yes, "lying" is the right word here: they were all too conscious of the overwhelming happiness that often accompanies such people, yet they kept utterly silent about it; it contradicted their theory that happiness can only emerge through the suppression of passions and the quieting of will! Lastly, regarding the prescriptions of these soul healers and their calls for a harsh, radical remedy, we can rightfully ask: Is our life truly so painful and burdensome that we should willingly trade it for a Stoic existence and emotional rigidity? We do not feel sufficiently miserable to endure the Stoic kind of suffering!

327.

Taking Things Seriously.—The intellect is with most people an awkward, obscure and creaking machine, which is difficult to set in motion: they call it "taking a thing seriously" when they work with this machine, and want to think well—oh, how burdensome must good thinking be to them! That delightful animal, man, seems to lose his good-humour whenever he thinks well; he becomes "serious"! And "where there is laughing and 253gaiety, thinking cannot be worth anything:"—so speaks the prejudice of this serious animal against all "Joyful Wisdom."—Well, then! Let us show that it is prejudice!

Taking Things Seriously.—For most people, the intellect is an clumsy, confusing, and creaky machine that's hard to get going. They refer to it as "taking a thing seriously" when they try to engage with it and think properly—oh, how heavy must the burden of good thinking be for them! That amazing creature, human beings, seems to lose their joy whenever they think deeply; they become "serious"! And "where there is laughter and joy, thinking can't be of any value:"—this is how this serious creature speaks out against all "Joyful Wisdom."—Well, then! Let's prove that it's just a prejudice!

328.

Doing Harm to Stupidity.—It is certain that the belief in the reprehensibility of egoism, preached with such stubbornness and conviction, has on the whole done harm to egoism (in favour of the herd-instinct, as I shall repeat a hundred times!), especially by depriving it of a good conscience, and bidding us seek in it the true source of all misfortune. "Thy selfishness is the bane of thy life"—so rang the preaching for millenniums: it did harm, as we have said, to selfishness, and deprived it of much spirit, much cheerfulness, much ingenuity, and much beauty; it stultified and deformed and poisoned selfishness!—Philosophical antiquity, on the other hand, taught that there was another principal source of evil: from Socrates downwards, the thinkers were never weary of preaching that "your thoughtlessness and stupidity, your unthinking way of living according to rule, and your subjection to the opinion of your neighbour, are the reasons why you so seldom attain to happiness,—we thinkers are, as thinkers, the happiest of mortals." Let us not decide here whether this preaching against stupidity was more sound than the preaching against selfishness; it is certain, however, that stupidity was thereby deprived of its good conscience:—these philosophers did harm to stupidity.

Doing Harm to Stupidity.—It's clear that the belief in the wrongness of selfishness, pushed with such stubbornness and conviction, has mostly harmed selfishness (in favor of the herd instinct, as I'll reiterate a hundred times!), especially by taking away its good conscience and urging us to see it as the root of all misfortune. "Your selfishness is the curse of your life"—that's how the preaching went for millennia: it harmed selfishness, as we mentioned, taking away much of its spirit, cheerfulness, creativity, and beauty; it stifled, distorted, and poisoned selfishness!—Philosophical antiquity, on the other hand, taught that there was another main source of evil: from Socrates onward, thinkers never tired of preaching that "your thoughtlessness and ignorance, your mindless adherence to rules, and your submission to the opinions of others, are why you so rarely find happiness—us thinkers are, as thinkers, the happiest people." Let's not decide here whether this critique of ignorance is more valid than the critique of selfishness; it's certain, however, that ignorance was thereby stripped of its good conscience:—these philosophers did harm to ignorance.

254

329.

Leisure and Idleness.—There is an Indian savagery, a savagery peculiar to the Indian blood, in the manner in which the Americans strive after gold: and the breathless hurry of their work—the characteristic vice of the new world—already begins to infect old Europe, and makes it savage also, spreading over it a strange lack of intellectuality. One is now ashamed of repose: even long reflection almost causes remorse of conscience. Thinking is done with a stop-watch, as dining is done with the eyes fixed on the financial newspaper; we live like men who are continually "afraid of letting opportunities slip." "Better do anything whatever, than nothing"—this principle also is a noose with which all culture and all higher taste may be strangled. And just as all form obviously disappears in this hurry of workers, so the sense for form itself, the ear and the eye for the melody of movement, also disappear. The proof of this is the clumsy perspicuity which is now everywhere demanded in all positions where a person would like to be sincere with his fellows, in intercourse with friends, women, relatives, children, teachers, pupils, leaders and princes,—one has no longer either time or energy for ceremonies, for roundabout courtesies, for any esprit in conversation, or for any otium whatever. For life in the hunt for gain continually compels a person to consume his intellect, even to exhaustion, in constant dissimulation, overreaching, or forestalling: the real virtue nowadays is to do something in a 255shorter time than another person. And so there are only rare hours of sincere intercourse permitted: in them, however, people are tired, and would not only like "to let themselves go," but to stretch their legs out wide in awkward style. The way people write their letters nowadays is quite in keeping with the age; their style and spirit will always be the true "sign of the times." If there be still enjoyment in society and in art, it is enjoyment such as over-worked slaves provide for themselves. Oh, this moderation in "joy" of our cultured and uncultured classes! Oh, this increasing suspiciousness of all enjoyment! Work is winning over more and more the good conscience to its side: the desire for enjoyment already calls itself "need of recreation," and even begins to be ashamed of itself. "One owes it to one's health," people say, when they are caught at a picnic. Indeed, it might soon go so far that one could not yield to the desire for the vita contemplativa (that is to say, excursions with thoughts and friends), without self-contempt and a bad conscience.—Well! Formerly it was the very reverse: it was "action" that suffered from a bad conscience. A man of good family concealed his work when need compelled him to labour. The slave laboured under the weight of the feeling that he did something contemptible:—the "doing" itself was something contemptible. "Only in otium and bellum is there nobility and honour:" so rang the voice of ancient prejudice!

Leisure and Idleness.—There’s a wildness unique to the Indian spirit in the way Americans pursue wealth: their relentless rush—this primary flaw of the new world—starts to seep into old Europe, making it savage too and creating a bizarre void of intellectual thought. People now feel embarrassed by rest; even deep contemplation triggers a pang of guilt. Thinking is timed like a race, just as dining is done while glancing at the financial news; we live as if we’re always "afraid of missing opportunities." "Better to do anything than nothing"—this idea is a trap that can stifle all culture and refined taste. As all structure clearly vanishes in this frenzy of laborers, so does the appreciation for form, the ear and eye for the rhythm of movement. It’s evident in the awkward clarity now expected in all interactions where someone seeks to be honest with others, whether with friends, women, family, children, teachers, students, leaders, or nobles. There’s no longer time or energy for rituals, for elaborate niceties, for any cleverness in conversation, or for any leisure at all. Life in the relentless chase for profit forces people to exhaust their minds in constant deceit, manipulation, or getting ahead: today’s virtue is getting things done faster than someone else. Thus, only rare moments of genuine interaction are allowed: in those moments, however, people are tired, wanting not just to "let loose," but to stretch out in clumsy ways. The way people write their letters today reflects the times; their style and attitude will always be the true "sign of the times." If there’s any enjoyment left in society and the arts, it’s the kind that overworked people create for themselves. Oh, this moderation in "joy" among our educated and uneducated! Oh, this growing skepticism towards all enjoyment! Work is increasingly gaining the approval of a clear conscience: the need for enjoyment now calls itself "need for recreation," and even starts to feel ashamed. "One has to do it for their health," people say when they’re caught at a picnic. Indeed, it might soon reach a point where one can’t indulge in the vita contemplativa (like outings with thoughts and friends) without feeling self-loathing and guilt.—Well! In the past, it was the opposite: “action” felt guilty. A person of good standing hid their labor when necessity forced them to work. The laborer carried the burden of feeling that what they did was shameful:—the "doing" itself was something to be scorned. "Only in otium and bellum is there nobility and honor:" such was the echo of ancient beliefs!

256

330.

Applause.—The thinker does not need applause nor the clapping of hands, provided he be sure of the clapping of his own hands: the latter, however, he cannot do without. Are there men who could also do without this, and in general without any kind of applause? I doubt it: and even as regards the wisest, Tacitus, who is no calumniator of the wise, says: quando etiam sapientibus gloriæ cupido novissima exuitur—that means with him: never.

Applause.—A thinker doesn’t need applause or clapping from others, as long as they can count on their own approval: the latter, however, is essential. Are there people who could also live without this, and in general without any kind of recognition? I doubt it; and even when it comes to the wisest, Tacitus, who doesn’t slander the wise, says: quando etiam sapientibus gloriæ cupido novissima exuitur—which for him means: never.

331.

Better Deaf than Deafened.—Formerly a person wanted to have a calling, but that no longer suffices to-day, for the market has become too large,—there has now to be bawling. The consequence is that even good throats outcry each other, and the best wares are offered for sale with hoarse voices; without market-place bawling and hoarseness there is now no longer any genius.—It is, sure enough, an evil age for the thinker: he has to learn to find his stillness betwixt two noises, and has to pretend to be deaf until he finally becomes so. As long as he has not learned this, he is in danger of perishing from impatience and headaches.

Better Deaf than Deafened.—In the past, a person wanted to have a calling, but that’s not enough anymore, because the market has gotten too big—now you have to be bawling. As a result, even good voices drown each other out, and the best products are marketed with hoarse voices; without shouting in the marketplace and all the hoarseness, there’s no longer any genius. It’s definitely a tough time for thinkers: they have to figure out how to find their calm between two noisy distractions and pretend to be deaf until they actually become so. As long as they haven’t figured this out, they risk suffering from impatience and headaches.

332.

The Evil Hour.—There has perhaps been an evil hour for every philosopher, in which he thought: What do I matter, if people should not believe my poor arguments!—And then some malicious bird has flown past him and twittered: "What do you matter? What do you matter?"

The Evil Hour.—Every philosopher probably has had that one moment when they wondered: What does it matter if people don’t believe my weak arguments?—Then, like a mocking bird, something has flown by and chirped: “What do you matter? What do you matter?”

257

333.

What does Knowing Mean?Non ridere, non lugere, neque detestari, sed intelligere! says Spinoza, so simply and sublimely, as is his wont. Nevertheless, what else is this intelligere ultimately, but just the form in which the three other things become perceptible to us all at once? A result of the diverging and opposite impulses of desiring to deride, lament and execrate? Before knowledge is possible each of these impulses must first have brought forward its one-sided view of the object or event. The struggle of these one-sided views occurs afterwards, and out of it there occasionally arises a compromise, a pacification, a recognition of rights on all three sides, a sort of justice and agreement: for in virtue of the justice and agreement all those impulses can maintain themselves in existence and retain their mutual rights. We, to whose consciousness only the closing reconciliation scenes and final settling of accounts of these long processes manifest themselves, think on that account that intelligere is something conciliating, just and good, something essentially antithetical to the impulses; whereas it is only a certain relation of the impulses to one another. For a very long time conscious thinking was regarded as thinking proper: it is now only that the truth dawns upon us that the greater part of our intellectual activity goes on unconsciously and unfelt by us; I believe, however, that the impulses which are here in mutual conflict understand right well how to make themselves felt by 258one another, and how to cause pain:—the violent, sudden exhaustion which overtakes all thinkers, may have its origin here (it is the exhaustion of the battle-field). Aye, perhaps in our struggling interior there is much concealed heroism, but certainly nothing divine, or eternally-reposing-in-itself, as Spinoza supposed. Conscious thinking, and especially that of the philosopher, is the weakest, and on that account also the relatively mildest and quietest mode of thinking: and thus it is precisely the philosopher who is most easily misled concerning the nature of knowledge.

What Does Knowing Mean?Don't laugh, don't grieve, and don't loathe, but understand! says Spinoza, so simply and profoundly, as is his style. Yet, what is this understanding ultimately, but just the way in which the three other reactions become perceivable to us all at once? A result of the conflicting and opposing desires to mock, mourn, and condemn? Before knowledge is possible, each of these desires must first present its own narrow perspective of the object or event. The clash of these narrow perspectives happens afterwards, and from it, sometimes a compromise, a calming, a recognition of rights on all sides emerges, a kind of justice and agreement: because, due to this justice and agreement, all those desires can continue to exist and maintain their mutual rights. We, whose awareness only sees the final reconciliation and settling of accounts of these lengthy processes, think that understanding is something reconciling, just, and good, something fundamentally opposed to those desires; when it's really just a certain relationship of the desires to one another. For a long time, conscious thinking was seen as true thinking: it is now that we realize that most of our intellectual activity occurs unconsciously and unrecognized by us; however, I believe that the conflicting desires here know very well how to make themselves felt by 258each other, and how to cause pain:—the intense, sudden exhaustion that grips all thinkers may originate here (it is the exhaustion of the battlefield). Yes, perhaps within our inner struggle, there is much hidden heroism, but certainly nothing divine or eternally peaceful within itself, as Spinoza assumed. Conscious thinking, especially that of the philosopher, is the weakest, and therefore also the relatively mildest and quietest mode of thinking: and thus it is precisely the philosopher who is most easily misled about the nature of knowledge.

334.

One must Learn to Love.—This is our experience in music: we must first learn in general to hear, to hear fully, and to distinguish a theme or a melody, we have to isolate and limit it as a life by itself; then we need to exercise effort and good-will in order to endure it in spite of its strangeness, we need patience towards its aspect and expression, and indulgence towards what is odd in it:—in the end there comes a moment when we are accustomed to it, when we expect it, when it dawns upon us that we should miss it if it were lacking; and then it goes on to exercise its spell and charm more and more, and does not cease until we have become its humble and enraptured lovers, who want it, and want it again, and ask for nothing better from the world.—It is thus with us, however, not only in music: it is precisely thus that we have learned to love all things that we now love. We are always finally recompensed for our good-will, our patience, 259reasonableness and gentleness towards what is unfamiliar, by the unfamiliar slowly throwing off its veil and presenting itself to us as a new, ineffable beauty:—that is its thanks for our hospitality. He also who loves himself must have learned it in this way: there is no other way. Love also has to be learned.

One must learn to love.—This is our experience in music: we must first learn to hear in general, to truly listen, and to identify a theme or a melody. We need to isolate it and treat it as a life of its own; then we have to put in the effort and good-will to endure it, despite its unfamiliarity. We need patience with its characteristics and expression, and indulgence towards what seems strange about it:—eventually, there comes a point when we become accustomed to it, when we start to expect it, and it occurs to us that we would miss it if it were gone; and then it continues to cast its spell and charm more and more, not stopping until we become its humble and captivated admirers, who desire it again and again, asking for nothing more from the world.—It is the same for us beyond just music: this is exactly how we have learned to love all the things we now cherish. We are always ultimately rewarded for our goodwill, patience, reasonableness, and kindness towards the unknown, as the unfamiliar gradually sheds its veil and reveals itself to us as a new, indescribable beauty:—that is its thank you for our hospitality. Anyone who loves themselves must have learned it this way: there is no other way. Love also has to be learned.

335.

Cheers for Physics!—How many men are there who know how to observe? And among the few who do know,—how many observe themselves? "Everyone is furthest from himself"—all the "triers of the reins" know that to their discomfort; and the saying, "Know thyself," in the mouth of a God and spoken to man, is almost a mockery. But that the case of self-observation is so desperate, is attested best of all by the manner in which almost everybody talks of the nature of a moral action, that prompt, willing, convinced, loquacious manner, with its look, its smile, and its pleasing eagerness! Everyone seems inclined to say to you: "Why, my dear Sir, that is precisely my affair! You address yourself with your question to him who is authorised to answer, for I happen to be wiser with regard to this matter than in anything else. Therefore, when a man decides that 'this is right,' when he accordingly concludes that 'it must therefore be done,' and thereupon does what he has thus recognised as right and designated as necessary—then the nature of his action is moral!" But, my friend, you are talking to me about three actions instead of one: your deciding, for instance, that "this is right," is also an action,—could one not 260judge either morally or immorally? Why do you regard this, and just this, as right?—"Because my conscience tells me so; conscience never speaks immorally, indeed it determines in the first place what shall be moral!"—But why do you listen to the voice of your conscience? And in how far are you justified in regarding such a judgment as true and infallible? This belief—is there no further conscience for it? Do you know nothing of an intellectual conscience? A conscience behind your "conscience"? Your decision, "this is right," has a previous history in your impulses, your likes and dislikes, your experiences and non-experiences; "how has it originated?" you must ask, and afterwards the further question: "what really impels me to give ear to it?" You can listen to its command like a brave soldier who hears the command of his officer. Or like a woman who loves him who commands. Or like a flatterer and coward, afraid of the commander. Or like a blockhead who follows because he has nothing to say to the contrary. In short, you can give ear to your conscience in a hundred different ways. But that you hear this or that judgment as the voice of conscience, consequently, that you feel a thing to be right—may have its cause in the fact that you have never reflected about yourself, and have blindly accepted from your childhood what has been designated to you as right: or in the fact that hitherto bread and honours have fallen to your share with that which you call your duty,—it is "right" to you, because it seems to be your "condition of existence" (that you, however, have a right to existence appears to 261you as irrefutable!). The persistency of your moral judgment might still be just a proof of personal wretchedness or impersonality; your "moral force" might have its source in your obstinacy—or in your incapacity to perceive new ideals! And to be brief: if you had thought more acutely, observed more accurately, and had learned more, you would no longer under all circumstances call this and that your "duty" and your "conscience": the knowledge how moral judgments have in general always originated, would make you tired of these pathetic words,—as you have already grown tired of other pathetic words, for instance "sin," "salvation," and "redemption."—And now, my friend, do not talk to me about the categorical imperative! That word tickles my ear, and I must laugh in spite of your presence and your seriousness. In this connection I recollect old Kant, who, as a punishment for having gained possession surreptitiously of the "thing in itself"—also a very ludicrous affair!—was imposed upon by the categorical imperative, and with that in his heart strayed back again to "God," the "soul," "freedom," and "immortality," like a fox which strays back into its cage: and it had been his strength and shrewdness which had broken open this cage!—What? You admire the categorical imperative in you? This "persistency" of your so-called moral judgment? This absoluteness of the feeling that "as I think on this matter, so must everyone think"? Admire rather your selfishness therein! And the blindness, paltriness, and modesty of your selfishness! For it is selfishness in a person to regard his judgment as universal law, and a blind, paltry 262and modest selfishness besides, because it betrays that you have not yet discovered yourself, that you have not yet created for yourself any individual, quite individual ideal:—for this could never be the ideal of another, to say nothing of all, of every one!——He who still thinks that "each would have to act in this manner in this case," has not yet advanced half a dozen paces in self-knowledge: otherwise he would know that there neither are nor can be similar actions,—that every action that has been done, has been done in an entirely unique and inimitable manner, and that it will be the same with regard to all future actions; that all precepts of conduct (and even the most esoteric and subtle precepts of all moralities up to the present), apply only to the coarse exterior,—that by means of them, indeed, a semblance of equality can be attained, but only a semblance,—that in outlook or retrospect, every action is and remains an impenetrable affair,—that our opinions of "good," "noble" and "great" can never be demonstrated by our actions, because no action is cognisable,—that our opinions, estimates, and tables of values are certainly among the most powerful levers in the mechanism of our actions, that in every single case, nevertheless, the law of their mechanism is untraceable. Let us confine ourselves, therefore, to the purification of our opinions and appreciations, and to the construction of new tables of value of our own:—we will, however, brood no longer over the "moral worth of our actions"! Yes, my friends! As regards the whole moral twaddle of people about one another, it is time to be disgusted with it! To sit in judgment 263morally ought to be opposed to our taste! Let us leave this nonsense and this bad taste to those who have nothing else to do, save to drag the past a little distance further through time, and who are never themselves the present,—consequently to the many, to the majority! We, however, would seek to become what we are,—the new, the unique, the incomparable, making laws for ourselves and creating ourselves! And for this purpose we must become the best students and discoverers of all the laws and necessities in the world. We must be physicists in order to be creators in that sense,—whereas hitherto all appreciations and ideals have been based on ignorance of physics, or in contradiction to it. And therefore, three cheers for physics! And still louder cheers for that which impels us to it—our honesty.

Cheers for Physics!—How many people really know how to observe? And among the few who do, how many actually observe themselves? "Everyone is furthest from himself"—all the "triers of the reins" understand that all too well. The phrase "Know thyself," coming from a God and directed at humanity, feels nearly like a mockery. The most convincing evidence of how desperate self-observation is, is how almost everyone discusses the nature of moral actions, with that eager, confident, chatty tone, complete with their expressions and smiles! People seem eager to say to you: "Why, my dear Sir, that's exactly my business! You’re asking the right person because I'm definitely wiser on this subject than on anything else. So when someone decides that 'this is right,’ and thus concludes that 'it must therefore be done,' and then actually does what they recognize as right and necessary—then that action is moral!” But, my friend, you're talking to me about three different actions instead of one: your decision that "this is right" is also an action—can’t it be judged morally or immorally? Why do you see this particular decision as right?—"Because my conscience tells me so; conscience never speaks immorally; it determines what should be moral!"—But why do you listen to your conscience? And how can you be sure that such a judgment is true and infallible? This belief—isn't there another conscience for it? Do you know nothing of an intellectual conscience? A conscience behind your "conscience"? Your decision that "this is right" has a backstory in your impulses, your likes and dislikes, your experiences; you must ask, "how did it come about?" and then the further question: "what really drives me to listen to it?" You can heed its command like a brave soldier who hears his officer's orders. Or like a woman who loves a commanding man. Or like a flatterer or coward, afraid of authority. Or like a fool who follows because he has nothing to argue against it. In other words, you can listen to your conscience in many different ways. But that you consider this or that judgment as the voice of conscience, and that you feel something is right—might stem from the fact that you have never reflected on yourself and have unthinkingly accepted what you’ve been told is right since childhood: or it may come from the fact that up until now, your livelihood and accolades have depended on your so-called duty—it feels "right" to you because it seems like your "condition of existence" (even though your right to exist seems undeniable to you!). The consistency of your moral judgment could just be evidence of personal misery or a lack of personality; your so-called "moral force" might come from your stubbornness—or from your inability to recognize new ideals! To be brief: if you had thought more deeply, observed more keenly, and learned more, you wouldn't automatically label this and that as your "duty" and your "conscience": understanding how moral judgments have always come about would make you weary of these sentimental words—as you likely have already grown tired of other sentimental terms like "sin," "salvation," and "redemption."—And now, my friend, please don’t talk to me about the categorical imperative! That term tickles my ears, and I can’t help but laugh, even in your serious presence. In this context, I remember old Kant, who, as a punishment for having unfairly acquired the “thing in itself”—a pretty ridiculous situation!—was burdened with the categorical imperative, and with that in his heart wandered back to "God," the "soul," "freedom," and "immortality," like a fox returning to its cage: it had been his strength and cleverness that had broken this cage!—What? You admire the categorical imperative within you? This "consistency" of your supposed moral judgment? This certainty that "as I think about this issue, so must everyone else"? Instead, admire your selfishness in that regard! And the blindness, pettiness, and humility of your selfishness! It’s selfish for a person to view his judgment as universal law, and even more, a blind, petty, and humble selfishness, because it shows you haven't discovered who you really are, that you haven't formed any individual, unique ideal for yourself—this could never be someone else's ideal, let alone for everyone!——Anyone who still thinks "everyone should act like this in this case" hasn’t made it very far in self-awareness: otherwise, they'd know that there are no similar actions, nor can there be—the uniqueness and originality of every action that has ever occurred means every future action will be the same; all guidelines for behavior (even the most obscure and intricate moral principles so far) apply only to the external surface—while they can certainly create an appearance of equality, it’s truly just an appearance—because in looking back or forward, every action is and remains a mystery—our concepts of "good," "noble," and "great" cannot be proven by our actions because no action is recognizable—that our opinions, assessments, and value systems are some of the most powerful influences in our actions' mechanics, but in every case, the workings of that mechanism are untraceable. Let's focus instead on refining our opinions and judgments, and on the creation of new value systems of our own:—we will no longer dwell on the "moral worth of our actions"! Yes, my friends! Regarding all the moral nonsense people say about each other, it’s time to be disgusted with it! Feeling morally superior shouldn’t be our thing! Let’s leave this foolishness and bad taste to those who have nothing else to do but drag the past a little further into the future, who are never really present—the mass, the majority! We, however, want to become what we are,—the new, the unique, the incomparable, making our own laws and creating ourselves! And for this, we must become the best students and discoverers of all the laws and necessities in the world. We need to be physicists if we want to be creators in that sense—because until now, all evaluations and ideals have been grounded in ignorance about physics, or in conflict with it. So, three cheers for physics! And even louder cheers for what drives us towards it—our honesty.

336.

Avarice of Nature.—Why has nature been so niggardly towards humanity that she has not let human beings shine, this man more and that man less, according to their inner abundance of light? Why have not great men such a fine visibility in their rising and setting as the sun? How much less equivocal would life among men then be!

Avarice of Nature.—Why has nature been so greedy towards humanity that she hasn't allowed people to shine, some more than others, based on their inner light? Why don't great individuals have such brilliant visibility when they rise and set like the sun? Life among people would be so much clearer then!

337.

Future "Humanity."—When I look at this age with the eye of a distant future, I find nothing so remarkable in the man of the present day as his peculiar virtue and sickness called "the historical sense." It is a tendency to something quite new 264and foreign in history: if this embryo were given several centuries and more, there might finally evolve out of it a marvellous plant, with a smell equally marvellous, on account of which our old earth might be more pleasant to live in than it has been hitherto. We moderns are just beginning to form the chain of a very powerful, future sentiment, link by link,—we hardly know what we are doing. It almost seems to us as if it were not the question of a new sentiment, but of the decline of all old sentiments:—the historical sense is still something so poor and cold, and many are attacked by it as by a frost, and are made poorer and colder by it. To others it appears as the indication of stealthily approaching age, and our planet is regarded by them as a melancholy invalid, who, in order to forget his present condition, writes the history of his youth. In fact, this is one aspect of the new sentiment. He who knows how to regard the history of man in its entirety as his own history, feels in the immense generalisation all the grief of the invalid who thinks of health, of the old man who thinks of the dream of his youth, of the lover who is robbed of his beloved, of the martyr whose ideal is destroyed, of the hero on the evening of the indecisive battle which has brought him wounds and the loss of a friend. But to bear this immense sum of grief of all kinds, to be able to bear it, and yet still be the hero who at the commencement of a second day of battle greets the dawn and his happiness, as one who has an horizon of centuries before and behind him, as the heir of all nobility, of all 265past intellect, and the obligatory heir (as the noblest) of all the old nobles; while at the same time the first of a new nobility, the equal of which has never been seen nor even dreamt of: to take all this upon his soul, the oldest, the newest, the losses, hopes, conquests, and victories of mankind: to have all this at last in one soul, and to comprise it in one feeling:—this would necessarily furnish a happiness which man has not hitherto known,—a God's happiness, full of power and love, full of tears and laughter, a happiness which, like the sun in the evening, continually gives of its inexhaustible riches and empties into the sea,—and like the sun, too, feels itself richest when even the poorest fisherman rows with golden oars! This divine feeling might then be called—humanity!

Future "Humanity."—When I look at this age from the perspective of a distant future, I find nothing as notable in today's man as his unique virtue and affliction known as "the historical sense." It's a tendency towards something entirely new and unfamiliar in history: if this embryo were given several centuries or more, it could eventually blossom into a remarkable entity, with a scent so extraordinary that it might make our old planet a more enjoyable place to live than it has been up until now. We moderns are just starting to build a powerful, future sentiment, link by link—we barely understand what we're doing. It sometimes feels like it's not about creating a new sentiment, but rather the decline of all old sentiments:—the historical sense is still quite limited and cold, and many are struck by it as though by frost, leaving them poorer and colder. To others, it seems to signal the slow approach of old age, and they see our planet as a sad invalid who, to escape his current condition, writes about the history of his youth. In fact, this is one perspective of the new sentiment. Those who can view the history of humanity in its entirety as their own history feel in this grand generalization all the sorrow of the invalid longing for health, the elderly remembering the dreams of their youth, the lover grieving for their lost beloved, the martyr whose ideal has been shattered, and the hero on the eve of a decisive battle, bearing wounds and the loss of a friend. But to carry this immense burden of all kinds of grief, to be able to endure it, and yet still be the hero who, at the start of a new day of battle, welcomes the dawn and his joy, as one who has an expanse of centuries before and behind him, as the heir to all nobility, all past intellect, and the obligatory heir (as the most noble) of all the old nobility; while simultaneously being the first of a new nobility, the likes of which has never been seen or even imagined: to take all this upon one's soul—the oldest, the newest, the losses, hopes, conquests, and victories of humanity: to finally hold all this in one soul and encompass it in one feeling:—this would inevitably bring a happiness that humanity has never known—a divine happiness, rich with power and love, full of tears and laughter, a happiness that, like the sun at dusk, continually shares its inexhaustible wealth and spills into the sea—and like the sun, feels most abundant when even the poorest fisherman rows with golden oars! This divine feeling might then be called—humanity!

338.

The Will to Suffering and the Compassionate.—Is it to your advantage to be above all compassionate? And is it to the advantage of the sufferers when you are so? But let us leave the first question for a moment without an answer.—That from which we suffer most profoundly and personally is almost incomprehensible and inaccessible to every one else: in this matter we are hidden from our neighbour even when he eats at the same table with us. Everywhere, however, where we are noticed as sufferers, our suffering is interpreted in a shallow way; it belongs to the nature of the emotion of pity to divest unfamiliar suffering of its properly personal character:—our "benefactors" lower our value and volition more than our enemies. In 266most benefits which are conferred on the unfortunate there is something shocking in the intellectual levity with which the compassionate person plays the rôle of fate: he knows nothing of all the inner consequences and complications which are called misfortune for me or for you! The entire economy of my soul and its adjustment by "misfortune," the uprising of new sources and needs, the closing up of old wounds, the repudiation of whole periods of the past—none of these things which may be connected with misfortune preoccupy the dear sympathiser. He wishes to succour, and does not reflect that there is a personal necessity for misfortune; that terror, want, impoverishment, midnight watches, adventures, hazards and mistakes are as necessary to me and to you as their opposites, yea, that, to speak mystically, the path to one's own heaven always leads through the voluptuousness of one's own hell. No, he knows nothing thereof. The "religion of compassion" (or "the heart") bids him help, and he thinks he has helped best when he has helped most speedily! If you adherents of this religion actually have the same sentiments towards yourselves which you have towards your fellows, if you are unwilling to endure your own suffering even for an hour, and continually forestall all possible misfortune, if you regard suffering and pain generally as evil, as detestable, as deserving of annihilation, and as blots on existence, well, you have then, besides your religion of compassion, yet another religion in your heart (and this is perhaps the mother of the former)—the religion of smug ease. Ah, how little you know of the happiness of 267man, you comfortable and good-natured ones!—for happiness and misfortune are brother and sister, and twins, who grow tall together, or, as with you, remain small together! But now let us return to the first question.—How is it at all possible for a person to keep to his path! Some cry or other is continually calling one aside: our eye then rarely lights on anything without it becoming necessary for us to leave for a moment our own affairs and rush to give assistance. I know there are hundreds of respectable and laudable methods of making me stray from my course, and in truth the most "moral" of methods! Indeed, the opinion of the present-day preachers of the morality of compassion goes so far as to imply that just this, and this alone is moral:—to stray from our course to that extent and to run to the assistance of our neighbour. I am equally certain that I need only give myself over to the sight of one case of actual distress, and I, too, am lost! And if a suffering friend said to me, "See, I shall soon die, only promise to die with me"—I might promise it, just as—to select for once bad examples for good reasons—the sight of a small, mountain people struggling for freedom, would bring me to the point of offering them my hand and my life. Indeed, there is even a secret seduction in all this awakening of compassion, and calling for help: our "own way" is a thing too hard and insistent, and too far removed from the love and gratitude of others,—we escape from it and from our most personal conscience, not at all unwillingly, and, seeking security in the conscience 268of others, we take refuge in the lovely temple of the "religion of pity." As soon now as any war breaks out, there always breaks out at the same time a certain secret delight precisely in the noblest class of the people: they rush with rapture to meet the new danger of death, because they believe that in the sacrifice for their country they have finally that long-sought-for permission—the permission to shirk their aim:—war is for them a detour to suicide, a detour, however, with a good conscience. And although silent here about some things, I will not, however, be silent about my morality, which says to me: Live in concealment in order that thou mayest live to thyself. Live ignorant of that which seems to thy age to be most important! Put at least the skin of three centuries betwixt thyself and the present day! And the clamour of the present day, the noise of wars and revolutions, ought to be a murmur to thee! Thou wilt also want to help, but only those whose distress thou entirely understandest, because they have one sorrow and one hope in common with thee—thy friends: and only in the way that thou helpest thyself:—I want to make them more courageous, more enduring, more simple, more joyful! I want to teach them that which at present so few understand, and the preachers of fellowship in sorrow least of all:—namely, fellowship in joy!

The Will to Suffering and the Compassionate.—Is it truly beneficial for you to be primarily compassionate? And does your compassion really help those who are suffering? But let's put the first question on hold for now. What we suffer most deeply and personally is almost impossible for anyone else to grasp or access: we are hidden from our neighbors even when we’re sharing a meal. However, wherever we are recognized as sufferers, our pain is often viewed superficially; pity tends to strip unfamiliar suffering of its deeply personal nature:—our "helpers" often diminish our worth and will more than our enemies do. The majority of the support provided to those in distress carries a certain shocking lightness, as the compassionate individual takes on the role of fate: they are unaware of all the inner consequences and complexities that misfortune signifies for me or you! The entire economy of my soul and its adjustments due to "misfortune," the emergence of new sources and needs, the healing of old wounds, the rejection of entire periods of the past—none of these aspects of misfortune occupy the well-meaning supporter. They want to help but fail to recognize that misfortune might hold a personal necessity; that fear, need, hardship, sleepless nights, adventures, risks, and mistakes are just as essential to me and to you as their opposites. Indeed, to put it more mystically, the journey to one's own paradise often leads through the pleasures of one's own hell. No, they are blissfully ignorant of this. The "religion of compassion" (or "the heart") compels them to assist, and they believe they've done the best job when they help the quickest! If you followers of this religion genuinely feel the same way about yourselves that you do about others—if you can't tolerate your own suffering for even an hour and constantly try to sidestep any possible misfortune, if you view suffering and pain as generally evil, loathsome, worthy of eradication, and blemishes on existence, then you have another religion in your heart alongside your compassion—or perhaps it is the source of it—the religion of comfort. Ah, how little you understand the happiness of humanity, you comfortable and kind-hearted folks!—for happiness and misfortune are siblings, twins who grow tall together, or, like you, stay small together! But let's return to the first question.—How can someone truly stay on their path? A cry or plea is constantly beckoning us to divert our attention: our eyes rarely fall upon anything without it becoming necessary for us to momentarily put aside our own matters and rush to assist. I know there are countless respectable and praiseworthy ways to lead me off my path, and indeed, many of the most "moral" ones! The prevailing attitude among today’s advocates of the morality of compassion even suggests that the only true morality involves deviating from our course to the extent of rushing to aid our neighbors. I'm equally certain that I need only expose myself to one instance of genuine distress, and I'll be lost too! If a suffering friend said to me, "Look, I'm going to die soon; just promise to die with me"—I might agree, just as, to pick a particularly bad example for good reasons, witnessing a small mountain community fighting for their freedom could push me to offer them my hand and my life. In fact, there's even a hidden allure in this sudden surge of compassion and calls for help: our "own path" feels too arduous and insistent, too far from the love and gratitude of others—we escape it and our most personal conscience, not entirely unwillingly, and seeking refuge in the conscience of others, we take solace in the beautiful temple of the "religion of pity." Whenever a war breaks out, it often brings a certain secret delight among the noblest segments of society: they eagerly confront the new peril of death because they believe that in sacrificing for their country, they finally have the long-sought permission—the permission to avoid their goal:—war becomes a detour to self-destruction, but a detour taken with a clear conscience. And while I may remain silent about some things here, I will certainly not remain silent about my morality, which tells me: Live quietly so that you can truly live for yourself. Live unaware of what seems to be most significant in your time! Place at least the skin of three centuries between yourself and the present day! And the clamor of the present moment, the noise of wars and revolutions, should be just a murmur to you! You will also want to help, but only those whose suffering you fully understand, because they share one sorrow and one hope with you—your friends: and only in the way that you help yourself:—I want to make them braver, more resilient, simpler, and happier! I want to teach them what so few grasp today, least of all the preachers of shared sorrow:—namely, shared joy!

339.

Vita femina.—To see the ultimate beauties in a work—all knowledge and good-will is not enough; 269it requires the rarest, good chance for the veil of clouds to move for once from the summits, and for the sun to shine on them. We must not only stand at precisely the right place to see this, our very soul itself must have pulled away the veil from its heights, and must be in need of an external expression and simile, so as to have a support and remain master of itself. All these, however, are so rarely united at the same time that I am inclined to believe that the highest summit of all that is good, be it work, deed, man, or nature, has hitherto remained for most people, and even for the best, as something concealed and shrouded:—that, however, which unveils itself to us, unveils itself to us but once. The Greeks indeed prayed: "Twice and thrice, everything beautiful!" Ah, they had their good reason to call on the Gods, for ungodly actuality does not furnish us with the beautiful at all, or only does so once! I mean to say that the world is overfull of beautiful things, but it is nevertheless poor, very poor, in beautiful moments, and in the unveiling of those beautiful things. But perhaps this is the greatest charm of life: it puts a gold-embroidered veil of lovely potentialities over itself, promising, resisting, modest, mocking, sympathetic, seductive. Yes, life is a woman!

Life as a Woman.—To truly appreciate the ultimate beauties in a work—just having knowledge and goodwill isn’t enough; 269 it takes the rarest good luck for the clouds to part so that the sun can shine down. We not only have to be in the right place to witness this; our very souls must also lift the veil from their heights, needing an external expression or analogy to anchor them and maintain their control. However, these elements are so rarely aligned that I’m inclined to believe that the highest pinnacle of all that is good, whether in work, actions, people, or nature, remains hidden from most people, and even from the best among us:—that which reveals itself to us, reveals itself to us but once. The Greeks indeed prayed: "Twice and thrice, everything beautiful!" Ah, they had a good reason to call upon the Gods, for the harshness of reality doesn’t provide the beautiful at all, or only does so once! I mean to say that the world is overflowing with beautiful things, but it is still very much lacking in beautiful moments, and in the revelation of those beautiful things. But perhaps that is the greatest charm of life: it drapes a gold-embroidered veil of lovely potential over itself, offering promise, resistance, modesty, mockery, sympathy, and seduction. Yes, life is a woman!

340.

The Dying Socrates.—I admire the courage and wisdom of Socrates in all that he did, said—and did not say. This mocking and amorous demon and rat-catcher of Athens, who made the most insolent youths tremble and sob was not only the 270wisest babbler that has ever lived, but was just as great in his silence. I would that he had also been silent in the last moment of his life,—perhaps he might then have belonged to a still higher order of intellects. Whether it was death, or the poison, or piety, or wickedness—something or other loosened his tongue at that moment, and he said: "O Crito, I owe a cock to Asclepios." For him who has ears, this ludicrous and terrible "last word" implies: "O Crito, life is a long sickness!" Is it possible! A man like him, who had lived cheerfully and to all appearance as a soldier,—was a pessimist! He had merely put on a good demeanour towards life, and had all along concealed his ultimate judgment, his profoundest sentiment! Socrates, Socrates had suffered from life! And he also took his revenge for it—with that veiled, fearful, pious, and blasphemous phrase! Had even a Socrates to revenge himself? Was there a grain too little of magnanimity in his superabundant virtue? Ah, my friends! We must surpass even the Greeks!

The Dying Socrates.—I admire the courage and wisdom of Socrates in everything he did and said—and what he didn’t say as well. This mocking, romantic figure and rat-catcher of Athens made the most arrogant young men tremble and cry. He wasn’t just the wisest talker who ever lived, but he was equally great in his silence. I wish he had also stayed silent in his final moments—maybe then he would have reached an even higher level of intellect. Whether it was death, the poison, his sense of duty, or wickedness—something made him speak at that moment, and he said: "O Crito, I owe a cock to Asclepios." For anyone who can hear, this absurd and terrible "last word" means: "O Crito, life is a long sickness!" Is it possible? A man like him, who seemed to live happily and act as a soldier—is he a pessimist? He had just put on a good face toward life and had hidden his true judgment, his deepest feelings! Socrates, Socrates had suffered from life! And he got his revenge for it—with that veiled, fearful, pious, and blasphemous phrase! Did even Socrates need to get revenge? Was there a speck too little of nobility in his overflowing virtue? Ah, my friends! We must surpass even the Greeks!

341.

The Heaviest Burden.—What if a demon crept after thee into thy loneliest loneliness some day or night, and said to thee: "This life, as thou livest it at present, and hast lived it, thou must live it once more, and also innumerable times; and there will be nothing new in it, but every pain and every joy and every thought and every sigh, and all the unspeakably small and great in thy life must come to thee again, and all in the same series and sequence—and similarly 271this spider and this moonlight among the trees, and similarly this moment, and I myself. The eternal sand-glass of existence will ever be turned once more, and thou with it, thou speck of dust!"—Wouldst thou not throw thyself down and gnash thy teeth, and curse the demon that so spake? Or hast thou once experienced a tremendous moment in which thou wouldst answer him: "Thou art a God, and never did I hear aught more divine!" If that thought acquired power over thee, as thou art, it would transform thee, and perhaps crush thee; the question with regard to all and everything: "Dost thou want this once more, and also for innumerable times?" would lie as the heaviest burden upon thy activity! Or, how wouldst thou have to become favourably inclined to thyself and to life, so as to long for nothing more ardently than for this last eternal sanctioning and sealing?—

The Heaviest Burden.—What if a demon followed you into your most isolated moment one day or night and said to you: "This life, as you’re living it now and have lived it, you must live it again, over and over; and nothing will change. Every pain, every joy, every thought, every sigh, and all the unutterably small and great moments of your life will come back to you, in the same order and sequence—and so will this spider, this moonlight among the trees, and this moment, and I myself. The eternal hourglass of existence will always be turned over again, and you along with it, you tiny speck of dust!"—Wouldn’t you want to throw yourself down, clench your teeth, and curse the demon that said such things? Or have you ever had a profound moment when you would answer him: "You are a God, and I’ve never heard anything more divine!" If that thought took hold of you, just as you are, it would change you, and maybe crush you; the question regarding everything would be: "Do you want this again, and again for countless times?"—that would be the heaviest burden on your actions! Or, how would you have to change your view of yourself and life to long for nothing more passionately than for this final eternal approval and sealing?—

342.

Incipit Tragœdia.—When Zarathustra was thirty years old, he left his home and the Lake of Urmi, and went into the mountains. There he enjoyed his spirit and his solitude, and for ten years did not weary of it. But at last his heart changed,—and rising one morning with the rosy dawn, he went before the sun and spake thus unto it: "Thou great star! What would be thy happiness if thou hadst not those for whom thou shinest! For ten years hast thou climbed hither unto my cave: thou wouldst have wearied of thy light and of the journey, had it not been for me, mine eagle, and my serpent. But we awaited thee every morning, took 272from thee thine overflow, and blessed thee for it. Lo! I am weary of my wisdom, like the bee that hath gathered too much honey; I need hands outstretched to take it. I would fain bestow and distribute, until the wise have once more become joyous in their folly, and the poor happy in their riches. Therefore must I descend into the deep, as thou doest in the evening, when thou goest behind the sea and givest light also to the nether-world, thou most rich star! Like thee must I go down, as men say, to whom I shall descend. Bless me then, thou tranquil eye, that canst behold even the greatest happiness without envy! Bless the cup that is about to overflow, that the water may flow golden out of it, and carry everywhere the reflection of thy bliss! Lo! This cup is again going to empty itself, and Zarathustra is again going to be a man."—Thus began Zarathustra's down-going.

Incipit Tragœdia.—When Zarathustra turned thirty, he left his home by the Lake of Urmi and went into the mountains. There he relished his spirit and solitude, and for ten years, he never grew tired of it. But eventually, his heart shifted—and one morning, rising with the rosy dawn, he went before the sun and spoke to it: "You great star! What would bring you joy if you didn't have those for whom you shine! For ten years, you've climbed to my cave: you would have grown tired of your light and the journey if it weren't for me, my eagle, and my serpent. But we waited for you every morning, took from you your abundance, and blessed you for it. Look! I am weary of my wisdom, like a bee that has gathered too much honey; I need hands outstretched to take it. I want to give and share, until the wise become joyful in their folly again, and the poor find happiness in their riches. Therefore, I must descend into the depths, like you do in the evening when you disappear behind the sea and also light up the underworld, you most generous star! Like you, I must go down, as people say, to whom I will descend. So bless me, you calm eye, that can see even the greatest happiness without envy! Bless the cup that is about to overflow, so that the water may flow out golden and carry the reflection of your joy everywhere! Look! This cup is about to empty again, and Zarathustra is going to be a man once more."—Thus began Zarathustra's descent.

273

BOOK FIFTH
 
WE FEARLESS ONES

"Carcasse, tu trembles? Tu
tremblerais bien davantage, si
tu savais, où je te mène."—
Turenne.
275

343.

What our Cheerfulness Signifies.—The most important of more recent events—that "God is dead," that the belief in the Christian God has become unworthy of belief—already begins to cast its first shadows over Europe. To the few at least whose eye, whose suspecting glance, is strong enough and subtle enough for this drama, some sun seems to have set, some old, profound confidence seems to have changed into doubt: our old world must seem to them daily more darksome, distrustful, strange and "old." In the main, however, one may say that the event itself is far too great, too remote, too much beyond most people's power of apprehension, for one to suppose that so much as the report of it could have reached them; not to speak of many who already knew what had really taken place, and what must all collapse now that this belief had been undermined,—because so much was built upon it, so much rested on it, and had become one with it: for example, our entire European morality. This lengthy, vast and uninterrupted process of crumbling, destruction, ruin and overthrow which is now imminent: who has realised it sufficiently to-day to have to stand up as the teacher and herald of such a tremendous logic of terror, as the prophet of a period of gloom and eclipse, the like of which has 276probably never taken place on earth before?... Even we, the born riddle-readers, who wait as it were on the mountains posted 'twixt to-day and to-morrow, and engirt by their contradiction, we, the firstlings and premature children of the coming century, into whose sight especially the shadows which must forthwith envelop Europe should already have come—how is it that even we, without genuine sympathy for this period of gloom, contemplate its advent without any personal solicitude or fear? Are we still, perhaps, too much under the immediate effects of the event—and are these effects, especially as regards ourselves, perhaps the reverse of what was to be expected—not at all sad and depressing, but rather like a new and indescribable variety of light, happiness, relief, enlivenment, encouragement, and dawning day?... In fact, we philosophers and "free spirits" feel ourselves irradiated as by a new dawn by the report that the "old God is dead"; our hearts overflow with gratitude, astonishment, presentiment and expectation. At last the horizon seems open once more, granting even that it is not bright; our ships can at last put out to sea in face of every danger; every hazard is again permitted to the discerner; the sea, our sea, again lies open before us; perhaps never before did such an "open sea" exist.—

What our Cheerfulness Signifies.—The most significant of recent events—that "God is dead," that the belief in the Christian God has become unworthy of belief—has already started to cast its first shadows over Europe. For at least a few whose eyes, whose suspecting gaze, are strong and subtle enough for this drama, it seems like some sun has set, some deep, old confidence has turned into doubt: our old world must appear to them increasingly dark, distrustful, strange, and "old." Generally speaking, however, one could say that the event itself is far too great, too distant, too much beyond most people's understanding, for one to assume that so much as the report of it could have reached them; not to mention the many who already knew what has really happened and what must all fall apart now that this belief has been undermined—because so much was built upon it, so much depended on it, and had become one with it: for instance, our entire European morality. This lengthy, vast, and uninterrupted process of crumbling, destruction, ruin, and collapse that is now imminent: who has realized it sufficiently today to stand up as the teacher and herald of such a tremendous logic of terror, as the prophet of a period of gloom and eclipse like which has probably never occurred on earth before?... Even we, the born riddle-readers, who wait as if stationed on the mountains between today and tomorrow, surrounded by their contradictions, we, the early and precocious children of the coming century, into whose view especially the shadows that must soon envelop Europe should already have arrived—how is it that even we, without any genuine sympathy for this period of gloom, observe its arrival without any personal concern or fear? Are we still, perhaps, too much under the immediate effects of the event—and are these effects, particularly concerning ourselves, perhaps the opposite of what was expected—not at all sad and depressing, but rather like a new and indescribable variety of light, happiness, relief, vivacity, encouragement, and dawning day?... In fact, we philosophers and "free spirits" feel ourselves illuminated like by a new dawn by the news that the "old God is dead"; our hearts overflow with gratitude, astonishment, anticipation, and expectation. Finally, the horizon seems open again, even if it's not bright; our ships can finally set sail in the face of every danger; every risk is once

344.

To what Extent even We are still Pious.—It is said with good reason that convictions have no civic rights in the domain of science: it is only when a 277conviction voluntarily condescends to the modesty of an hypothesis, a preliminary standpoint for experiment, or a regulative fiction, that its access to the realm of knowledge, and a certain value therein, can be conceded,—always, however, with the restriction that it must remain under police supervision, under the police of our distrust.—Regarded more accurately, however, does not this imply that only when a conviction ceases to be a conviction can it obtain admission into science? Does not the discipline of the scientific spirit just commence when one no longer harbours any conviction?... It is probably so: only, it remains to be asked whether, in order that this discipline may commence, it is not necessary that there should already be a conviction, and in fact one so imperative and absolute, that it makes a sacrifice of all other convictions. One sees that science also rests on a belief: there is no science at all "without premises." The question whether truth is necessary, must not merely be affirmed beforehand, but must be affirmed to such an extent that the principle, belief, or conviction finds expression, that "there is nothing more necessary than truth, and in comparison with it everything else has only a secondary value."—This absolute will to truth: what is it? Is it the will not to allow ourselves to be deceived? Is it the will not to deceive? For the will to truth could also be interpreted in this fashion, provided one includes under the generalisation, "I will not deceive," the special case, "I will not deceive myself." But why not deceive? Why not allow oneself to be 278deceived?—Let it be noted that the reasons for the former eventuality belong to a category quite different from those for the latter: one does not want to be deceived oneself, under the supposition that it is injurious, dangerous, or fatal to be deceived,—in this sense science would be a prolonged process of caution, foresight and utility; against which, however, one might reasonably make objections. What? is not-wishing-to-be-deceived really less injurious, less dangerous, less fatal? What do you know of the character of existence in all its phases to be able to decide whether the greater advantage is on the side of absolute distrust, or of absolute trustfulness? In case, however, of both being necessary, much trusting and much distrusting, whence then should science derive the absolute belief, the conviction on which it rests, that truth is more important than anything else, even than every other conviction? This conviction could not have arisen if truth and untruth had both continually proved themselves to be useful: as is the case. Thus—the belief in science, which now undeniably exists, cannot have had its origin in such a utilitarian calculation, but rather in spite of the fact of the inutility and dangerousness of the "Will to truth," of "truth at all costs," being continually demonstrated. "At all costs": alas, we understand that sufficiently well, after having sacrificed and slaughtered one belief after another at this altar!—Consequently, "Will to truth" does not imply, "I will not allow myself to be deceived," but—there is no other alternative—"I will not deceive, not even myself": 279and thus we have reached the realm of morality. For, let one just ask oneself fairly: "Why wilt thou not deceive?" especially if it should seem—and it does seem—as if life were laid out with a view to appearance, I mean, with a view to error, deceit, dissimulation, delusion, self-delusion; and when on the other hand it is a matter of fact that the great type of life has always manifested itself on the side of the most unscrupulous πολύτροποι. Such an intention might perhaps, to express it mildly, be a piece of Quixotism, a little enthusiastic craziness; it might also, however, be something worse, namely, a destructive principle, hostile to life.... "Will to Truth,"—that might be a concealed Will to Death.—Thus the question, Why is there science? leads back to the moral problem: What in general is the purpose of morality, if life, nature, and history are "non-moral"? There is no doubt that the conscientious man in the daring and extreme sense in which he is presupposed by the belief in science, affirms thereby a world other than that of life, nature, and history; and in so far as he affirms this "other world," what? must he not just thereby—deny its counterpart, this world, our world?... But what I have in view will now be understood, namely, that it is always a metaphysical belief on which our belief in science rests,—and that even we knowing ones of to-day, the godless and anti-metaphysical, still take our fire from the conflagration kindled by a belief a millennium old, the Christian belief, which was also the belief of Plato, that God is truth, that the truth is divine.... But what if 280this itself always becomes more untrustworthy, what if nothing any longer proves itself divine, except it be error, blindness, and falsehood;—what if God himself turns out to be our most persistent lie?—

To what extent are we still pious?—It's rightly said that personal beliefs don't hold any civic rights in the realm of science: a belief can only enter the field of knowledge if it humbly accepts the role of an hypothesis, a preliminary standpoint for experimentation, or a regulatory fiction. This admission, however, always comes with the caveat that it must remain under scrutiny by our skepticism.—When viewed more closely, doesn’t this suggest that a belief can only enter science when it stops being a belief? Doesn’t the discipline of the scientific mindset begin only when one no longer holds on to any beliefs? ... Probably so; however, it raises the question of whether, for this discipline to start, there must first be a belief—one so compelling and absolute that it sacrifices all other beliefs. We can see that science is also built on a belief: there can be no science "without premises." The question of whether truth is essential must not just be accepted in advance but must be accepted to the point where the principle, belief, or conviction expresses that "there is nothing more necessary than truth, and compared to it, everything else has only secondary value."—This absolute desire for truth: what is it? Is it the desire not to let ourselves be deceived? Is it the desire not to deceive? Because the desire for truth could be understood this way, as long as we include the idea of "I will not deceive," particularly in the special case of "I will not deceive myself." But why not deceive? Why not allow ourselves to be 278deceived?—It’s important to note that the reasons for the former situation belong to a completely different category than those for the latter: one doesn’t want to be deceived under the assumption that being deceived is harmful, dangerous, or deadly—under this view, science would be a prolonged exercise of caution, foresight, and utility. Yet one could certainly argue against that. Is not the desire to not be deceived genuinely less harmful, less dangerous, or less deadly? What do you really know about the nature of existence in all its forms to be able to determine whether greater benefits lie with absolute distrust or with absolute trust? If, however, both are necessary, much trust and much distrust, where then does science derive its absolute belief, the conviction it stands on, that truth is more significant than anything else, even every other conviction? This conviction couldn’t have emerged if truth and untruth had both consistently proven to be useful, as they often have. Thus—the belief in science, which undeniably exists today, cannot have originated from such a utilitarian calculation, but rather in spite of the demonstrated inutility and danger of the "Will to truth," of "truth at any cost." "At any cost": alas, we understand that all too well after having sacrificed one belief after another at this altar!—Therefore, "Will to truth" doesn’t mean "I will not allow myself to be deceived," but—there’s no other option—"I will not deceive, not even myself": 279and thus we have reached the realm of morality. For, let’s honestly ask ourselves: "Why won’t you deceive?" especially if it seems—and it does seem—as if life is set up for appearances, that is, for error, deceit, dissimulation, delusion, and self-delusion; and on the other hand, it’s a fact that the major type of life has always revealed itself among the most unscrupulous πολύτροποι (versatile ones). Such an intention could perhaps, to put it mildly, be a bit Quixotic, a little enthusiastic craziness; it could also be something worse, namely, a destructive principle that is hostile to life.... "Will to Truth"—that could be a hidden Will to Death.—Thus the question of why science exists brings us back to the moral dilemma: What is the purpose of morality, if life, nature, and history are "non-moral"? There’s no denying that the conscientious person, in the boldest and most extreme way that is assumed by belief in science, affirms a world other than the world of life, nature, and history; and as far as he affirms this "other world," doesn’t he just—deny its counterpart, this world, our world?... But what I have in mind now will be understood, namely, that our belief in science is always based on a metaphysical belief—and even we, the godless and anti-metaphysical people of today, still draw our fire from a blazing belief that is a millennium old, the Christian belief, which was also held by Plato, that God is truth, that truth is divine.... But what if 280 this very belief becomes increasingly untrustworthy, what if nothing is proven divine anymore, except for error, blindness, and falsehood;—what if God himself ends up being our most enduring lie?—

345.

Morality as a Problem.—A defect in personality revenges itself everywhere: an enfeebled, lank, obliterated, self-disavowing and disowning personality is no longer fit for anything good—it is least of all fit for philosophy. "Selflessness" has no value either in heaven or on earth; the great problems all demand great love, and it is only the strong, well-rounded, secure spirits, those who have a solid basis, that are qualified for them. It makes the most material difference whether a thinker stands personally related to his problems, having his fate, his need, and even his highest happiness therein; or merely impersonally, that is to say, if he can only feel and grasp them with the tentacles of cold, prying thought. In the latter case I warrant that nothing comes of it: for the great problems, granting that they let themselves be grasped at all, do not let themselves be held by toads and weaklings: that has ever been their taste—a taste also which they share with all high-spirited women.—How is it that I have not yet met with any one, not even in books, who seems to have stood to morality in this position, as one who knew morality as a problem, and this problem as his own personal need, affliction, pleasure and passion? It is obvious that up to the present morality has not been a problem at all; it has rather been the very ground on 281which people have met, after all distrust, dissension, and contradiction, the hallowed place of peace, where thinkers could obtain rest even from themselves, could recover breath and revive. I see no one who has ventured to criticise the estimates of moral worth. I miss in this connection even the attempts of scientific curiosity, and the fastidious, groping imagination of psychologists and historians, which easily anticipates a problem and catches it on the wing, without rightly knowing what it catches. With difficulty I have discovered some scanty data for the purpose of furnishing a history of the origin of these feelings and estimates of value (which is something different from a criticism of them, and also something different from a history of ethical systems). In an individual case, I have done everything to encourage the inclination and talent for this kind of history—in vain, as it would seem to me at present. There is little to be learned from those historians of morality (especially Englishmen): they themselves are usually, quite unsuspiciously, under the influence of a definite morality, and act unwittingly as its armour-bearers and followers—perhaps still repeating sincerely the popular superstition of Christian Europe, that the characteristic of moral action consists in abnegation, self-denial, self-sacrifice, or in fellow-feeling and fellow-suffering. The usual error in their premises is their insistence on a certain consensus among human beings, at least among civilised human beings, with regard to certain propositions of morality, and from thence they conclude that these propositions 282are absolutely binding even upon you and me; or reversely, they come to the conclusion that no morality at all is binding, after the truth has dawned upon them that to different peoples moral valuations are necessarily different: both of which conclusions are equally childish follies. The error of the more subtle amongst them is that they discover and criticise the probably foolish opinions of a people about its own morality, or the opinions of mankind about human morality generally; they treat accordingly of its origin, its religious sanctions, the superstition of free will, and such matters; and they think that just by so doing they have criticised the morality itself. But the worth of a precept, "Thou shalt," is still fundamentally different from and independent of such opinions about it, and must be distinguished from the weeds of error with which it has perhaps been overgrown: just as the worth of a medicine to a sick person is altogether independent of the question whether he has a scientific opinion about medicine, or merely thinks about it as an old wife would do. A morality could even have grown out of an error: but with this knowledge the problem of its worth would not even be touched.—Thus, no one has hitherto tested the value of that most celebrated of all medicines, called morality: for which purpose it is first of all necessary for one—to call it in question. Well, that is just our work.—

Morality as a Problem.—A flaw in personality takes its toll everywhere: an weakened, dull, erased, self-denying and disowning personality is no longer suitable for anything good—it is least of all suitable for philosophy. "Selflessness" holds no value, neither in heaven nor on earth; the big questions all require great love, and only strong, well-rounded, secure individuals with a solid foundation are equipped to tackle them. It's a significant difference if a thinker is personally connected to their problems, having their fate, needs, and even their greatest joy tied up in them; versus feeling and understanding them impersonally, as if they can only grasp them with cold, probing thoughts. In the latter case, I guarantee that nothing will come of it: for the essential problems, assuming they can even be grasped, cannot be held by toads and the weaklings—that's always been their preference—a preference they share with all strong-willed women. —Why is it that I haven't encountered anyone, not even in books, who seems to have engaged with morality like someone who knows it as a problem, and this problem as their own personal need, struggle, joy, and passion? It's clear that until now, morality hasn't really been a problem at all; instead, it has served as the very foundation on which people have reconnected after all distrust, disputes, and contradictions, a sacred space of peace where thinkers could find solace even from themselves, could catch their breath and rejuvenate. I see no one who has dared to criticize the evaluations of moral worth. I miss even the attempts of scientific curiosity, and the meticulous, probing imagination of psychologists and historians, which easily anticipates a problem and tries to catch it without fully understanding what it captures. With great difficulty, I've gathered some scant information to provide a history of the origin of these feelings and value assessments (which is different from criticizing them, and also distinct from a history of ethical systems). In one specific case, I've done everything possible to encourage the inclination and talent for this kind of history—in vain, it seems to me now. There’s little to glean from those historians of morality (especially the English): they themselves are usually completely oblivious to being influenced by a specific morality, acting unwittingly as its advocates and supporters—perhaps still sincerely repeating the popular belief of Christian Europe, that the essence of moral action is found in self-denial, sacrifice, compassion, or shared suffering. The typical error in their reasoning is their insistence on a certain consensus among humans, at least among civilized ones, regarding certain moral propositions, and from this, they conclude that these propositions are absolutely binding on you and me; or conversely, they conclude that no morality at all is binding, realizing that different peoples inevitably have different moral valuations: both of which conclusions are equally naive errors. The mistake of the more perceptive among them is that they uncover and critique what are probably foolish beliefs of a people about their own morality, or the general opinions regarding human morality; they discuss its origins, religious justifications, the superstition of free will, and related issues; and they think that by doing so, they have criticized the morality itself. But the value of a command, "You shall," is still fundamentally different from and independent of such opinions about it and must be separated from the misconceptions that may have overshadowed it: just as the value of a medicine to a sick person is entirely independent of whether they hold a scientific view on medicine, or just believe about it like an old wife might. A morality could even have emerged from a mistake: yet with this awareness, the issue of its value would not even be approached.—Thus, no one has yet tested the value of that most renowned of all medicines, called morality: for which purpose it is first necessary for one—to question it. Well, that is precisely our task.—

346.

Our Note of Interrogation.—But you don't understand it? As a matter of fact, an effort will be 283necessary in order to understand us. We seek for words; we seek perhaps also for ears. Who are we after all? If we wanted simply to call ourselves in older phraseology, atheists, unbelievers, or even immoralists, we should still be far from thinking ourselves designated thereby: we are all three in too late a phase for people generally to conceive, for you, my inquisitive friends, to be able to conceive, what is our state of mind under the circumstances. No! we have no longer the bitterness and passion of him who has broken loose, who has to make for himself a belief, a goal, and even a martyrdom out of his unbelief! We have become saturated with the conviction (and have grown cold and hard in it) that things are not at all divinely ordered in this world, nor even according to human standards do they go on rationally, mercifully, or justly: we know the fact that the world in which we live is ungodly, immoral, and "inhuman,"—we have far too long interpreted it to ourselves falsely and mendaciously, according to the wish and will of our veneration, that is to say, according to our need. For man is a venerating animal! But he is also a distrustful animal: and that the world is not worth what we have believed it to be worth is about the surest thing our distrust has at last managed to grasp. So much distrust, so much philosophy! We take good care not to say that the world is of less value: it seems to us at present absolutely ridiculous when man claims to devise values to surpass the values of the actual world,—it is precisely from that point that we have retraced our steps; 284as from an extravagant error of human conceit and irrationality, which for a long period has not been recognised as such. This error had its last expression in modern Pessimism; an older and stronger manifestation in the teaching of Buddha; but Christianity also contains it, more dubiously, to be sure, and more ambiguously, but none the less seductive on that account. The whole attitude of "man versus the world," man as world-denying principle, man as the standard of the value of things, as judge of the world, who in the end puts existence itself on his scales and finds it too light—the monstrous impertinence of this attitude has dawned upon us as such, and has disgusted us,—we now laugh when we find, "Man and World" placed beside one another, separated by the sublime presumption of the little word "and"! But how is it? Have we not in our very laughing just made a further step in despising mankind? And consequently also in Pessimism, in despising the existence cognisable by us? Have we not just thereby become liable to a suspicion of an opposition between the world in which we have hitherto been at home with our venerations—for the sake of which we perhaps endure life—and another world which we ourselves are: an inexorable, radical, most profound suspicion concerning ourselves, which is continually getting us Europeans more annoyingly into its power, and could easily face the coming generation with the terrible alternative: "Either do away with your venerations, or—with yourselves!" The latter would be Nihilism—but would not the former 285also be Nihilism? This is our note of interrogation.

Our Note of Interrogation.—But you don’t get it? The truth is, it takes some effort to understand us. We’re searching for words; we might also be looking for someone to listen. Who are we, after all? If we wanted to label ourselves with older terms like atheists, skeptics, or even immoralists, we still wouldn’t see ourselves that way: we’re all too late in the game for most people, including you, my curious friends, to truly grasp our mindset in this situation. No! We no longer feel the bitterness and passion of someone who has broken free, who has to create a belief, a purpose, or even a martyrdom out of their disbelief! We’ve become convinced (and hardened by that conviction) that things are not divinely arranged in this world, nor do they unfold rationally, mercifully, or justly according to human standards: we’re aware that the world we live in is ungodly, immoral, and “inhuman”—we’ve misinterpreted it for far too long, deceitfully aligning it with our veneration, shaped by our needs. Because humans are creatures of reverence! But they’re also inherently distrustful: and it’s one of the surest things our doubt has finally grasped that the world is not worth what we’ve believed it to be. So much distrust, so much philosophy! We’re careful not to say that the world is of less value: it seems utterly absurd to us right now when humans claim to create values that outshine the actual values in the world—it’s from that very standpoint that we’ve retracted our steps; 284as if retreating from an extravagant human folly and irrationality that has long gone unrecognized. This folly found its last expression in modern Pessimism; it had an older and stronger form in the teachings of Buddha; yet Christianity contains it too, albeit more ambiguously and dubiously, but still enticingly so. The entire mindset of "man versus the world," man as a denier of the world, man as the standard for valuing things, the judge of existence who ultimately weighs life and finds it wanting—the outrageous arrogance of this mindset has become glaringly apparent to us, and it disgusts us—we now laugh when we see "Man and World" placed alongside each other, separated by that lofty little word “and”! But wait—have we just taken another step in scorn towards humanity with our laughter? And consequently also towards Pessimism, in devaluing the existence we know? Have we not thereby become susceptible to the suspicion of an opposition between the world in which we’ve lived with our reverences—for whose sake we may continue to endure life—and another world that we are: a relentless, fundamental, and profound suspicion about ourselves, which increasingly ensnares us Europeans and could easily present the next generation with the frightening choice: “Either abandon your reverences, or—yourself!” The latter would be Nihilism—but wouldn’t the former also lead to Nihilism? This is our note of interrogation.

347.

Believers and their Need of Belief.—How much faith a person requires in order to flourish, how much "fixed opinion" he requires which he does not wish to have shaken, because he holds himself thereby—is a measure of his power (or more plainly speaking, of his weakness). Most people in old Europe, as it seems to me, still need Christianity at present, and on that account it still finds belief. For such is man: a theological dogma might be refuted to him a thousand times,—provided, however, that he had need of it, he would again and again accept it as "true,"—according to the famous "proof of power" of which the Bible speaks. Some have still need of metaphysics; but also the impatient longing for certainty which at present discharges itself in scientific, positivist fashion among large numbers of the people, the longing by all means to get at something stable (while on account of the warmth of the longing the establishing of the certainty is more leisurely and negligently undertaken): even this is still the longing for a hold, a support; in short, the instinct of weakness, which, while not actually creating religions, metaphysics, and convictions of all kinds, nevertheless—preserves them. In fact, around all these positivist systems there fume the vapours of a certain pessimistic gloom, something of weariness, fatalism, disillusionment, and fear of new disillusionment—or else manifest animosity, ill-humour, anarchic exasperation, and whatever there 286is of symptom or masquerade of the feeling of weakness. Even the readiness with which our cleverest contemporaries get lost in wretched corners and alleys, for example, in Vaterländerei (so I designate Jingoism, called chauvinisme in France, and "deutsch" in Germany), or in petty æsthetic creeds in the manner of Parisian naturalisme (which only brings into prominence and uncovers that aspect of nature which excites simultaneously disgust and astonishment—they like at present to call this aspect la vérité vraie), or in Nihilism in the St Petersburg style (that is to say, in the belief in unbelief, even to martyrdom for it):—this shows always and above all the need of belief, support, backbone, and buttress.... Belief is always most desired, most pressingly needed where there is a lack of will: for the will, as emotion of command, is the distinguishing characteristic of sovereignty and power. That is to say, the less a person knows how to command, the more urgent is his desire for one who commands, who commands sternly,—a God, a prince, a caste, a physician, a confessor, a dogma, a party conscience. From whence perhaps it could be inferred that the two world-religions, Buddhism and Christianity, might well have had the cause of their rise, and especially of their rapid extension, in an extraordinary malady of the will. And in truth it has been so: both religions lighted upon a longing, monstrously exaggerated by malady of the will, for an imperative, a "Thou-shalt," a longing going the length of despair; both religions were teachers of fanaticism in times of slackness 287of will-power, and thereby offered to innumerable persons a support, a new possibility of exercising will, an enjoyment in willing. For in fact fanaticism is the sole "volitional strength" to which the weak and irresolute can be excited, as a sort of hypnotising of the entire sensory-intellectual system, in favour of the over-abundant nutrition (hypertrophy) of a particular point of view and a particular sentiment, which then dominates—the Christian calls it his faith. When a man arrives at the fundamental conviction that he requires to be commanded, he becomes "a believer." Reversely, one could imagine a delight and a power of self-determining, and a freedom of will whereby a spirit could bid farewell to every belief, to every wish for certainty, accustomed as it would be to support itself on slender cords and possibilities, and to dance even on the verge of abysses. Such a spirit would be the free spirit par excellence.

Believers and their Need of Belief.—How much faith a person needs to thrive, how much "fixed opinion" they require that they don’t want to be shaken, because they hold on to it—this reflects their power (or, more straightforwardly, their weakness). Most people in old Europe still seem to need Christianity today, which is why it continues to be believed. For such is humanity: even if a theological doctrine is disproven a thousand times—if they still need it, they will repeatedly accept it as "true"—as the biblical "proof of power" suggests. Some still seek metaphysics; but there’s also an impatient longing for certainty that currently manifests itself in a scientific, positivist manner among many people, a desire to grasp something stable (even though the establishment of this certainty is often slower and more careless due to the intensity of the longing): this is still a longing for something to hold on to, a support; in short, the instinct of weakness, which, while it might not actually create religions, metaphysics, and various convictions, still—preserves them. In fact, around all these positivist systems swirl the clouds of a certain pessimistic gloom, a sense of weariness, fatalism, disillusionment, and fear of further disillusionment—or else they express manifest animosity, bad temper, anarchic frustration, and whatever else is symptomatic of feeling weak. Even the ease with which our smartest contemporaries get lost in wretched nooks and crannies, for example, in sentimentality for their country (which I call Jingoism, known as chauvinisme in France, and "deutsch" in Germany), or in petty aesthetic beliefs similar to Parisian naturalisme (which only highlights and uncovers that aspect of nature that incites both disgust and wonder—they currently refer to this aspect as la vérité vraie), or in Nihilism in the St. Petersburg style (which means believing in unbelief, even to martyrdom for it):—this demonstrates, above all, the need for belief, support, backbone, and support.... Belief is always most desired, most urgently needed where there is a lack of will: for will, as an emotion of command, is what defines sovereignty and power. In other words, the less a person knows how to command, the more urgent their desire for someone who commands, who commands firmly—a God, a prince, a caste, a doctor, a confessor, a dogma, a party ideology. From this, one might infer that the two world religions, Buddhism and Christianity, could have arisen due to an extraordinary malady of the will. And indeed, this has been the case: both religions tapped into a longing, distorted by the malady of the will, for an imperative, a "You shall," a longing that borders on despair; both religions became teachers of fanaticism in times of will-power stagnation, providing countless individuals with support, a new chance to exercise their will, and enjoyment in willing. In fact, fanaticism is the only "volitional strength" that the weak and indecisive can be aroused to, acting as a kind of hypnosis of the entire sensory-intellectual system, favoring the over-nourishment (hypertrophy) of a particular perspective and sentiment, which then dominates—the Christian refers to it as their faith. When a person reaches the fundamental conviction that they need to be commanded, they become "a believer." Conversely, one might envision a joy and power of self-determination, and a freedom of will that allows a spirit to part with every belief and every desire for certainty, becoming accustomed to relying on fragile threads and possibilities, dancing even on the edge of abysses. Such a spirit would be the free spirit par excellence.

348.

The Origin of the Learned.—The learned man in Europe grows out of all the different ranks and social conditions, like a plant requiring no specific soil: on that account he belongs essentially and involuntarily to the partisans of democratic thought. But this origin betrays itself. If one has trained one's glance to some extent to recognise in a learned book or scientific treatise the intellectual idiosyncrasy of the learned man—all of them have such idiosyncrasy,—and if we take it by surprise, we shall almost always get a glimpse behind it of the "antecedent history" of the 288learned man and his family, especially of the nature of their callings and occupations. Where the feeling finds expression, "That is at last proved, I am now done with it," it is commonly the ancestor in the blood and instincts of the learned man that approves of the "accomplished work" in the nook from which he sees things;—the belief in the proof is only an indication of what has been looked upon for ages by a laborious family as "good work." Take an example: the sons of registrars and office-clerks of every kind, whose main task has always been to arrange a variety of material, distribute it in drawers, and systematise it generally, evince, when they become learned men, an inclination to regard a problem as almost solved when they have systematised it. There are philosophers who are at bottom nothing but systematising brains—the formal part of the paternal occupation has become its essence to them. The talent for classifications, for tables of categories, betrays something; it is not for nothing that a person is the child of his parents. The son of an advocate will also have to be an advocate as investigator: he seeks as a first consideration, to carry the point in his case, as a second consideration, he perhaps seeks to be in the right. One recognises the sons of Protestant clergymen and schoolmasters by the naïve assurance with which as learned men they already assume their case to be proved, when it has but been presented by them staunchly and warmly: they are thoroughly accustomed to people believing in them,—it belonged to their fathers' "trade"! 289A Jew, contrariwise, in accordance with his business surroundings and the past of his race, is least of all accustomed—to people believing him. Observe Jewish scholars with regard to this matter,—they all lay great stress on logic, that is to say, on compelling assent by means of reasons; they know that they must conquer thereby, even when race and class antipathy is against them, even where people are unwilling to believe them. For in fact, nothing is more democratic than logic: it knows no respect of persons, and takes even the crooked nose as straight. (In passing we may remark that in respect to logical thinking, in respect to cleaner intellectual habits, Europe is not a little indebted to the Jews; above all the Germans, as being a lamentably déraisonnable race, who, even at the present day, must always have their "heads washed"[11] in the first place. Wherever the Jews have attained to influence, they have taught to analyse more subtly, to argue more acutely, to write more clearly and purely: it has always been their problem to bring a people "to raison.")

The Origin of the Learned.—The learned person in Europe comes from various ranks and social conditions, like a plant that doesn't need specific soil: for this reason, they are inherently and involuntarily aligned with democratic thought. However, this background reveals itself. If you have trained your eye to recognize the unique style of a learned book or scientific paper—since all of them have such a style—and if we catch it off guard, we will almost always get a glimpse of the "antecedent history" of the learned person and their family, particularly regarding their professions and jobs. When there's a feeling expressed like, "That’s finally proven, I'm done with it," typically it's the learned person's ancestry, their blood, and instincts that endorse the "accomplished work" from their perspective;—the belief in the proof is merely a sign of what has long been viewed as "good work" by a diligent family. For instance, the sons of registrars and office workers, whose primary role has always been to organize various materials, sort them into drawers, and generally systematize everything, tend to view a problem as nearly solved once they've systematized it, when they become learned individuals. There are philosophers who essentially function as systemizing brains—the formal aspect of their father's job has become their essence. The ability to classify and create category tables reveals something; it's not insignificant that a person is their parents' child. The son of a lawyer will also be a lawyer as a researcher: first, he aims to win his case, and only secondly might he seek to be in the right. One can recognize the sons of Protestant clergy and teachers by the naïve confidence with which, as learned individuals, they assume their argument is proven once they've presented it earnestly and passionately: they are wholly used to people believing in them—it's part of their father's "trade"! 289On the other hand, a Jew, in line with their business environment and the legacy of their people, is least accustomed to others believing him. Look at Jewish scholars in this regard—they all emphasize logic, that is, on compelling agreement through reason; they know they must conquer in this way, even when facing racial and class prejudice, even when others are unwilling to believe them. Because in reality, nothing is more democratic than logic: it has no respect for people and treats even a crooked nose as straight. (As a side note, we can mention that regarding logical thinking and cleaner intellectual habits, Europe owes a considerable debt to the Jews; especially the Germans, who are a regrettably déraisonnable race, and even today must often have their "heads washed"[11] first. Wherever the Jews have gained influence, they've taught people to analyze more deeply, to argue more sharply, and to write more clearly and precisely: their ongoing challenge has always been to bring a people "to raison.")

349.

The Origin of the Learned once more.—To seek self-preservation merely, is the expression of a state of distress, or of limitation of the true, fundamental instinct of life, which aims at the extension of power, and with this in view often enough calls in question self-preservation and sacrifices it. It should be 290taken as symptomatic when individual philosophers, as for example, the consumptive Spinoza, have seen and have been obliged to see the principal feature of life precisely in the so-called self-preservative instinct:—they have just been men in states of distress. That our modern natural sciences have entangled themselves so much with Spinoza's dogma (finally and most grossly in Darwinism, with its inconceivably one-sided doctrine of the "struggle for existence"—), is probably owing to the origin of most of the inquirers into nature: they belong in this respect to the people, their forefathers have been poor and humble persons, who knew too well by immediate experience the difficulty of making a living. Over the whole of English Darwinism there hovers something of the suffocating air of over-crowded England, something of the odour of humble people in need and in straits. But as an investigator of nature, a person ought to emerge from his paltry human nook: and in nature the state of distress does not prevail, but superfluity, even prodigality to the extent of folly. The struggle for existence is only an exception, a temporary restriction of the will to live; the struggle, be it great or small, turns everywhere on predominance, on increase and expansion, on power, in conformity to the will to power, which is just the will to live.

The Origin of the Learned once more.—Seeking self-preservation alone represents a state of distress or a limitation of the true, fundamental instinct of life, which aims at the expansion of power. With this goal in mind, it often questions self-preservation and sacrifices it. It's notable when individual philosophers, like the sickly Spinoza, identify the key aspect of life as the so-called self-preservative instinct; they were simply individuals in distress. The fact that modern natural sciences have intertwined so much with Spinoza's doctrine (most prominently and drastically in Darwinism, with its unimaginably one-sided idea of the "struggle for existence"—) likely stems from the background of many nature researchers: they come from humble beginnings and have ancestors who faced the harsh realities of survival. There’s a certain suffocating atmosphere in English Darwinism, reminiscent of the struggles faced by the less fortunate. However, as a nature investigator, one should rise above their mundane human concerns: in nature, distress does not prevail, but rather excess, even extravagance to the point of folly. The struggle for existence is only an exception, a temporary limitation of the will to live; whether significant or minor, struggle revolves around dominance, growth, and expansion, aligned with the will to power, which is essentially the will to live.

350.

In Honour of Homines Religiosi.—The struggle against the church is most certainly (among other things—for it has a manifold significance) the 291struggle of the more ordinary, cheerful, confiding, superficial natures against the rule of the graver, profounder, more contemplative natures, that is to say, the more malign and suspicious men, who with long continued distrust in the worth of life, brood also over their own worth:—the ordinary instinct of the people, its sensual gaiety, its "good heart," revolts against them. The entire Roman Church rests on a Southern suspicion of the nature of man (always misunderstood in the North), a suspicion whereby the European South has succeeded to the inheritance of the profound Orient—the mysterious, venerable Asia—and its contemplative spirit. Protestantism was a popular insurrection in favour of the simple, the respectable, the superficial (the North has always been more good-natured and more shallow than the South), but it was the French Revolution that first gave the sceptre wholly and solemnly into the hands of the "good man" (the sheep, the ass, the goose, and everything incurably shallow, bawling, and fit for the Bedlam of "modern ideas").

In Honor of Religious People.—The battle against the church is definitely (among other things—for it has many layers of meaning) the conflict between the more ordinary, cheerful, trusting, and superficial personalities and the rule of the more serious, deeper, and contemplative individuals, specifically the more bitter and suspicious people, who, with their long-standing skepticism about the value of life, also reflect on their own worth:—the natural instincts of the people, their joyful liveliness, their "good heart," rebels against them. The entire Roman Church is built on a Southern distrust of human nature (which is always misinterpreted in the North), a distrust that the European South has inherited from the profound East—the mysterious, ancient Asia—and its contemplative essence. Protestantism was a grassroots uprising in favor of the simple, the respectable, the superficial (the North has always been more good-natured and less profound than the South), but it was the French Revolution that first completely and seriously handed the scepter over to the "good man" (the sheep, the donkey, the goose, and everything irreversibly shallow, loud, and suitable for the chaos of "modern ideas").

351.

In Honour of Priestly Natures.—I think that philosophers have always felt themselves furthest removed from that which the people (in all classes of society nowadays) take for wisdom: the prudent, bovine placidity, piety, and country-parson meekness, which lies in the meadow and gazes at life seriously and ruminatingly:—this is probably because philosophers have not had sufficiently the taste of the "people," or of the country-parson 292for that kind of wisdom. Philosophers will also perhaps be the latest to acknowledge that the people should understand something of that which lies furthest from them, something of the great passion of the thinker, who lives and must live continually in the storm-cloud of the highest problems and the heaviest responsibilities (consequently, not gazing at all, to say nothing of doing so indifferently, securely, objectively). The people venerate an entirely different type of man when on their part they form the ideal of a "sage," and they are a thousand times justified in rendering homage with the highest eulogies and honours to precisely that type of men—namely, the gentle, serious, simple, chaste, priestly natures and those related to them,—it is to them that the praise falls due in the popular veneration of wisdom. And to whom should the people ever have more reason to be grateful than to these men who pertain to its class and rise from its ranks, but are persons consecrated, chosen, and sacrificed for its good—they themselves believe themselves sacrificed to God,—before whom the people can pour forth its heart with impunity, by whom it can get rid of its secrets, cares, and worse things (for the man who "communicates himself" gets rid of himself, and he who has "confessed" forgets). Here there exists a great need: for sewers and pure cleansing waters are required also for spiritual filth, and rapid currents of love are needed, and strong, lowly, pure hearts, who qualify and sacrifice themselves for such service of the non-public health department—for it is a sacrificing, the priest is, and continues to 293be, a human sacrifice.... The people regard such sacrificed, silent, serious men of "faith" as "wise," that is to say, as men who have become sages, as "reliable" in relation to their own unreliability. Who would desire to deprive the people of that expression and that veneration?—But as is fair on the other side, among philosophers the priest also is still held to belong to the "people," and is not regarded as a sage, because, above all, they themselves do not believe in "sages," and they already scent "the people" in this very belief and superstition. It was modesty which invented in Greece the word "philosopher," and left to the play-actors of the spirit the superb arrogance of assuming the name "wise"—the modesty of such monsters of pride and self-glorification as Pythagoras and Plato.—

In Honour of Priestly Natures.—I believe that philosophers have always felt distant from what everyone (across all social classes today) considers wisdom: the careful, passive calmness, piety, and humble demeanor of a country priest, who lies in the meadow and gazes at life thoughtfully and reflectively. This is likely because philosophers haven't truly tasted the life of the "people" or the country priest’s type of wisdom. Philosophers may also be the last to realize that the people should understand something of what lies farthest from them—the great passion of the thinker, who exists and must continually exist in the turmoil of the highest issues and heaviest responsibilities (therefore, not gazing at all, to say nothing of doing so indifferently, securely, or objectively). The people honor an entirely different kind of person when they envision the ideal of a "sage," and they are completely justified in paying their highest praises and honors to exactly those kinds of individuals—specifically, the gentle, serious, simple, chaste, priestly natures and those related to them. It is to them that the recognition belongs in the popular reverence for wisdom. And who should the people ever be more grateful to than those who come from their ranks but are consecrated, chosen, and sacrificed for their benefit—they themselves believe they are sacrificed to God—before whom the people can openly reveal their hearts, offload their secrets, worries, and darker thoughts (for the man who "opens up" sheds parts of himself, and he who has "confessed" forgets). There is a significant need here: just as sewers and clean waters are necessary for physical waste, quick currents of love are required, along with strong, humble, pure hearts, who dedicate and sacrifice themselves for such service to the spiritual well-being of society—for it is a sacrifice; the priest is, and remains, a form of human sacrifice.... The people see these sacrificed, quiet, serious men of "faith" as "wise," meaning they view them as sages, as "reliable" in contrast to their own unreliability. Who would want to take away that acknowledgment and respect from the people?—However, fairly enough, among philosophers, the priest is also considered a part of the "people," and is not seen as a sage because, above all, they do not believe in "sages," and they can already sense "the people" in this very notion and superstition. It was modesty that coined the term "philosopher" in Greece, leaving the spiritual pretenders the proud arrogance of calling themselves "wise"—the modesty of such proud and self-glorifying figures as Pythagoras and Plato.

352.

Why we can hardly Dispense with Morality.—The naked man is generally an ignominious spectacle—I speak of us European males (and by no means of European females!). If the most joyous company at table suddenly found themselves stripped and divested of their garments through the trick of an enchanter, I believe that not only would the joyousness be gone and the strongest appetite lost;—it seems that we Europeans cannot at all dispense with the masquerade that is called clothing. But should not the disguise of "moral men," the screening under moral formulæ and notions of decency, the whole kindly concealment of our conduct under conceptions of duty, virtue, public sentiment, honourableness, and disinterestedness, 294have just as good reasons in support of it? Not that I mean hereby that human wickedness and baseness, in short, the evil wild beast in us, should be disguised; on the contrary, my idea is that it is precisely as tame animals that we are an ignominious spectacle and require moral disguising,—that the "inner man" in Europe is far from having enough of intrinsic evil "to let himself be seen" with it (to be beautiful with it). The European disguises himself in morality because he has become a sick, sickly, crippled animal, who has good reasons for being "tame," because he is almost an abortion, an imperfect, weak and clumsy thing.... It is not the fierceness of the beast of prey that finds moral disguise necessary, but the gregarious animal, with its profound mediocrity, anxiety and ennui. Morality dresses up the European—let us acknowledge it!—in more distinguished, more important, more conspicuous guise—in "divine" guise—

Why we can hardly do without Morality. — The naked man is usually a shameful sight—I’m talking about us European males (and not European females!). If a lively group at the table suddenly found themselves stripped and without clothes because of some trickster, I believe that not only would the fun disappear, but so would the strongest appetite; it seems we Europeans cannot do without the façade called clothing. But shouldn’t the disguise of “moral men,” the cover provided by moral formulas and ideas of decency, and the entire friendly concealment of our behavior under notions of duty, virtue, public opinion, honor, and selflessness have equally good reasons to support it? Not that I mean to suggest that human wickedness and lowliness, in short, the evil beast inside us, should be hidden; on the contrary, my point is that it is precisely as tame animals that we are a shameful sight and need moral disguises—that the “inner man” in Europe is far from having enough inherent evil “to show himself” with it (to be beautiful with it). The European dresses himself in morality because he has become a sick, frail, crippled being, who has good reasons to be “tame,” because he is nearly an abortion, an imperfect, weak, and awkward thing.... It is not the ferocity of the predator that finds moral disguise necessary, but the social animal, with its deep mediocrity, anxiety, and boredom. Morality dresses up the European—let's admit it!—in a more refined, more significant, more noticeable guise—in “divine” guise—

353.

The Origin of Religions.—The real inventions of founders of religions are, on the one hand, to establish a definite mode of life and everyday custom, which operates as disciplina voluntatis, and at the same time does away with ennui; and on the other hand, to give to that very mode of life an interpretation, by virtue of which it appears illumined with the highest value; so that it henceforth becomes a good for which people struggle, and under certain circumstances lay down their lives. In truth, the 295second of these inventions is the more essential: the first, the mode of life, has usually been there already, side by side, however, with other modes of life, and still unconscious of the value which it embodies. The import, the originality of the founder of a religion, discloses itself usually in the fact that he sees the mode of life, selects it, and divines for the first time the purpose for which it can be used, how it can be interpreted. Jesus (or Paul), for example, found around him the life of the common people in the Roman province, a modest, virtuous, oppressed life: he interpreted it, he put the highest significance and value into it—and thereby the courage to despise every other mode of life, the calm fanaticism of the Moravians, the secret, subterranean self-confidence which goes on increasing, and is at last ready "to overcome the world" (that is to say, Rome, and the upper classes throughout the empire). Buddha, in like manner, found the same type of man,—he found it in fact dispersed among all the classes and social ranks of a people who were good and kind (and above all inoffensive), owing to indolence, and who likewise owing to indolence, lived abstemiously, almost without requirements. He understood that such a type of man, with all its vis inertiae, had inevitably to glide into a belief which promises to avoid the return of earthly ill (that is to say, labour and activity generally),—this "understanding" was his genius. The founder of a religion possesses psychological infallibility in the knowledge of a definite, average type of souls, who have not yet recognised themselves as akin. It is he who brings 296them together: the founding of a religion, therefore, always becomes a long ceremony of recognition.—

The Origin of Religions.—The true innovations of religious founders are, on one hand, to create a specific way of life and daily practices that serve as disciplina voluntatis, while also eliminating boredom; and on the other hand, to provide that way of life with an interpretation that highlights its highest value, making it something people strive for and, under certain circumstances, are willing to die for. In reality, the second of these innovations is the more crucial one: the first, the way of life, usually already exists alongside other ways of living, often without awareness of its inherent value. The significance, the originality of a religious founder typically emerges in their ability to see the way of life, choose it, and discover for the first time the purpose it can serve, how it can be interpreted. Jesus (or Paul), for example, recognized the ordinary lives of the common people in the Roman province — a simple, virtuous, oppressed existence: he interpreted this life, giving it the highest significance and value — and thus instilled the courage to disregard every other way of living, embodying the calm zeal of the Moravians and the quiet, growing confidence that eventually aims "to overcome the world" (meaning Rome and the elite across the empire). Similarly, Buddha encountered the same kind of person — he found it, in fact, spread throughout all social classes of a good and kind (yet mostly unassuming) people, who, due to laziness, lived simply, with nearly no wants. He understood that such a type of person, with all its vis inertiae, would inevitably gravitate towards a belief that promises to escape earthly suffering (that is, work and activity in general) — this "understanding" was his brilliance. The founder of a religion possesses a kind of psychological accuracy in understanding a specific, average type of soul that has not yet recognized its kinship with others. It is he who brings them together; thus, the founding of a religion always becomes an extended ceremony of recognition.—

354.

The "Genius of the Species."—The problem of consciousness (or more correctly: of becoming conscious of oneself) meets us only when we begin to perceive in what measure we could dispense with it: and it is at the beginning of this perception that we are now placed by physiology and zoology (which have thus required two centuries to overtake the hint thrown out in advance by Leibnitz). For we could in fact think, feel, will, and recollect, we could likewise "act" in every sense of the term, and nevertheless nothing of it all would require to "come into consciousness" (as one says metaphorically). The whole of life would be possible without its seeing itself as it were in a mirror: as in fact even at present the far greater part of our life still goes on without this mirroring,—and even our thinking, feeling, volitional life as well, however painful this statement may sound to an older philosopher. What then is the purpose of consciousness generally, when it is in the main superfluous?—Now it seems to me, if you will hear my answer and its perhaps extravagant supposition, that the subtlety and strength of consciousness are always in proportion to the capacity for communication of a man (or an animal), the capacity for communication in its turn being in proportion to the necessity for communication: the latter not to be understood as if precisely the individual himself who is master in the art of communicating and making known his 297necessities would at the same time have to be most dependent upon others for his necessities. It seems to me, however, to be so in relation to whole races and successions of generations: where necessity and need have long compelled men to communicate with their fellows and understand one another rapidly and subtly, a surplus of the power and art of communication is at last acquired, as if it were a fortune which had gradually accumulated, and now waited for an heir to squander it prodigally (the so-called artists are these heirs, in like manner the orators, preachers, and authors: all of them men who come at the end of a long succession, "late-born" always, in the best sense of the word, and as has been said, squanderers by their very nature). Granted that this observation is correct, I may proceed further to the conjecture that consciousness generally has only been developed under the pressure of the necessity for communication,—that from the first it has been necessary and useful only between man and man (especially between those commanding and those obeying), and has only developed in proportion to its utility. Consciousness is properly only a connecting network between man and man,—it is only as such that it has had to develop; the recluse and wild-beast species of men would not have needed it. The very fact that our actions, thoughts, feelings and motions come within the range of our consciousness—at least a part of them—is the result of a terrible, prolonged "must" ruling man's destiny: as the most endangered animal he needed help and protection; he needed 298his fellows, he was obliged to express his distress, he had to know how to make himself understood—and for all this he needed "consciousness" first of all, consequently, to "know" himself what he lacked, to "know" how he felt and to "know" what he thought. For, to repeat it once more, man, like every living creature, thinks unceasingly, but does not know it; the thinking which is becoming conscious of itself is only the smallest part thereof, we may say, the most superficial part, the worst part:—for this conscious thinking alone is done in words, that is to say, in the symbols for communication, by means of which the origin of consciousness is revealed. In short, the development of speech and the development of consciousness (not of reason, but of reason becoming self-conscious) go hand in hand. Let it be further accepted that it is not only speech that serves as a bridge between man and man, but also the looks, the pressure and the gestures; our becoming conscious of our sense impressions, our power of being able to fix them, and as it were to locate them outside of ourselves, has increased in proportion as the necessity has increased for communicating them to others by means of signs. The sign-inventing man is at the same time the man who is always more acutely self-conscious; it is only as a social animal that man has learned to become conscious of himself,—he is doing so still, and doing so more and more.—As is obvious, my idea is that consciousness does not properly belong to the individual existence of man, but rather to the social and gregarious nature in him; that, as follows therefrom, it is only in relation 299to communal and gregarious utility that it is finely developed; and that consequently each of us, in spite of the best intention of understanding himself as individually as possible, and of "knowing himself," will always just call into consciousness the non-individual in him, namely, his "averageness";—that our thought itself is continuously as it were outvoted by the character of consciousness—by the imperious "genius of the species" therein—and is translated back into the perspective of the herd. Fundamentally our actions are in an incomparable manner altogether personal, unique and absolutely individual—there is no doubt about it; but as soon as we translate them into consciousness, they do not appear so any longer.... This is the proper phenomenalism and perspectivism as I understand it: the nature of animal consciousness involves the notion that the world of which we can become conscious is only a superficial and symbolic world, a generalised and vulgarised world;—that everything which becomes conscious becomes just thereby shallow, meagre, relatively stupid,—a generalisation, a symbol, a characteristic of the herd; that with the evolving of consciousness there is always combined a great, radical perversion, falsification, superficialisation, and generalisation. Finally, the growing consciousness is a danger, and whoever lives among the most conscious Europeans knows even that it is a disease. As may be conjectured, it is not the antithesis of subject and object with which I am here concerned: I leave that distinction to the epistemologists who have remained entangled in the 300toils of grammar (popular metaphysics). It is still less the antithesis of "thing in itself" and phenomenon, for we do not "know" enough to be entitled even to make such a distinction. Indeed, we have not any organ at all for knowing or for "truth"; we "know" (or believe, or fancy) just as much as may be of use in the interest of the human herd, the species; and even what is here called "usefulness" is ultimately only a belief, a fancy, and perhaps precisely the most fatal stupidity by which we shall one day be ruined.

The "Genius of the Species."—The issue of consciousness (or more accurately, of becoming aware of oneself) only arises when we start to understand how much we could actually do without it. We find ourselves at the beginning of this realization thanks to physiology and zoology, which have taken two centuries to catch up with the insights offered by Leibnitz. In reality, we could think, feel, will, and remember; we could also "act" in every sense of the word, yet none of this would need to "come into consciousness" (as the saying goes). Life could exist without being reflected upon, just as most of our life currently unfolds without this self-reflection—even our thinking, feeling, and acting, no matter how harsh that might sound to an older philosopher. What then is the purpose of consciousness in general, when it seems to be primarily unnecessary?—It seems to me, if you're open to my answer and its potentially outlandish suggestion, that the depth and intensity of consciousness correspond to an individual's ability to communicate (whether human or animal). This ability, in turn, relates to the need for communication: not necessarily implying that a skilled communicator must also be someone who relies heavily on others. However, this seems to apply to entire races and generations: where necessity and need have long compelled people to understand and communicate with one another quickly and effectively, a surplus of communicative skill accumulates, almost like a fortune waiting for someone to lavishly spend it (the so-called artists represent these spenders, as do orators, preachers, and authors: all of them individuals who emerge at the end of a long line, “late-born” in the best sense, and as previously mentioned, spenders by their very nature). If this observation is accurate, I may further propose that consciousness has primarily developed out of the necessity for communication—that it has only been essential and useful among humans (especially between those in authority and those who obey) and has evolved in line with its utility. Consciousness is fundamentally just a connection between people; it needed to develop as such, while the hermit and wild animal types of humans wouldn’t have had this need. The fact that our actions, thoughts, feelings, and movements become part of our consciousness—at least some of them—is the result of a long-standing "must" governing human destiny: as the most vulnerable animal, he needed help and protection; he needed others, he had to express his distress, and he had to find ways to make himself understood—and for all of this, he needed "consciousness" first and foremost, meaning he had to "know" what he lacked, to "know" how he felt, and to "know" what he thought. To reiterate, humans, like all living beings, think constantly but aren’t aware of it; the thinking that becomes conscious of itself is merely the tiniest fraction of it, we might say the most superficial part, the least favorable part:—for this conscious thinking occurs only in words, or symbols for communication, which reveal the origin of consciousness. In short, the evolution of language and the evolution of consciousness (not of reason, but of self-aware reason) go hand in hand. Moreover, we should recognize that it isn't just language that bridges individuals; expressions, gestures, and physical interactions also play a part. Our awareness of our sensory experiences, our ability to capture them, and to somehow locate them outside ourselves has escalated as the need to communicate them to others through signs has increased. The sign-creating individual is simultaneously the one who is increasingly self-aware; it is only as a social being that humans have learned to become aware of themselves—and this is an ongoing process. Obviously, my perspective is that consciousness does not truly belong to an individual's existence; rather, it is tied to the social, collective nature within us. Consequently, it develops significantly only in relation to communal and social usefulness, meaning that each of us, despite the best intentions to understand ourselves as distinctly as possible and to "know ourselves," will continually bring forth the non-individual aspects within us, namely, our "averageness";—that our thinking itself is perpetually as it were outvoted by the character of consciousness—by the dominant "genius of the species"—and is reverted back to the perspective of the crowd. At its core, our actions are incredibly personal, unique, and entirely individual—there's no doubt about that; but as soon as we translate them into consciousness, they no longer seem that way.... This is the essence of phenomenalism and perspectivism as I see it: the nature of animal consciousness implies that the world we can become aware of is merely a superficial and symbolic realm, a generalized and trivialized reality;—that everything which comes into consciousness becomes thereby shallow, limited, relatively foolish—a generalization, a symbol, a trait of the herd; that with the advancement of consciousness, there's always a significant, fundamental distortion, falsification, superficiality, and generalization. Ultimately, increasing consciousness poses a risk, and anyone living among the most conscious Europeans knows it can even be seen as a sickness. As can be assumed, I am not focusing on the opposition of subject and object here: I leave that distinction to the epistemologists who find themselves tangled up in the traps of grammar (popular metaphysics). Even less am I addressing the contrast of "the thing in itself" and phenomenon, for we do not "know" enough to even make such a distinction. In fact, we lack any true organ for knowing or for "truth"; we "know" (or believe, or imagine) just enough to be useful for the sake of the human herd, the species; and even what we refer to as "usefulness" ultimately amounts to just a belief, an idea, and perhaps the most dangerous form of ignorance that might one day lead to our downfall.

355.

The Origin of our Conception of "Knowledge."—I take this explanation from the street. I heard one of the people saying that "he knew me," so I asked myself: What do the people really understand by knowledge? What do they want when they seek "knowledge"? Nothing more than that what is strange is to be traced back to something known. And we philosophers—have we really understood anything more by knowledge? The known, that is to say, what we are accustomed to, so that we no longer marvel at it, the commonplace, any kind of rule to which we are habituated, all and everything in which we know ourselves to be at home:—what? is our need of knowing not just this need of the known? the will to discover in everything strange, unusual, or questionable, something which no longer disquiets us? Is it not possible that it should be the instinct of fear which enjoins upon us to know? Is it not possible that the rejoicing of the discerner should be just his 301rejoicing in the regained feeling of security?... One philosopher imagined the world "known" when he had traced it back to the "idea": alas, was it not because the idea was so known, so familiar to him? because he had so much less fear of the "idea"—Oh, this moderation of the discerners! let us but look at their principles, and at their solutions of the riddle of the world in this connection! When they again find aught in things, among things, or behind things, that is unfortunately very well known to us, for example, our multiplication table, or our logic, or our willing and desiring, how happy they immediately are! For "what is known is understood": they are unanimous as to that. Even the most circumspect among them think that the known is at least more easily understood than the strange; that for example, it is methodically ordered to proceed outward from the "inner world," from "the facts of consciousness," because it is the world which is better known to us! Error of errors! The known is the accustomed, and the accustomed is the most difficult of all to "understand," that is to say, to perceive as a problem, to perceive as strange, distant, "outside of us."... The great certainty of the natural sciences in comparison with psychology and the criticism of the elements of consciousness—unnatural sciences as one might almost be entitled to call them—rests precisely on the fact that they take what is strange as their object: while it is almost like something contradictory and absurd to wish to take generally what is not strange as an object....

The Origin of our Understanding of "Knowledge."—I got this idea from the streets. I heard someone say, "I know him," so I started to wonder: what do people really mean by knowledge? What are they looking for when they seek "knowledge"? They just want to link the strange to something known. And us philosophers—do we really grasp anything deeper when we talk about knowledge? The known, meaning what we're used to, so that it no longer amazes us, the everyday stuff, any kind of standard we’re accustomed to, everything that feels familiar to us:—isn't our desire to know just a need for the known? The drive to find something in everything strange, unusual, or questionable that no longer unsettles us? Isn't it possible that it’s the instinct of fear that pushes us to know? Could it be that the joy of the one who knows comes from a regained sense of security?... One philosopher thought the world was "known" once he linked it back to the "idea": but wasn't it because the idea was so familiar to him? Because he feared the "idea" so much less—Oh, this caution of the discerners! Just look at their principles and their answers to the riddle of the world with this in mind! When they once again find something in, among, or behind things that we already know well, like our times tables, or our logic, or our desires and wants, they immediately feel so happy! Because "what is known is understood": they all agree on that. Even the most careful amongst them think that the known is at least easier to grasp than the strange; for example, they believe it’s methodical to start from the "inner world," from "the facts of consciousness," because it’s the world that is better known to us! What a big mistake! The known is what we’re used to, and what we’re used to is the hardest to "understand," meaning to see as a problem, to recognize as strange, distant, "outside of us."... The strong certainty of the natural sciences compared to psychology and the critique of consciousness elements—unnatural sciences as one might almost call them—rests exactly on the fact that they focus on what is strange: while it almost seems contradictory and absurd to want to generally focus on what is not strange as an object....

302

356.

In what Manner Europe will always become "more Artistic."—Providing a living still enforces even in the present day (in our transition period when so much ceases to enforce) a definite rôle on almost all male Europeans, their so-called callings; some have the liberty, an apparent liberty, to choose this rôle themselves, but most have it chosen for them. The result is strange enough. Almost all Europeans confound themselves with their rôle when they advance in age; they themselves are the victims of their "good acting," they have forgotten how much chance, whim and arbitrariness swayed them when their "calling" was decided—and how many other rôles they could perhaps have played: for it is now too late! Looked at more closely, we see that their characters have actually evolved out of their rôle, nature out of art. There were ages in which people believed with unshaken confidence, yea, with piety, in their predestination for this very business, for that very mode of livelihood, and would not at all acknowledge chance, or the fortuitous rôle, or arbitrariness therein. Ranks, guilds, and hereditary trade privileges succeeded, with the help of this belief, in rearing those extraordinary broad towers of society which distinguished the Middle Ages, and of which at all events one thing remains to their credit: capacity for duration (and duration is a value of the first rank on earth!). But there are ages entirely the reverse, the properly democratic ages, in which people tend to become more and more oblivious of this conviction, and a 303sort of impudent conviction and quite contrary mode of viewing things comes to the front, the Athenian conviction which is first observed in the epoch of Pericles, the American conviction of the present day, which wants also more and more to become an European conviction, whereby the individual is convinced that he can do almost anything, that he can play almost any rôle, whereby everyone makes experiments with himself, improvises, tries anew, tries with delight, whereby all nature ceases and becomes art.... The Greeks, having adopted this rôle-creed—an artist creed, if you will—underwent step by step, as is well known, a curious transformation, not in every respect worthy of imitation: they became actual stage-players; and as such they enchanted, they conquered all the world, and at last even the conqueror of the world, (for the Graeculus histrio conquered Rome, and not Greek culture, as the naïve are accustomed to say....) What I fear, however, and what is at present obvious, if we desire to perceive it, is that we modern men are quite on the same road already; and whenever man begins to discover in what respect he plays a rôle, and to what extent he can be a stage-player, he becomes a stage-player.... A new flora and fauna of men thereupon springs up, which cannot grow in more stable, more restricted eras—or is left "at the bottom," under the ban and suspicion of infamy—, thereupon the most interesting and insane periods of history always make their appearance, in which "stage-players," all kinds of stage-players, are the real masters. Precisely thereby another species of man is always more and more injured, and in 304the end made impossible: above all the great "architects"; the building power is now being paralysed; the courage that makes plans for the distant future is disheartened; there begins to be a lack of organising geniuses. Who is there who would now venture to undertake works for the completion of which millenniums would have to be reckoned upon? The fundamental belief is dying out, on the basis of which one could calculate, promise and anticipate the future in one's plan, and offer it as a sacrifice thereto, that in fact man has only value and significance in so far as he is a stone in a great building; for which purpose he has first of all to be solid, he has to be a "stone."... Above all, not a—stage-player! In short—alas! this fact will be hushed up for some considerable time to come!—that which from henceforth will no longer be built, and can no longer be built, is—a society in the old sense of the term; to build this structure everything is lacking, above all, the material. None of us are any longer material for a society: that is a truth which is seasonable at present! It seems to me a matter of indifference that meanwhile the most short-sighted, perhaps the most honest, and at any rate the noisiest species of men of the present day, our friends the Socialists, believe, hope, dream, and above all scream and scribble almost the opposite; in fact one already reads their watchword of the future: "free society," on all tables and walls. Free society? Indeed! Indeed! But you know, gentlemen, sure enough whereof one builds it? Out of wooden iron! Out of the famous wooden iron! And not even out of wooden....

In what Way Europe will always become "more Artistic."—Even today, in our transitional period when so much is falling away, a clear role is imposed on almost all European men and their so-called professions; some have the apparent freedom to choose this role for themselves, but most have it determined for them. The outcome is quite strange. Almost all Europeans become identified with their role as they age; they themselves are the victims of their "good acting," having forgotten how much chance, whim, and randomness influenced them when their "calling" was chosen—and how many other roles they could have possibly played: for now it is too late! Looking more closely, we see that their personalities have actually evolved from their role, with nature emerging from art. There were times when people believed wholeheartedly, even with reverence, in their predestination for this specific job, for that mode of survival, and would not acknowledge chance, or the random role, or arbitrariness at all. Levels, guilds, and inherited trade privileges leveraged this belief to build those extraordinary tall towers of society that characterized the Middle Ages, and at least one thing can be credited to them: their capacity for durability (and durability is a top-tier value on earth!). Yet there are times that are quite the opposite, the truly democratic times, where people become increasingly oblivious to this belief, and a sort of bold conviction and completely different perspective takes hold, the Athenian belief first seen in the era of Pericles, the modern American belief that increasingly seeks to become a European belief as well, where the individual is convinced he can do almost anything, that he can play almost any role, leading everyone to experiment with themselves, improvise, try again, and do so with enthusiasm, where all nature fades and turns into art.... The Greeks, having embraced this role-idea—an artist's creed, if you will—underwent a fascinating transformation over time, not entirely worthy of imitation: they became actual performers; and in that capacity, they captivated and conquered the entire world, and even the conqueror of the world (for the Graeculus histrio conquered Rome, and not Greek culture, as the naïve tend to say....) What I fear, however, and what is currently clear, if we are willing to see it, is that we modern people are already on the same path; and whenever someone begins to realize how they play a role, and to what extent they can be a performer, they become a performer.... A new variety of people then emerges, which cannot thrive in more stable, more restricted eras—or is left "at the bottom," under the stigma and suspicion of disgrace—then the most intriguing and chaotic periods of history make their appearance, where "performers," all kinds of performers, are the true masters. This very phenomenon increasingly harms another type of person, ultimately making them impossible to exist: especially the great "architects"; the ability to build is now being crippled; the courage to make plans for the distant future is weakened; there emerges a lack of innovative thinkers. Who would now dare to undertake projects for which millennia would need to be counted upon? The fundamental belief is fading away, based on which one could forecast, commit to, and anticipate the future in one's plans, and offer it as a sacrifice: that in fact, a person has value and significance only as a stone in a great building; for that to happen, they first need to be solid, they need to be a "stone."... Above all, not a—performer! In summary—alas! this reality will be ignored for quite a while to come!—that which will no longer be built, and can no longer be built, is—a society in the traditional sense of the term; to construct this structure, everything is lacking, especially the material. None of us are any longer material for a society: that is a truth that is relevant today! It seems to me that, meanwhile, the most short-sighted, perhaps the most honest, and certainly the loudest type of person in our time, our friends the Socialists, believe, hope, dream, and especially scream and write almost the opposite; indeed, one already sees their slogan for the future: "free society," on all tables and walls. Free society? Indeed! Indeed! But you know, gentlemen, what it's made of, right? Out of wooden iron! Out of the famous wooden iron! And not even out of wooden....

305

357.

The old Problem: "What is German?"—Let us count up apart the real acquisitions of philosophical thought for which we have to thank German intellects: are they in any allowable sense to be counted also to the credit of the whole race? Can we say that they are at the same time the work of the "German soul," or at least a symptom of it, in the sense in which we are accustomed to think, for example, of Plato's ideomania, his almost religious madness for form, as an event and an evidence of the "Greek soul"? Or would the reverse perhaps be true? Were they so individual, so much an exception to the spirit of the race, as was, for example, Goethe's Paganism with a good conscience? Or as Bismarck's Macchiavelism was with a good conscience, his so-called "practical politics" in Germany? Did our philosophers perhaps even go counter to the need of the "German soul"? In short, were the German philosophers really philosophical Germans?—I call to mind three cases. Firstly, Leibnitz's incomparable insight—with which he obtained the advantage not only over Descartes, but over all who had philosophised up to his time,—that consciousness is only an accident of mental representation, and not its necessary and essential attribute; that consequently what we call consciousness only constitutes a state of our spiritual and psychical world (perhaps a morbid state), and is far from being that world itself:—is there anything German in this thought, the profundity of which has not as yet been exhausted? Is there reason 306to think that a person of the Latin race would not readily have stumbled on this reversal of the apparent?—for it is a reversal. Let us call to mind secondly, the immense note of interrogation which Kant wrote after the notion of causality. Not that he at all doubted its legitimacy, like Hume: on the contrary, he began cautiously to define the domain within which this notion has significance generally (we have not even yet got finished with the marking out of these limits). Let us take thirdly, the astonishing hit of Hegel, who stuck at no logical usage or fastidiousness when he ventured to teach that the conceptions of kinds develop out of one another: with which theory the thinkers in Europe were prepared for the last great scientific movement, for Darwinism—for without Hegel there would have been no Darwin. Is there anything German in this Hegelian innovation which first introduced the decisive conception of evolution into science? Yes, without doubt we feel that there is something of ourselves "discovered" and divined in all three cases; we are thankful for it, and at the same time surprised; each of these three principles is a thoughtful piece of German self-confession, self-understanding, and self-knowledge. We feel with Leibnitz that "our inner world is far richer, ampler, and more concealed"; as Germans we are doubtful, like Kant, about the ultimate validity of scientific knowledge of nature, and in general about whatever can be known causaliter: the knowable as such now appears to us of less worth. We Germans should still have been Hegelians, even though there had never been a 307Hegel, inasmuch as we (in contradistinction to all Latin peoples) instinctively attribute to becoming, to evolution, a profounder significance and higher value than to that which "is"—we hardly believe at all in the validity of the concept "being." This is all the more the case because we are not inclined to concede to our human logic that it is logic in itself, that it is the only kind of logic (we should rather like, on the contrary, to convince ourselves that it is only a special case, and perhaps one of the strangest and most stupid). A fourth question would be whether also Schopenhauer with his Pessimism, that is to say the problem of the worth of existence, had to be a German. I think not. The event after which this problem was to be expected with certainty, so that an astronomer of the soul could have calculated the day and the hour for it—namely, the decay of the belief in the Christian God, the victory of scientific atheism,—is a universal European event, in which all races are to have their share of service and honour. On the contrary, it has to be ascribed precisely to the Germans—those with whom Schopenhauer was contemporary,—that they delayed this victory of atheism longest, and endangered it most. Hegel especially was its retarder par excellence, in virtue of the grandiose attempt which he made to persuade us of the divinity of existence, with the help at the very last of our sixth sense, "the historical sense." As philosopher, Schopenhauer was the first avowed and inflexible atheist we Germans have had: his hostility to Hegel had here its background. The non-divinity 308of existence was regarded by him as something understood, palpable, indisputable; he always lost his philosophical composure and got into a passion when he saw anyone hesitate and beat about the bush here. It is at this point that his thorough uprightness of character comes in: unconditional, honest atheism is precisely the preliminary condition for his raising the problem, as a final and hardwon victory of the European conscience, as the most prolific act of two thousand years' discipline to truth, which in the end no longer tolerates the lie of the belief in a God.... One sees what has really gained the victory over the Christian God—, Christian morality itself, the conception of veracity, taken ever more strictly, the confessional subtlety of the Christian conscience, translated and sublimated to the scientific conscience, to intellectual purity at any price. To look upon nature as if it were a proof of the goodness and care of a God; to interpret history in honour of a divine reason, as a constant testimony to a moral order in the world and a moral final purpose; to explain personal experiences as pious men have long enough explained them, as if everything were a dispensation or intimation of Providence, something planned and sent on behalf of the salvation of the soul: all that is now past, it has conscience against it, it is regarded by all the more acute consciences as disreputable and dishonourable, as mendaciousness, femininism, weakness, and cowardice,—by virtue of this severity, if by anything, we are good Europeans, the heirs of Europe's longest and bravest self-conquest. When we thus 309reject the Christian interpretation, and condemn its "significance" as a forgery, we are immediately confronted in a striking manner with the Schopenhauerian question: Has existence then a significance at all?—the question which will require a couple of centuries even to be completely heard in all its profundity. Schopenhauer's own answer to this question was—if I may be forgiven for saying so—a premature, juvenile reply, a mere compromise, a stoppage and sticking in the very same Christian-ascetic, moral perspectives, the belief in which had got notice to quit along with the belief in God.... But he raised the question—as a good European, as we have said, and not as a German.—Or did the Germans prove at least by the way in which they seized on the Schopenhauerian question, their inner connection and relationship to him, their preparation for his problem, and their need of it? That there has been thinking and printing even in Germany since Schopenhauer's time on the problem raised by him,—it was late enough!—does not at all suffice to enable us to decide in favour of this closer relationship; one could, on the contrary, lay great stress on the peculiar awkwardness of this post-Schopenhauerian Pessimism—Germans evidently do not behave themselves there as in their element. I do not at all allude here to Eduard von Hartmann; on the contrary, my old suspicion is not vanished even at present that he is too clever for us; I mean to say that as arrant rogue from the very first, he did not perhaps make merry solely over German Pessimism—and that in the end he might probably "bequeathe" 310to them the truth as to how far a person could bamboozle the Germans themselves in the age of bubble companies. But further, are we perhaps to reckon to the honour of Germans, the old humming-top, Bahnsen, who all his life spun about with the greatest pleasure around his realistically dialectic misery and "personal ill-luck,"—was that German? (In passing I recommend his writings for the purpose for which I myself have used them, as anti-pessimistic fare, especially on account of his elegantia psychologica, which, it seems to me, could alleviate even the most constipated body and soul). Or would it be proper to count such dilettanti and old maids as the mawkish apostle of virginity, Mainländer, among the genuine Germans? After all he was probably a Jew (all Jews become mawkish when they moralise). Neither Bahnsen, nor Mainländer, nor even Eduard von Hartmann, give us a reliable grasp of the question whether the pessimism of Schopenhauer (his frightened glance into an undeified world, which has become stupid, blind, deranged and problematic, his honourable fright) was not only an exceptional case among Germans, but a German event: while everything else which stands in the foreground, like our valiant politics and our joyful Jingoism (which decidedly enough regards everything with reference to a principle sufficiently unphilosophical: "Deutschland, Deutschland, über Alles,"[12] consequently sub specie speciei, namely, the German species), testifies very plainly to the contrary. No! 311The Germans of to-day are not pessimists! And Schopenhauer was a pessimist, I repeat it once more, as a good European, and not as a German.

The Old Problem: "What is German?"—Let's take a closer look at the true contributions of philosophical thought that we owe to German thinkers: can we fairly credit these to the entire race? Can we say they reflect the essence of the "German soul," or at least hint at it, in the same way we often consider Plato's obsession with forms as a hallmark of the "Greek soul"? Or might it be the other way around? Were these contributions so individualistic, so much an exception to the spirit of the race, like Goethe's well-intentioned Paganism? Or Bismarck's pragmatism, which he called "practical politics" in Germany? Did our philosophers perhaps even contradict the needs of the "German soul"? In short, were the German philosophers genuinely philosophical Germans?—I recall three examples. First, Leibnitz's remarkable insight, which gave him an edge not just over Descartes but all who came before him, was that consciousness is merely a byproduct of mental representation, and not its core trait; thus, what we refer to as consciousness is simply a state of our spiritual and psychological world (possibly a troubled state), and is far from being that world itself:—is there anything distinctly German about this profound thought, which has yet to be fully explored? Is there any reason to believe that a Latin thinker wouldn't have arrived at this insight?—because it is a reversal. Secondly, let's consider the significant question mark that Kant placed after the concept of causality. He didn’t doubt its legitimacy, unlike Hume; rather, he cautiously aimed to define the realm where this concept generally holds significance (a task we still haven't fully completed). Lastly, there’s the astonishing realization of Hegel, who broke free from logical conventions and asserted that the concepts of categories develop from one another: with this theory, thinkers in Europe were prepared for the last major scientific upheaval, Darwinism—because without Hegel, there could have been no Darwin. Is there anything German in this Hegelian idea that first integrated the critical notion of evolution into science? Certainly, we sense something of ourselves "discovered" and recognized in all three cases; we are grateful and somewhat surprised; each of these principles represents a thoughtful reflection, understanding, and awareness of our German identity. We realize with Leibnitz that "our inner world is far richer, broader, and more concealed"; as Germans, we are skeptical, like Kant, about the ultimate validity of scientific knowledge of nature, and our understanding of anything causally: the knowable now seems less valuable to us. We Germans would still have been Hegelians, even if Hegel had never existed, because we (in contrast to all Latin peoples) naturally attribute deeper significance and greater value to becoming, to evolution, than to that which "is"—we hardly believe in the validity of the concept "being." This holds even more true because we're not inclined to fully acknowledge our human logic as being logic in itself or the only type of logic (we prefer to convince ourselves that it's just a peculiar case, perhaps one of the strangest and most foolish). A fourth question would be whether Schopenhauer and his Pessimism, which addresses the problem of the worth of existence, had to be distinctly German. I think not. The event after which this problem became inevitable—namely, the decline of belief in the Christian God, the rise of scientific atheism—is a universal European event, where all races contributed their share of influence and recognition. In contrast, it must be noted that the Germans—those contemporary with Schopenhauer—delayed this victory of atheism the longest and jeopardized it the most. Hegel, in particular, was its greatest hindrance due to his grand attempt to convince us of the divinity of existence, utilizing, at the very end, our sixth sense, "the historical sense." As a philosopher, Schopenhauer was the first openly declared and unyielding atheist we've had: his opposition to Hegel framed this context. He considered the non-divinity of existence as a clear, undeniable truth; he would lose his philosophical calm and get frustrated if he saw anyone hesitating or beating around the bush on this matter. At this point, his unwavering integrity comes into play: unconditional, honest atheism is precisely the preliminary condition for him raising the question, as a final and hard-won victory of the European conscience, as the most fruitful result of two thousand years of truth-seeking, which ultimately no longer tolerates the lie of belief in a God.... One can see what has truly triumphed over the Christian God—Christian morality itself, the increasingly strict conception of truth, the confessional subtlety of the Christian conscience, transformed and elevated to a scientific conscience, with intellectual purity as the ultimate goal. To view nature as a sign of God's goodness and care; to interpret history as a testament to divine reason, demonstrating a moral order in the world and a moral purpose; to explain personal experiences as pious individuals have always done, as if everything were a provision or indication of divine influence, something planned for the salvation of the soul: all of that is now past, regarded by all the more discerning consciences as disreputable and dishonorable, as deceit, femininity, weakness, and cowardice—by virtue of this rigor, if by anything, we are good Europeans, the heirs of Europe's longest and bravest self-conquest. When we reject the Christian interpretation and condemn its "significance" as a forgery, we are immediately confronted with the striking Schopenhauerian question: Does existence hold any significance at all?—the question whose full depth will take a couple of centuries to unfold. Schopenhauer's own answer to this question was—if I may be blunt—a premature, juvenile response, a mere compromise, an avoidance that stuck to the very same Christian-ascetic, moral perspectives, the faith in which had been dismissed along with the belief in God.... But he raised the question—as a good European, as we've noted, and not as a German.—Did the Germans, at least, demonstrate their connection to Schopenhauer through the way they engaged with his question, showing their readiness for his problem and their need for it? The fact that there has been thinking and writing in Germany on the issue he raised since Schopenhauer's time—though it came quite late!—does not provide enough evidence to support this closer relationship; on the contrary, one might emphasize the peculiar awkwardness of this post-Schopenhauerian Pessimism—Germans surely do not behave as if they are in their element. I’m not referring to Eduard von Hartmann here; rather, my old suspicion still lingers that he is too clever for us; I mean to say that, as a notorious scoundrel from the start, he perhaps didn’t just mock German Pessimism—and that in the end he might have "bequeathed" to them the truth about how far one can deceive the Germans in an era of speculative ventures. Furthermore, should we attribute to Germans the old hum-drum thinker, Bahnsen, who spent his life delightfully spinning around his realistically dialectical misery and "personal misfortune,"—was that authentically German? (By the way, I'd recommend his writings for the same purpose for which I have used them, as anti-pessimistic material, especially for his elegantia psychologica, which I believe could soothe even the most troubled body and soul). Or should we consider such dilettantes and the sentimental apostle of virginity, Mainländer, genuine Germans? After all, he was likely a Jew (all Jews become sentimental when they moralize). Neither Bahnsen, Mainländer, nor even Eduard von Hartmann, offers a clear understanding of whether Schopenhauer’s pessimism (his apprehensive glance into an undivided world, which has become foolish, blind, deranged and dubious, his honorable fear) was merely an extraordinary case among Germans, or a German event: while everything else that stands out, like our bold politics and our cheerful nationalism (which decidedly approaches everything with reference to a principle that is sufficiently unphilosophical: "Germany, Germany, above all,"[12] consequently sub specie speciei, namely, the German species), clearly testifies otherwise. No! 311The Germans of today are not pessimists! And Schopenhauer was a pessimist, I say once more, as a good European, and not as a German.

358.

The Peasant Revolt of the Spirit.—We Europeans find ourselves in view of an immense world of ruins, where some things still tower aloft, while other objects stand mouldering and dismal, where most things however already lie on the ground, picturesque enough—where were there ever finer ruins?—overgrown with weeds, large and small. It is the Church which is this city of decay: we see the religious organisation of Christianity shaken to its deepest foundations. The belief in God is overthrown, the belief in the Christian ascetic ideal is now fighting its last fight. Such a long and solidly built work as Christianity—it was the last construction of the Romans!—could not of course be demolished all at once; every sort of earthquake had to shake it, every sort of spirit which perforates, digs, gnaws and moulders had to assist in the work of destruction. But that which is strangest is that those who have exerted themselves most to retain and preserve Christianity, have been precisely those who did most to destroy it,—the Germans. It seems that the Germans do not understand the essence of a Church. Are they not spiritual enough, or not distrustful enough to do so? In any case the structure of the Church rests on a southern freedom and liberality of spirit, and similarly on a southern suspicion of nature, man, and spirit,—it rests on a knowledge of man, 312an experience of man, entirely different from what the north has had. The Lutheran Reformation in all its length and breadth was the indignation of the simple against something "complicated." To speak cautiously, it was a coarse, honest misunderstanding, in which much is to be forgiven,—people did not understand the mode of expression of a victorious Church, and only saw corruption; they misunderstood the noble scepticism, the luxury of scepticism and toleration which every victorious, self-confident power permits.... One overlooks the fact readily enough at present that as regards all cardinal questions concerning power Luther was badly endowed; he was fatally short-sighted, superficial and imprudent—and above all, as a man sprung from the people, he lacked all the hereditary qualities of a ruling caste, and all the instincts for power; so that his work, his intention to restore the work of the Romans, merely became involuntarily and unconsciously the commencement of a work of destruction. He unravelled, he tore asunder with honest rage, where the old spider had woven longest and most carefully. He gave the sacred books into the hands of everyone,—they thereby got at last into the hands of the philologists, that is to say, the annihilators of every belief based upon books. He demolished the conception of "the Church" in that he repudiated the belief in the inspiration of the Councils: for only under the supposition that the inspiring spirit which had founded the Church still lives in it, still builds it, still goes on building its house, does the conception of "the Church" retain its power. He gave back 313to the priest sexual intercourse: but three-fourths of the reverence of which the people (and above all the women of the people) are capable, rests on the belief that an exceptional man in this respect will also be an exceptional man in other respects. It is precisely here that the popular belief in something superhuman in man, in a miracle, in the saving God in man, has its most subtle and insidious advocate. After Luther had given a wife to the priest, he had to take from him auricular confession; that was psychologically right: but thereby he practically did away with the Christian priest himself, whose profoundest utility has ever consisted in his being a sacred ear, a silent well, and a grave for secrets. "Every man his own priest"—behind such formulæ and their bucolic slyness, there was concealed in Luther the profoundest hatred of "higher men" and the rule of "higher men," as the Church had conceived them. Luther disowned an ideal which he did not know how to attain, while he seemed to combat and detest the degeneration thereof. As a matter of fact, he, the impossible monk, repudiated the rule of the homines religiosi; he consequently brought about precisely the same thing within the ecclesiastical social order that he combated so impatiently in the civic order,—namely a "peasant insurrection."—As to all that grew out of his Reformation afterwards, good and bad, which can at present be almost counted up,—who would be naïve enough to praise or blame Luther simply on account of these results? He is innocent of all; he knew not what he did. The art of making the European spirit shallower, 314especially in the north, or more good-natured, if people would rather hear it designated by a moral expression, undoubtedly took a clever step in advance in the Lutheran Reformation; and similarly there grew out of it the mobility and disquietude of the spirit, its thirst for independence, its belief in the right to freedom, and its "naturalness." If people wish to ascribe to the Reformation in the last instance the merit of having prepared and favoured that which we at present honour as "modern science," they must of course add that it is also accessory to bringing about the degeneration of the modern scholar with his lack of reverence, of shame and of profundity; and that it is also responsible for all naïve candour and plain-dealing in matters of knowledge, in short for the plebeianism of the spirit which is peculiar to the last two centuries, and from which even pessimism hitherto, has not in any way delivered us. "Modern ideas" also belong to this peasant insurrection of the north against the colder, more ambiguous, more suspicious spirit of the south, which has built itself its greatest monument in the Christian Church. Let us not forget in the end what a Church is, and especially, in contrast to every "State": a Church is above all an authoritative organisation which secures to the most spiritual men the highest rank, and believes in the power of spirituality so far as to forbid all grosser appliances of authority. Through this alone the Church is under all circumstances a nobler institution than the State.—

The Peasant Revolt of the Spirit.—We Europeans find ourselves facing a vast world of ruins, where some structures still stand tall, while others are crumbling and bleak. Most things, however, are already on the ground, looking picturesque enough—where can we find finer ruins?—overrun with weeds, both large and small. The Church is this city of decay: we see the religious organization of Christianity shaken to its core. The belief in God has been toppled, and the commitment to the Christian ascetic ideal is now fighting its final battle. Such a long-established and solidly built tradition as Christianity—it was the last creation of the Romans!—could not be destroyed all at once; every sort of earthquake had to shake it, every kind of spirit that perforates, digs, gnaws, and rots had to contribute to the destruction. What’s most curious is that those who have tried hardest to preserve Christianity are precisely those who have done the most to dismantle it—the Germans. It seems that the Germans do not grasp the essence of a Church. Are they not spiritual enough, or too trusting to understand? In any case, the structure of the Church relies on a southern freedom and openness of spirit, and similarly on a southern skepticism of nature, humanity, and spirit—it rests on a knowledge of humanity, an experience of humanity, that is entirely different from what the north has known. The Lutheran Reformation, in all its fullness, was the anger of the simple against something "complicated." To put it gently, it was a rough, honest misunderstanding, in which much can be excused—people did not understand the expression of a victorious Church and only saw corruption; they misunderstood the noble skepticism, the luxury of doubt and tolerance that every victorious, self-assured power allows.... It's easy to overlook the fact that in all matters of power, Luther was poorly equipped; he was tragically shortsighted, superficial, and reckless—and above all, as a man emerging from the people, he lacked all the inherited qualities of a ruling class, along with any instincts for power; as a result, his work, his intention to restore what the Romans created, unintentionally and unconsciously became the start of a destructive process. He unraveled, he tore apart with genuine anger, where the old spider had woven longest and most carefully. He put the sacred books in everyone’s hands—they then fell into the hands of philologists, meaning the destroyers of any belief based on texts. He dismantled the idea of "the Church" by rejecting the belief in the inspiration of the Councils: only under the assumption that the inspiring spirit which founded the Church still lives in it, still builds it, still continues to construct its house, does the idea of "the Church" retain its power. He allowed priests to have sexual relationships: however, three-quarters of the respect the people (especially the common women) are capable of, rests on the belief that an exceptional man in this area will also be exceptional in others. It is exactly here that the popular belief in something superhuman in humanity, in a miracle, in a saving God within man, finds its most subtle and insidious advocate. After Luther gave priests wives, he had to take from them the practice of auricular confession; that was psychologically correct: but in doing so, he essentially eliminated the Christian priest himself, whose deepest value has always been as a sacred listener, a silent well, and a grave for secrets. "Every man his own priest"—behind such phrases and their rustic cleverness, lay in Luther the deepest hatred of "higher men" and the rule of "higher men," as the Church had conceived them. Luther rejected an ideal he did not know how to attain, while he seemed to battle and detest its degeneration. In reality, he, the impossible monk, disowned the rule of the homines religiosi; he consequently brought about precisely the same thing within the ecclesiastical social structure that he impatiently opposed in the civic order—namely, a "peasant uprising."—As for all that emerged from his Reformation later, good and bad, which can now be almost counted—who would be naïve enough to praise or criticize Luther solely for these outcomes? He is blameless; he didn’t know what he was doing. The art of making the European spirit shallower, 314 especially in the north, or more good-natured, if people prefer a moral label, undoubtedly made a clever advance during the Lutheran Reformation; and from it also sprang the fluidity and restlessness of the spirit, its desire for independence, its belief in the right to freedom, and its "naturalness." If people want to credit the Reformation with ultimately preparing and favoring what we now honor as "modern science," they must also acknowledge that it contributed to the decline of the modern scholar with his lack of reverence, shame, and depth; and that it is also responsible for all naïve honesty and straightforwardness in knowledge, in short, for the plebeianism of the spirit that is characteristic of the last two centuries, and from which even pessimism has not delivered us. "Modern ideas" also belong to this peasant revolt of the north against the colder, more ambiguous, and more suspicious spirit of the south, which built its greatest monument in the Christian Church. Let us not forget in the end what a Church is, especially in contrast to any "State": a Church is above all an authoritative organization that grants the most spiritual individuals the highest rank and believes in the power of spirituality to the extent that it forbids all cruder forms of authority. Because of this alone, the Church is under all circumstances a nobler institution than the State.—

315

359.

Vengeance on Intellect and other Backgrounds of Morality.—Morality—where do you think it has its most dangerous and rancorous advocates?—There, for example, is an ill-constituted man, who does not possess enough of intellect to be able to take pleasure in it, and just enough of culture to be aware of the fact; bored, satiated, and a self-despiser; besides being cheated unfortunately by some hereditary property out of the last consolation, the "blessing of labour," the self-forgetfulness in the "day's work"; one who is thoroughly ashamed of his existence—perhaps also harbouring some vices,—and who on the other hand (by means of books to which he has no right, or more intellectual society than he can digest), cannot help vitiating himself more and more, and making himself vain and irritable: such a thoroughly poisoned man—for intellect becomes poison, culture becomes poison, possession becomes poison, solitude becomes poison, to such ill-constituted beings—gets at last into a habitual state of vengeance and inclination to vengeance.... What do you think he finds necessary, absolutely necessary in order to give himself the appearance in his own eyes of superiority over more intellectual men, so as to give himself the delight of perfect revenge, at least in imagination? It is always morality that he requires, one may wager on it; always the big moral words, always the high-sounding words: justice, wisdom, holiness, virtue; always the stoicism of gestures (how well stoicism hides what one does not 316possess!); always the mantle of wise silence, of affability, of gentleness, and whatever else the idealist-mantle is called in which the incurable self-despisers and also the incurably conceited walk about. Let me not be misunderstood: out of such born enemies of the spirit there arises now and then that rare specimen of humanity who is honoured by the people under the name of saint or sage: it is out of such men that there arise those prodigies of morality that make a noise, that make history,—St Augustine was one of these men. Fear of the intellect, vengeance on the intellect—Oh! how often have these powerfully impelling vices become the root of virtues! Yea, virtue itself!—And asking the question among ourselves, even the philosopher's pretension to wisdom, which has occasionally been made here and there on the earth, the maddest and most immodest of all pretensions,—has it not always been, in India as well as in Greece, above all a means of concealment? Sometimes, perhaps, from the point of view of education which hallows so many lies, it has been a tender regard for growing and evolving persons, for disciples who have often to be guarded against themselves by means of the belief in a person (by means of an error). In most cases, however, it is a means of concealment for a philosopher, behind which he seeks protection, owing to exhaustion, age, chilliness, or hardening; as a feeling of the approaching end, as the sagacity of the instinct which animals have before their death,—they go apart, remain at rest, choose solitude, creep into caves, become wise.... What? Wisdom a means of concealment of the philosopher from—intellect?—

Vengeance on Intellect and other Backgrounds of Morality.—Morality—where do you think it has its most dangerous and bitter advocates?—There’s, for example, a poorly adjusted person who lacks the intellect to enjoy it and has just enough culture to realize that; bored, jaded, and full of self-loathing; unfortunately cheated out of the last consolation of "the blessing of labor," that self-forgetfulness in a "day's work"; someone who is thoroughly ashamed of their existence—perhaps even harboring some vices—and who, on the other hand (through books he has no right to access or more intellectual company than he can handle), can’t help poisoning himself further, making himself vain and irritable: such a thoroughly corrupted individual—because intellect becomes poison, culture becomes poison, possession becomes poison, solitude becomes poison for such ill-adjusted beings—eventually falls into a habitual state of vengeance and a desire for revenge.... What do you think he finds absolutely necessary to give himself the illusion of superiority over more intellectual people, allowing him the pleasure of perfect revenge, at least in his imagination? It’s always morality that he needs, you can bet on it; always those grand moral terms, always the lofty words: justice, wisdom, holiness, virtue; always the stoicism of gestures (how well stoicism conceals what one lacks!); always wrapped in a wise silence, affability, gentleness, and whatever else the idealist's cloak is called in which the incurable self-loathers and the incurably arrogant walk around. Let me be clear: from such born enemies of the spirit, there occasionally arises that rare example of humanity who is revered by people as a saint or sage: it is from such individuals that those extraordinary moral figures emerge that make headlines and shape history—St. Augustine was one of them. Fear of intellect, vengeance on intellect—Oh! how often have these powerful vices become the roots of virtues! Yes, virtue itself!—And asking ourselves, even the philosopher's claim to wisdom, which has sometimes been asserted here and there on earth, the craziest and most audacious of all claims—has it not always been, in India as well as in Greece, above all a means of concealment? Sometimes, perhaps, from the perspective of education, which sanctifies so many lies, it’s a gentle consideration for developing individuals, for disciples who often need to be protected from themselves through belief in a person (through an error). In most cases, however, it serves as a means of concealment for a philosopher, behind which he seeks refuge, due to exhaustion, age, coldness, or hardening; like a sense of an impending end, akin to the animal instinct before death—they withdraw, remain still, choose solitude, retreat to caves, become wise.... What? Wisdom as a means of concealment for the philosopher from—intellect?—

317

360.

Two Kinds of Causes which are Confounded.—It seems to me one of my most essential steps and advances that I have learned to distinguish the cause of the action generally from the cause of action in a particular manner, say, in this direction, with this aim. The first kind of cause is a quantum of stored-up force, which waits to be used in some manner, for some purpose; the second kind of cause, on the contrary, is something quite unimportant in comparison with the first, an insignificant hazard for the most part, in conformity with which the quantum of force in question "discharges" itself in some unique and definite manner: the lucifer-match in relation to the barrel of gunpowder. Among those insignificant hazards and lucifer-matches I count all the so-called "aims," and similarly the still more so-called "occupations" of people: they are relatively optional, arbitrary, and almost indifferent in relation to the immense quantum of force which presses on, as we have said, to be used up in any way whatever. One generally looks at the matter in a different manner: one is accustomed to see the impelling force precisely in the aim (object, calling, &c.), according to a primeval error,—but it is only the directing force; the steersman and the steam have thereby been confounded. And yet it is not even always the steersman, the directing force.... Is the "aim," the "purpose," not often enough only an extenuating pretext, an additional self-blinding of conceit, which does not wish it to be said that the 318ship follows the stream into which it has accidentally run? That it "wishes" to go that way, because it must go that way? That it has a direction, sure enough, but—not a steersman? We still require a criticism of the conception of "purpose."

Two Kinds of Causes which are Confounded.—I think one of my biggest breakthroughs has been learning to differentiate between the cause of an action in general and the cause of action in a specific way, like in this direction or with this goal. The first kind of cause is a quantity of stored energy that is ready to be used for some purpose; the second kind, on the other hand, is much less significant by comparison, often just a minor chance that determines how that stored energy is "discharged" in a specific way: like a match in relation to a barrel of gunpowder. I consider all those minor chances and matches to be what people call "goals" or even "occupations": they are relatively optional, arbitrary, and almost trivial compared to the vast amount of energy that, as we've said, is eager to be expended in any way possible. Usually, people think about this differently: they tend to see the driving force as the goal (objective, vocation, etc.), due to a primitive mistake—but it’s really just the directing force; the steersman has been mixed up with the steam. Yet even that isn’t always the steersman, the directing force.... Isn’t the "goal," the "purpose," often just a way to justify ourselves, a form of self-deception, so we don’t have to admit that the 318ship is simply being carried along by the current it happened to drift into? That it "chooses" to go that way, because it has to go that way? That it has a direction, sure enough, but—not a steersman? We still need to critique the idea of "purpose."

361.

The Problem of the Actor.—The problem of the actor has disquieted me the longest; I was uncertain (and am sometimes so still) whether one could not get at the dangerous conception of "artist"—a conception hitherto treated with unpardonable leniency—from this point of view. Falsity with a good conscience; delight in dissimulation breaking forth as power, pushing aside, overflowing, and sometimes extinguishing the so-called "character"; the inner longing to play a rôle, to assume a mask, to put on an appearance; a surplus of capacity for adaptations of every kind, which can no longer gratify themselves in the service of the nearest and narrowest utility: all that perhaps does not pertain solely to the actor in himself?... Such an instinct would develop most readily in families of the lower class of the people, who have had to pass their lives in absolute dependence, under shifting pressure and constraint, who (to accommodate themselves to their conditions, to adapt themselves always to new circumstances) had again and again to pass themselves off and represent themselves as different persons,—thus having gradually qualified themselves to adjust the mantle to every wind, thereby almost becoming the mantle itself, as 319masters of the embodied and incarnated art of eternally playing the game of hide and seek, which one calls mimicry among the animals:—until at last this ability, stored up from generation to generation, has become domineering, irrational and intractable, till as instinct it begins to command the other instincts, and begets the actor, the "artist" (the buffoon, the pantaloon, the Jack-Pudding, the fool, and the clown in the first place, also the classical type of servant, Gil Blas: for in such types one has the precursors of the artist, and often enough even of the "genius"). Also under higher social conditions there grows under similar pressure a similar species of men. Only the histrionic instinct is there for the most part held strictly in check by another instinct, for example, among "diplomatists";—for the rest, I should think that it would always be open to a good diplomatist to become a good actor on the stage, provided his dignity "allowed" it. As regards the Jews, however, the adaptable people par excellence, we should, in conformity to this line of thought, expect to see among them a world-historical institution from the very beginning, for the rearing of actors, a genuine breeding-place for actors; and in fact the question is very pertinent just now: what good actor at present is not—a Jew? The Jew also, as a born literary man, as the actual ruler of the European press, exercises this power on the basis of his histrionic capacity: for the literary man is essentially an actor,—he plays the part of "expert," of "specialist."—Finally women. If we consider the whole history of 320women, are they not obliged first of all, and above all to be actresses? If we listen to doctors who have hypnotised women, or, finally, if we love them—and let ourselves be "hypnotised" by them,—what is always divulged thereby? That they "give themselves airs," even when they—"give themselves."... Woman is so artistic....

The Problem of the Actor.—The issue of the actor has troubled me for the longest time; I'm often unsure (and sometimes still am) whether we can critically examine the risky idea of "artist"—an idea that has been treated far too leniently—through this lens. There's an element of deceit combined with a clear conscience; a love for pretending, which bursts forth as power, pushing aside, overflowing, and sometimes eclipsing the so-called "character"; a deep desire to perform a role, to wear a mask, to present an appearance; an excess of ability to adapt in countless ways, which can no longer be satisfied by serving immediate and narrow needs: does all of that really only relate solely to the actor himself? Such an instinct would emerge most easily in lower-class families, who have had to live in total dependence, under constant pressure and limitations, who (to fit into their circumstances and adapt to new situations) had to repeatedly present themselves as different people—making them adept at adjusting to every wind, almost becoming the very mantle itself, as 319masters of the art of playing hide and seek, which is referred to as mimicry in animals:—until eventually this skill, passed down through generations, becomes dominant, irrational, and unmanageable, beginning to take charge of other instincts and giving rise to the actor, the "artist" (which includes the buffoon, the pantaloon, the Jack-Pudding, the fool, and the clown, as well as the classical servant type, Gil Blas: these types are the precursors of the artist, and often even of "genius"). Under higher social conditions, a similar kind of person emerges under comparable pressures. However, in such cases, the histrionic instinct is usually restrained by another instinct, such as among "diplomatists";—I believe it’s always possible for a good diplomat to become a good actor on stage, as long as his dignity permits it. Regarding the Jews, the people known for their adaptability par excellence, we should, based on this reasoning, expect to see a world-historical institution from the very beginning for training actors, a real breeding ground for actors; and in fact, the question is very relevant right now: what good actor today is not a Jew? The Jew, as a natural literary figure and the true ruler of the European press, wields this power based on his acting skills: for the literary person is essentially an actor—playing the role of "expert," of "specialist."—Finally, women. When we look at the entire history of women, aren’t they fundamentally required to be actresses? If we listen to doctors who have hypnotized women, or if we fall in love with them—and allow ourselves to be "hypnotized" by them—what does this reveal? That they "give themselves airs," even when they—"give themselves."... Women are incredibly artistic....

362.

My Belief in the Virilising of Europe.—We owe it to Napoleon (and not at all to the French Revolution, which had in view the "fraternity" of the nations, and the florid interchange of good graces among people generally) that several warlike centuries, which have not had their like in past history, may now follow one another—in short, that we have entered upon the classical age of war, war at the same time scientific and popular, on the grandest scale (as regards means, talents and discipline), to which all coming millenniums will look back with envy and awe as a work of perfection:—for the national movement out of which this martial glory springs, is only the counter-choc against Napoleon, and would not have existed without him. To him, consequently, one will one day be able to attribute the fact that man in Europe has again got the upper hand of the merchant and the Philistine; perhaps even of "woman" also, who has become pampered owing to Christianity and the extravagant spirit of the eighteenth century, and still more owing to "modern ideas." Napoleon, who saw in modern ideas, and accordingly in civilisation, something like a personal 321enemy, has by this hostility proved himself one of the greatest continuators of the Renaissance: he has brought to the surface a whole block of the ancient character, the decisive block perhaps, the block of granite. And who knows but that this block of ancient character will in the end get the upper hand of the national movement, and will have to make itself in a positive sense the heir and continuator of Napoleon:—who, as one knows, wanted one Europe, which was to be mistress of the world.—

My Belief in the Virilizing of Europe.—We owe it to Napoleon (and not at all to the French Revolution, which aimed for "fraternity" among nations and the flow of goodwill among people) that several warlike centuries, unlike any in history, may now follow one after another—in short, that we have entered into the classical age of war, a war that is both scientific and popular, on a grand scale (in terms of resources, talent, and discipline), which future generations will look back on with envy and admiration as a perfect achievement:—for the national movement that gives rise to this martial glory is merely the backlash against Napoleon, and would not have existed without him. Thus, one day we will be able to attribute to him the fact that man in Europe has once again asserted dominance over the merchant and the Philistine; perhaps even over "woman" as well, who has become spoiled due to Christianity and the extravagant spirit of the eighteenth century, and even more so because of "modern ideas." Napoleon, who viewed modern ideas and thus civilization as a personal 321enemy, has in this hostility proven himself to be one of the greatest continuators of the Renaissance: he has uncovered a substantial part of the ancient character, perhaps the decisive part, the block of granite. And who knows, maybe this block of ancient character will eventually surpass the national movement and will need to positively become the heir and continuer of Napoleon:—who, as we know, wanted one Europe, which was to be mistress of the world.—

363.

How each Sex has its Prejudice about Love.—Notwithstanding all the concessions which I am inclined to make to the monogamic prejudice, I will never admit that we should speak of equal rights in the love of man and woman: there are no such equal rights. The reason is that man and woman understand something different by the term love,—and it belongs to the conditions of love in both sexes that the one sex does not presuppose the same feeling, the same conception of "love," in the other sex. What woman understands by love is clear enough: complete surrender (not merely devotion) of soul and body, without any motive, without any reservation, rather with shame and terror at the thought of a devotion restricted by clauses or associated with conditions. In this absence of conditions her love is precisely a faith: woman has no other.—Man, when he loves a woman, wants precisely this love from her; he is consequently, as regards himself, furthest removed from the prerequisites of feminine love; 322granted, however, that there should also be men to whom on their side the demand for complete devotion is not unfamiliar,—well, they are really—not men. A man who loves like a woman becomes thereby a slave; a woman, however, who loves like a woman becomes thereby a more perfect woman.... The passion of woman in its unconditional renunciation of its own rights presupposes in fact that there does not exist on the other side an equal pathos, an equal desire for renunciation: for if both renounced themselves out of love, there would result—well, I don't know what, perhaps a horror vacui? Woman wants to be taken and accepted as a possession, she wishes to be merged in the conceptions of "possession" and "possessed"; consequently she wants one who takes, who does not offer and give himself away, but who reversely is rather to be made richer in "himself"—by the increase of power, happiness and faith which the woman herself gives to him. Woman gives herself, man takes her.—I do not think one will get over this natural contrast by any social contract, or with the very best will to do justice, however desirable it may be to avoid bringing the severe, frightful, enigmatical, and unmoral elements of this antagonism constantly before our eyes. For love, regarded as complete, great, and full, is nature, and as nature, is to all eternity something "unmoral."—Fidelity is accordingly included in woman's love, it follows from the definition thereof; with man fidelity may readily result in consequence of his love, perhaps as gratitude or idiosyncrasy of taste, and so-called elective affinity, but it does not 323belong to the essence of his love—and indeed so little, that one might almost be entitled to speak of a natural opposition between love and fidelity in man, whose love is just a desire to possess, and not a renunciation and giving away; the desire to possess, however, comes to an end every time with the possession.... As a matter of fact it is the more subtle and jealous thirst for possession in the man (who is rarely and tardily convinced of having this "possession"), which makes his love continue; in that case it is even possible that the love may increase after the surrender,—he does not readily own that a woman has nothing more to "surrender" to him.—

How each Gender has its Bias about Love.—Despite all the acknowledgments I’m willing to make regarding the bias of monogamy, I cannot agree that we should discuss equal rights in love between men and women: there are no such equal rights. The reason is that men and women interpret the term love differently,—and it's a characteristic of love in both genders that one gender does not assume the same feelings or understanding of "love" in the other. What a woman understands by love is quite clear: total surrender (not just devotion) of both soul and body, without any motive, without any reservations, and rather with shame and fear at the thought of a devotion limited by conditions or clauses. In this lack of conditions, her love is precisely a faith: that’s all there is for her.—When a man loves a woman, he wants that same love from her; he is thus, in terms of himself, farthest from the prerequisites of feminine love; 322although, it's true that there are men who also feel a strong demand for complete devotion,—well, they’re really—not men. A man who loves like a woman becomes a slave; but a woman who loves like a woman becomes a more perfect woman.... A woman's passion, characterized by its unconditional renunciation of its own rights, assumes that on the other side there is not an equal pathos, an equal wish for renunciation: because if both were to renounce for love, what would come of it? Perhaps a horror vacui? A woman wants to be taken and accepted as a possession; she wants to be interwoven with the ideas of "possession" and "possessed"; so she desires someone who takes, who doesn’t just offer himself, but rather who should become richer in "himself" through the added power, happiness, and faith that the woman provides him. The woman gives herself, the man takes her.—I don’t believe this natural contrast can be overcome by any social contract, or with the best intentions to treat everyone fairly, no matter how desirable it is to avoid constantly confronting the severe, frightening, mysterious, and immoral aspects of this conflict. Because love, viewed as complete, grand, and whole, is a part of nature, and as nature, it will forever be something "immoral."—Fidelity is inherently part of a woman’s love, it follows from its definition; in the case of a man, fidelity may arise as a result of his love, perhaps as gratitude or a matter of preference, and so-called elective affinity, but it does not 323constitute the essence of his love—and indeed not to such an extent that one might almost argue that there’s a natural opposition between love and fidelity in men, whose love is merely a desire to possess, and not a renunciation or giving away; however, the desire to possess ends every time it reaches possession.... In fact, it’s the more subtle and jealous thirst for possession in the man (who is rarely and slowly convinced that he has this "possession") that keeps his love alive; in such cases, it’s even possible that love can grow after the surrender,—he doesn’t easily accept that a woman has nothing more to "surrender" to him.—

364.

The Anchorite Speaks.—The art of associating with men rests essentially on one's skilfulness (which presupposes long exercise) in accepting a repast, in taking a repast in the cuisine of which one has no confidence. Provided one comes to the table with the hunger of a wolf everything is easy ("the worst society gives thee experience"—as Mephistopheles says); but one has not got this wolf's-hunger when one needs it! Alas! how difficult are our fellow-men to digest! First principle: to stake one's courage as in a misfortune, to seize boldly, to admire oneself at the same time, to take one's repugnance between one's teeth, to cram down one's disgust. Second principle: to "improve" one's fellow-man, by praise for example, so that he may begin to sweat out his self-complacency; or to seize a tuft of his good or "interesting" qualities, and pull at it till one gets his whole virtue out, and can 324put him under the folds of it. Third principle: self-hypnotism. To fix one's eye on the object of one's intercourse, as on a glass knob, until, ceasing to feel pleasure or pain thereat, one falls asleep unobserved, becomes rigid, and acquires a fixed pose: a household recipe used in married life and in friendship, well tested and prized as indispensable, but not yet scientifically formulated. Its proper name is—patience.—

The Anchorite Speaks.—The skill of connecting with others really depends on how good you are (which takes a lot of practice) at handling a meal when you have no confidence in the food being served. As long as you show up at the table hungry like a wolf, everything’s easy ("the worst company gives you experience"—as Mephistopheles puts it); but you don’t have this wolf's hunger when you need it! Sadly, our fellow humans can be hard to digest! First rule: brace yourself like you're facing a disaster, take bold action, admire yourself at the same time, bite back your aversion and swallow your disgust. Second rule: “improve” the people around you with praise, for example, so they can start to shed their self-satisfaction; or grab onto some of their good or "interesting" traits and tug at them until you can pull out their whole virtue and wrap them in it. Third rule: self-hypnosis. Focus your gaze on the person you’re interacting with, like staring at a glass knob, until you stop feeling pleasure or pain from it, and then you fall asleep unnoticed, become stiff, and strike a fixed pose: a household trick used in marriage and friendship, well tested and appreciated as essential, but not yet scientifically defined. Its proper name is—patience.—

365.

The Anchorite Speaks once more.—We also have intercourse with "men," we also modestly put on the clothes in which people know us (as such), respect us and seek us; and we thereby mingle in society, that is to say, among the disguised who do not wish to be so called; we also do like all prudent masqueraders, and courteously dismiss all curiosity which has not reference merely to our "clothes." There are however other modes and artifices for "going about" among men and associating with them: for example, as a ghost,—which is very advisable when one wants to scare them, and get rid of them easily. An example: a person grasps at us, and is unable to seize us. That frightens him. Or we enter by a closed door. Or when the lights are extinguished. Or after we are dead. The latter is the artifice of posthumous men par excellence. ("What?" said such a one once impatiently, "do you think we should delight in enduring this strangeness, coldness, death-stillness about us, all this subterranean, hidden, dim, undiscovered solitude, which is called life with us, and 325might just as well be called death, if we were not conscious of what will arise out of us,—and that only after our death shall we attain to our life and become living, ah! very living! we posthumous men!"—)

The Anchorite Speaks once more.—We also interact with "people," and we also modestly wear the clothes that let others recognize us (as such), respect us, and seek us out; this way, we blend into society, meaning we mingle with those who are disguised and don’t want to be identified as such; we also act like all wise masqueraders, graciously dismissing any curiosity that isn't just about our "clothes." However, there are other ways and tricks to "move among" people and connect with them: for instance, like a ghost—which is quite effective when you want to scare them off quickly. An example: someone reaches for us and can’t grasp us. That frightens them. Or we come in through a shut door. Or when the lights go out. Or after we’ve died. The latter is the trick of posthumous beings par excellence. ("What?" one of them said once impatiently, "do you think we enjoy enduring this oddness, coldness, deathly stillness around us, all this underground, hidden, dim, undiscovered solitude that we call life, which could just as easily be named death, if we weren’t aware of what will arise from us,—and that only after our death will we find our life and become truly alive, ah! very alive! we posthumous beings!"—)

366.

At the Sight of a Learned Book.—We do not belong to those who only get their thoughts from books, or at the prompting of books,—it is our custom to think in the open air, walking, leaping, climbing, or dancing on lonesome mountains by preference, or close to the sea, where even the paths become thoughtful. Our first question concerning the value of a book, a man, or a piece of music is: Can it walk? or still better: Can it dance?... We seldom read; we do not read the worse for that—oh, how quickly do we divine how a person has arrived at his thoughts:—whether sitting before an ink-bottle with compressed belly and head bent over the paper: oh, how quickly we are then done with his book! The constipated bowels betray themselves, one may wager on it, just as the atmosphere of the room, the ceiling of the room, the smallness of the room, betray themselves.—These were my feelings as I was closing a straightforward, learned book, thankful, very thankful, but also relieved.... In the book of a learned man there is almost always something oppressive and oppressed: the "specialist" comes to light somewhere, his ardour, his seriousness, his wrath, his over-estimation of the nook in which he sits and spins, his hump—every specialist has his hump. A learned book also always mirrors a distorted soul: every trade 326distorts. Look at our friends again with whom we have spent our youth, after they have taken possession of their science: alas! how the reverse has always taken place! Alas! how they themselves are now for ever occupied and possessed by their science! Grown into their nook, crumpled into unrecognisability, constrained, deprived of their equilibrium, emaciated and angular everywhere, perfectly round only in one place,—we are moved and silent when we find them so. Every handicraft, granting even that it has a golden floor,[13] has also a leaden ceiling above it, which presses and presses on the soul, till it is pressed into a strange and distorted shape. There is nothing to alter here. We need not think that it is at all possible to obviate this disfigurement by any educational artifice whatever. Every kind of perfection is purchased at a high price on earth, where everything is perhaps purchased too dear; one is an expert in one's department at the price of being also a victim of one's department. But you want to have it otherwise—"more reasonable," above all more convenient—is it not so, my dear contemporaries? Very well! But then you will also immediately get something different: that is to say, instead of the craftsman and expert, the literary man, the versatile, "many-sided" littérateur, who to be sure lacks the hump—not taking account of the hump or bow which he makes before you as the shopman of the intellect and the "porter" of culture—, the littérateur, who is really nothing, but "represents" 327almost everything: he plays and "represents" the expert, he also takes it upon himself in all modesty to see that he is paid, honoured and celebrated in this position.—No, my learned friends! I bless you even on account of your humps! And also because like me you despise the littérateurs and parasites of culture! And because you do not know how to make merchandise of your intellect! And have so many opinions which cannot be expressed in money value! And because you do not represent anything which you are not! Because your sole desire is to become masters of your craft; because you reverence every kind of mastership and ability, and repudiate with the most relentless scorn everything of a make-believe, half-genuine, dressed-up, virtuoso, demagogic, histrionic nature in litteris et artibus—all that which does not convince you by its absolute genuineness of discipline and preparatory training, or cannot stand your test! (Even genius does not help a person to get over such a defect, however well it may be able to deceive with regard to it: one understands this if one has once looked closely at our most gifted painters and musicians,—who almost without exception, can artificially and supplementarily appropriate to themselves (by means of artful inventions of style, make-shifts, and even principles), the appearance of that genuineness, that solidity of training and culture; to be sure, without thereby deceiving themselves, without thereby imposing perpetual silence on their bad consciences. For you know well enough that all great modern artists suffer from bad consciences?...)

At the Sight of a Learned Book.—We’re not the type of people who only draw our thoughts from books or because of books—our habit is to think outdoors, walking, jumping, climbing, or preferably dancing on lonely mountains or near the sea, where even the paths make us contemplative. Our first question about the value of a book, a person, or a piece of music is: Can it walk? Or even better: Can it dance?… We rarely read; we’re not worse off for it—oh, how quickly we can sense how someone has come to their thoughts:—whether they’re sitting by an ink bottle with a clenched stomach, head bent over the paper: oh, how quickly we finish their book! The tightness betrays itself, you can bet on it, just like the atmosphere of the room, the ceiling, the smallness of the room betray themselves.—These were my feelings as I closed a straightforward, learned book, thankful, very thankful, but also relieved…. In the book of a learned person, there’s often something heavy and repressed: the “specialist” emerges somewhere, their passion, seriousness, anger, their inflated view of the little corner they occupy, their hump—every specialist has their hump. A learned book also always reflects a distorted soul: every profession distorts. Look at our friends again with whom we spent our youth, after they’ve embraced their science: alas! the opposite always happens! Alas! how they now become forever consumed and possessed by their science! Caught in their little nook, crammed into unrecognizability, constrained, stripped of their balance, frail and angular everywhere, perfectly round only in one spot—we are moved and silent when we find them like this. Every craft, even if it has a golden foundation,[13] also has a heavy ceiling above it, pressing down on the soul, until it is forced into a strange and distorted shape. There’s nothing to change here. We shouldn’t think it’s possible to avoid this disfigurement through any educational tricks. Every type of perfection comes at a steep price on this earth, where everything might be overpriced; one becomes an expert in their field at the cost of also being a victim of it. But you want it differently—"more reasonable," above all more convenient—isn’t that right, my dear contemporaries? Very well! But then you’ll also instantly get something different: namely, instead of the craftsman and expert, the literary person, the versatile, "many-sided" writer, who lacks the hump—not counting the hump or bow they put on for you as the seller of intellect and the "porter" of culture—the writer, who is really nothing but "represents" almost everything: they play and "represent" the expert, and also take it upon themselves with all modesty to ensure they are paid, honored, and celebrated in this role.—No, my learned friends! I bless you also for your humps! And also because like me, you look down on the writers and cultural parasites! And because you don’t know how to commodify your intellect! And you have so many opinions that can’t be given a monetary value! And because you don’t represent anything that you are not! Because your only wish is to master your craft; because you respect every form of mastery and skill and reject with the most unrelenting scorn everything that is make-believe, half-real, dressed-up, virtuoso, demagogic, histrionic in litteris et artibus—all that which doesn’t convince you with its absolute genuineness of discipline and preparation, or can’t stand your test! (Even genius doesn’t help a person overcome such a flaw, no matter how well it may deceive regarding it: one understands this if one has ever looked closely at our most gifted painters and musicians—who almost without exception can artificially and supplementarily appropriate the appearance of that genuineness, that solidity of training and culture through clever stylistic tricks, make-shifts, and even principles; of course, without thereby deceiving themselves, without imposing a lasting silence on their guilty consciences. For you know well enough that all great modern artists struggle with guilty consciences?…)

367.

How one has to Distinguish first of all in Works of Art.—Everything that is thought, versified, painted and composed, yea, even built and moulded, belongs either to monologic art, or to art before witnesses. Under the latter there is also to be included the apparently monologic art which involves the belief in God, the whole lyric of prayer; because for a pious man there is no solitude,—we, the godless, have been the first to devise this invention. I know of no profounder distinction in all the perspective of the artist than this: Whether he looks at his growing work of art (at "himself—") with the eye of the witness; or whether he "has forgotten the world," as is the essential thing in all monologic art,——it rests on forgetting, it is the music of forgetting.

How one has to Distinguish first of all in Works of Art.—Everything that is thought, written, painted, and composed, even built and shaped, falls into either monologic art or art made for an audience. Included in the latter is the seemingly monologic art that incorporates belief in God, the entire lyric of prayer; because for a believer, there is no solitude—we, the non-believers, were the first to come up with this idea. I don’t know of a deeper distinction in all the perspective of the artist than this: Whether he views his developing work of art (at "himself—") with the perspective of an observer; or whether he "has forgotten the world," which is the key aspect of all monologic art—it relies on forgetting, it is the music of forgetting.

328

328

368.

The Cynic Speaks.—My objections to Wagner's music are physiological objections. Why should I therefore begin by disguising them under æsthetic formulæ? My "point" is that I can no longer breathe freely when this music begins to operate on me; my foot immediately becomes indignant at it and rebels: for what it needs is time, dance and march; it demands first of all from music the ecstasies which are in good walking, striding, leaping and dancing. But do not my stomach, my heart, my blood and my bowels also protest? Do I not become hoarse unawares under its influence? And then I ask myself what it is really that my body wants from music generally. 329I believe it wants to have relief: so that all animal functions should be accelerated by means of light, bold, unfettered, self-assured rhythms; so that brazen, leaden life should be gilded by means of golden, good, tender harmonies. My melancholy would fain rest its head in the hiding-places and abysses of perfection: for this reason I need music. What do I care for the drama! What do I care for the spasms of its moral ecstasies, in which the "people" have their satisfaction! What do I care for the whole pantomimic hocus-pocus of the actor!... It will now be divined that I am essentially anti-theatrical at heart,—but Wagner on the contrary, was essentially a man of the stage and an actor, the most enthusiastic mummer-worshipper that has ever existed, even among musicians!... And let it be said in passing that if Wagner's theory was that "drama is the object, and music is only the means to it,"—his practice on the contrary from beginning to end has been to the effect that "attitude is the object, drama and even music can never be anything else but means to that." Music as a means of elucidating, strengthening and intensifying dramatic poses and the actor's appeal to the senses, and Wagnerian drama only an opportunity for a number of dramatic attitudes! Wagner possessed, along with all other instincts, the dictatorial instinct of a great actor in all and everything, and as has been said, also as a musician.—I once made this clear with some trouble to a thorough-going Wagnerian, and I had reasons for adding:—"Do be a little more honest with yourself: we are not now in the theatre. In the theatre we are only 330honest in the mass; as individuals we lie, we belie even ourselves. We leave ourselves at home when we go to the theatre; we there renounce the right to our own tongue and choice, to our taste, and even to our courage as we possess it and practise it within our own four walls in relation to God and man. No one takes his finest taste in art into the theatre with him, not even the artist who works for the theatre: there one is people, public, herd, woman, Pharisee, voting animal, democrat, neighbour, and fellow-creature; there even the most personal conscience succumbs to the levelling charm of the 'great multitude'; there stupidity operates as wantonness and contagion; there the neighbour rules, there one becomes a neighbour...." (I have forgotten to mention what my enlightened Wagnerian answered to my physiological objections: "So the fact is that you are really not healthy enough for our music?"—)

The Cynic Speaks.—My issues with Wagner's music are physical issues. So why should I hide them behind artistic terms? My main issue is that I can no longer breathe freely when this music starts affecting me; my foot immediately reacts with anger and resistance: it craves time, dance, and a march; it first demands from music the ecstasy found in good walking, striding, leaping, and dancing. But don’t my stomach, heart, blood, and bowels also protest? Do I not find myself getting hoarse without realizing it under its influence? Then I ask myself what it is that my body wants from music in general. I believe it wants relief: for all bodily functions to be invigorated through light, bold, unrestricted, confident rhythms; for heavy, dull life to be brightened by golden, good, gentle harmonies. My melancholy longs to rest its head in the hiding places and depths of perfection: this is why I need music. What do I care about the drama! What do I care about the spasms of its moral ecstasies, in which the "people" find satisfaction! What do I care about the whole pantomime of the actor!... It becomes clear that I am fundamentally anti-theatrical at heart,—but Wagner, on the other hand, was very much a man of the stage and an actor, the most passionate worshipper of performance that has ever existed, even among musicians!... And let it be noted that while Wagner’s theory was that "drama is the object, and music is only the means," his practice has consistently shown that "attitude is the object, drama and even music can never be anything else but means to that." Music serves as a tool for clarifying, strengthening, and deepening dramatic poses and the actor's appeal to the senses, and Wagnerian drama is just an opportunity for a series of dramatic attitudes! Wagner had, along with all other instincts, the commanding instinct of a great actor in all things, and as mentioned, also as a musician.—I once tried to clarify this with difficulty to a staunch Wagnerian, and I felt the need to add:—"Please be a little more honest with yourself: we are not in a theatre now. In the theatre, we are only honest en masse; as individuals we lie, we even deceive ourselves. We leave our true selves at home when we go to the theatre; we give up our right to our own voice and choices, to our taste, and even to our courage as we know and practice it within our own four walls in relation to God and man. No one brings their best taste in art into the theatre, not even the artist working for the theatre: there one is just people, public, herd, woman, Pharisee, voting animal, democrat, neighbor, and fellow human; there even the most personal conscience succumbs to the leveling charm of the 'great multitude'; there stupidity acts as recklessness and spreads like a disease; there the neighbor is in charge, and one becomes a neighbor...." (I forgot to mention what my enlightened Wagnerian replied to my physical issues: "So the truth is that you just aren't healthy enough for our music?"—)

369.

Juxtapositions in us.—Must we not acknowledge to ourselves, we artists, that there is a strange discrepancy in us; that on the one hand our taste, and on the other hand our creative power, keep apart in an extraordinary manner, continue apart, and have a separate growth;—I mean to say that they have entirely different gradations and tempi of age, youth, maturity, mellowness and rottenness? So that, for example, a musician could all his life create things which contradict all that his ear and heart, spoilt as they are for listening, prize, relish and prefer:—he would not even require 331to be aware of the contradiction! As an almost painfully regular experience shows, a person's taste can easily outgrow the taste of his power, even without the latter being thereby paralysed or checked in its productivity. The reverse, however, can also to some extent take place,—and it is to this especially that I should like to direct the attention of artists. A constant producer, a man who is a "mother" in the grand sense of the term, one who no longer knows or hears of anything except pregnancies and child-beds of his spirit, who has no time at all to reflect and make comparisons with regard to himself and his work, who is also no longer inclined to exercise his taste, but simply forgets it, letting it take its chance of standing, lying or falling,—perhaps such a man at last produces works on which he is then not at all fit to pass a judgment: so that he speaks and thinks foolishly about them and about himself. This seems to me almost the normal condition with fruitful artists,—nobody knows a child worse than its parents—and the rule applies even (to take an immense example) to the entire Greek world of poetry and art, which was never "conscious" of what it had done....

Contradictions within us.—Don’t we have to admit to ourselves, we artists, that there’s a strange gap within us? On one hand, our taste and, on the other hand, our creative ability seem to grow completely separately and at different rates. What I mean is that they have totally different levels and paces of age, youth, maturity, richness, and decay. For instance, a musician might create things throughout his life that go against everything his ear and heart—being spoiled by listening—prize, enjoy, and prefer. He might not even need to recognize this contradiction! As painfully consistent experience shows, someone’s taste can easily outpace their creative ability, without the latter being hindered in its productivity. However, the opposite can also happen to some degree, and it's this that I want to particularly point out to artists. A constant creator, someone who embodies the term "mother" in a broad sense—someone who is only aware of the births and creations of their spirit, who has no time to reflect or compare themselves and their work, and who has forgotten to exercise their taste, leaving it to stand, lie, or fall as it may—such a person might ultimately produce works on which they are not at all qualified to judge: leading them to speak and think foolishly about those works and about themselves. This seems like the common condition for productive artists—no one knows a child worse than its parents—and the rule even applies, to take a huge example, to the entire Greek world of poetry and art, which was never "aware" of what it had created....

370.

What is Romanticism?—It will be remembered perhaps, at least among my friends, that at first I assailed the modern world with some gross errors and exaggerations, but at any rate with hope in my heart. I recognised—who knows from what personal experiences?—the philosophical pessimism 332of the nineteenth century as the symptom of a higher power of thought, a more daring courage and a more triumphant plenitude of life than had been characteristic of the eighteenth century, the age of Hume, Kant, Condillac, and the sensualists: so that the tragic view of things seemed to me the peculiar luxury of our culture, its most precious, noble, and dangerous mode of prodigality; but nevertheless, in view of its overflowing wealth, a justifiable luxury. In the same way I interpreted for myself German music as the expression of a Dionysian power in the German soul: I thought I heard in it the earthquake by means of which a primeval force that had been imprisoned for ages was finally finding vent—indifferent as to whether all that usually calls itself culture was thereby made to totter. It is obvious that I then misunderstood what constitutes the veritable character both of philosophical pessimism and of German music,—namely, their Romanticism. What is Romanticism? Every art and every philosophy may be regarded as a healing and helping appliance in the service of growing, struggling life: they always presuppose suffering and sufferers. But there are two kinds of sufferers: on the one hand those that suffer from overflowing vitality, who need Dionysian art, and require a tragic view and insight into life; and on the other hand those who suffer from reduced vitality, who seek repose, quietness, calm seas, and deliverance from themselves through art or knowledge, or else intoxication, spasm, bewilderment and madness. All Romanticism in art and knowledge responds to the twofold 333craving of the latter; to them Schopenhauer as well as Wagner responded (and responds),—to name those most celebrated and decided romanticists who were then misunderstood by me (not however to their disadvantage, as may be reasonably conceded to me). The being richest in overflowing vitality, the Dionysian God and man, may not only allow himself the spectacle of the horrible and questionable, but even the fearful deed itself, and all the luxury of destruction, disorganisation and negation. With him evil, senselessness and ugliness seem as it were licensed, in consequence of the overflowing plenitude of procreative, fructifying power, which can convert every desert into a luxuriant orchard. Conversely, the greatest sufferer, the man poorest in vitality, would have most need of mildness, peace and kindliness in thought and action: he would need, if possible, a God who is specially the God of the sick, a "Saviour"; similarly he would have need of logic, the abstract intelligibility of existence—for logic soothes and gives confidence;—in short he would need a certain warm, fear-dispelling narrowness and imprisonment within optimistic horizons. In this manner I gradually began to understand Epicurus, the opposite of a Dionysian pessimist;—in a similar manner also the "Christian," who in fact is only a type of Epicurean, and like him essentially a romanticist:—and my vision has always become keener in tracing that most difficult and insidious of all forms of retrospective inference, which most mistakes have been made—the inference from the work to its author, from the deed to its doer, from the ideal to him who 334needs it, from every mode of thinking and valuing to the imperative want behind it.—In regard to all æsthetic values I now avail myself of this radical distinction: I ask in every single case, "Has hunger or superfluity become creative here?" At the outset another distinction might seem to recommend itself more—it is far more conspicuous,—namely, to have in view whether the desire for rigidity, for perpetuation, for being is the cause of the creating, or the desire for destruction, for change, for the new, for the future—for becoming. But when looked at more carefully, both these kinds of desire prove themselves ambiguous, and are explicable precisely according to the before-mentioned and, as it seems to me, rightly preferred scheme. The desire for destruction, change and becoming, may be the expression of overflowing power, pregnant with futurity (my terminus for this is of course the word "Dionysian"); but it may also be the hatred of the ill-constituted, destitute and unfortunate, which destroys, and must destroy, because the enduring, yea, all that endures, in fact all being, excites and provokes it. To understand this emotion we have but to look closely at our anarchists. The will to perpetuation requires equally a double interpretation. It may on the one hand proceed from gratitude and love:—art of this origin will always be an art of apotheosis, perhaps dithyrambic, as with Rubens, mocking divinely, as with Hafiz, or clear and kind-hearted as with Goethe, and spreading a Homeric brightness and glory over everything (in this case I speak of Apollonian art). It may also, however, be the tyrannical will of a 335sorely-suffering, struggling or tortured being, who would like to stamp his most personal, individual and narrow characteristics, the very idiosyncrasy of his suffering, as an obligatory law and constraint on others; who, as it were, takes revenge on all things, in that he imprints, enforces and brands his image, the image of his torture, upon them. The latter is romantic pessimism in its most extreme form, whether it be as Schopenhauerian will-philosophy, or as Wagnerian music:—romantic pessimism, the last great event in the destiny of our civilisation. (That there may be quite a different kind of pessimism, a classical pessimism—this presentiment and vision belongs to me, as something inseparable from me, as my proprium and ipsissimum; only that the word "classical" is repugnant to my ears, it has become far too worn; too indefinite and indistinguishable. I call that pessimism of the future,—for it is coming! I see it coming!—Dionysian pessimism.)

What is Romanticism?—It might be remembered, at least by my friends, that at first I attacked the modern world with some major misconceptions and exaggerations, but at least I had hope in my heart. I recognized—who can say from what personal experiences?—the philosophical pessimism of the nineteenth century as a sign of a higher level of thought, greater courage, and a more victorious plenitude of life than was typical of the eighteenth century, the age of Hume, Kant, Condillac, and the sensualists. To me, the tragic view of life seemed to be the unique luxury of our culture, its most precious, noble, and dangerous way of indulgence; yet, considering its abundant wealth, it was a justifiable luxury. Similarly, I interpreted German music as the expression of a Dionysian power within the German soul: I believed I could hear in it the earthquake through which an ancient force, long trapped, was finally breaking free—regardless of whether this caused everything that usually calls itself culture to tremble. Clearly, I misunderstood what truly defines both philosophical pessimism and German music—namely, their Romanticism. What is Romanticism? Every form of art and philosophy can be seen as a healing and supportive tool for the flourishing, struggling life: they always imply suffering and those who suffer. But there are two types of sufferers: on one hand, those who suffer from overflowing vitality, who need Dionysian art and a tragic perspective and understanding of life; on the other hand, those who suffer from reduced vitality, who seek peace, calmness, quiet seas, and escape from themselves through art or knowledge, or else seek intoxication, spasms, bewilderment, and madness. All of Romanticism in art and knowledge answers to the twofold demand of the latter; both Schopenhauer and Wagner responded (and continue to respond) to these needs, to name the most celebrated and clear romanticists who were then misunderstood by me (though not to their detriment, as might be reasonably accepted). The one rich in overflowing vitality, the Dionysian God and man, may not only allow himself to witness the terrible and questionable but even the frightful act itself, indulging in all the luxury of destruction, disorganization, and negation. For him, evil, senselessness, and ugliness seem, in a way, permissible, due to the overflowing abundance of creative and life-giving power that can transform any wasteland into a lush orchard. Conversely, the greatest sufferer, the person with the least vitality, would most require gentleness, peace, and kindness in thought and action: he would need, if possible, a God who is specifically the God of the sick, a "Savior"; similarly, he would need logic, the abstract clarity of existence—for logic calms and reassures;—in short, he would need a warm, fear-dispelling narrowness and confinement within hopeful horizons. Gradually, I began to understand Epicurus, the opposite of a Dionysian pessimist; in a similar way, I also began to see the "Christian," who is effectively just an Epicurean type and, like him, fundamentally a romanticist:—and my insight has continually sharpened in recognizing that most complex and deceptive form of retrospective inference, which has caused the most mistakes—the inference from the work to its creator, from the act to its performer, from the ideal to the one who 334needs it, from every way of thinking and valuing to the essential want behind it.—Regarding all aesthetic values, I now apply this fundamental distinction: I ask in each case, "Has hunger or excess become creative here?" At first, another distinction might seem more appealing—it is much more prominent—namely, whether the desire for rigidity, for preservation, for being is the cause of creation, or the desire for destruction, for change, for the new, for the future—for becoming. But upon closer examination, both types of desire reveal themselves to be ambiguous and can be explained according to the previously mentioned and, as I believe, correctly preferred framework. The desire for destruction, change, and becoming may express overflowing power, rich with potential (my terminus for this is the word "Dionysian"); yet it may also stem from a loathing for the poorly formed, the lacking, and the unfortunate, which seeks to destroy, and must destroy, because the enduring, indeed, all that exists, provokes and incites it. To grasp this emotion, we need only look closely at our anarchists. The will to perpetuation also requires a dual interpretation. It may originate from gratitude and love:—art derived from this will always be of an apotheosis nature, perhaps exuberant, like Rubens, divinely mocking like Hafiz, or clear and kind-hearted like Goethe, spreading a Homeric brightness and glory over everything (in this instance, I refer to Apollonian art). However, it may also represent the tyrannical will of a sorely suffering, struggling, or tortured person, who desires to impose his most personal, individual, and narrow traits, the very essence of his pain, as a mandatory law and constraint on others; who, in a sense, seeks revenge on all things by stamping, enforcing, and branding his image, the image of his suffering, onto them. The latter is romantic pessimism in its most extreme form, whether as Schopenhauerian will-philosophy or as Wagnerian music:—romantic pessimism, the last great moment in the trajectory of our civilization. (That there may be a completely different kind of pessimism, a classical pessimism—this premonition and vision belongs to me as something inseparable from me, as my proprium and ipsissimum; only the word "classical" grates on my ears, as it has become far too worn; too vague and indistinct. I refer to that pessimism of the future,—for it is on its way! I see it approaching!—Dionysian pessimism.)

371.

We Unintelligible Ones.—Have we ever complained among ourselves of being misunderstood, misjudged, and confounded with others; of being calumniated, misheard, and not heard? That is just our lot—alas, for a long time yet! say, to be modest, until 1901—, it is also our distinction; we should not have sufficient respect for ourselves if we wished it otherwise. People confound us with others—the reason of it is that we ourselves grow, we change continually, we cast off old bark, we still slough every spring, we always become younger, 336higher, stronger, as men of the future, we thrust our roots always more powerfully into the deep—into evil—, while at the same time we embrace the heavens ever more lovingly, more extensively, and suck in their light ever more eagerly with all our branches and leaves. We grow like trees—that is difficult to understand, like all life!—not in one place, but everywhere, not in one direction only, but upwards and outwards, as well as inwards and downwards. At the same time our force shoots forth in stem, branches, and roots; we are really no longer free to do anything separately, or to be anything separately.... Such is our lot, as we have said: we grow in height; and even should it be our calamity—for we dwell ever closer to the lightning!—well, we honour it none the less on that account; it is that which we do not wish to share with others, which we do not wish to bestow upon others, the fate of all elevation, our fate....

We Unintelligible Ones.—Have we ever complained to each other about being misunderstood, misjudged, and mixed up with others; about being slandered, misheard, and ignored? That's just our situation—sadly, for a long time to come! Let’s be modest and say until 1901—it’s also our distinction; we wouldn’t have enough self-respect if we wanted it to be different. People mix us up with others—the reason is that we’re always growing, constantly changing, shedding old layers, and continually renewing ourselves. Every spring we rejuvenate, becoming younger, taller, and stronger as the people of the future, driving our roots deeper into the ground—into darkness—while also reaching out to the heavens more lovingly and broadly, absorbing their light more eagerly with all our branches and leaves. We grow like trees—that's hard to grasp, like all life!—not in one place, but everywhere, not just upwards but also outwards, inwards, and downwards. At the same time, our energy extends in stems, branches, and roots; we can no longer do anything separately, or be anything separately... Such is our fate, as we’ve said: we grow in height; and even if it is our misfortune—because we draw ever closer to the lightning!—we still honor it; it’s something we don’t want to share with others, something we won’t give to others, the fate of all elevation, our fate...

372.

Why we are not Idealists.—Formerly philosophers were afraid of the senses: have we, perhaps, been far too forgetful of this fear? We are at present all of us sensualists, we representatives of the present and of the future in philosophy,—not according to theory, however, but in praxis, in practice.... Those former philosophers, on the contrary, thought that the senses lured them out of their world, the cold realm of "ideas," to a dangerous southern island, where they were afraid that their philosopher-virtues would melt away like snow in the sun. "Wax in the ears," was then almost a 337condition of philosophising; a genuine philosopher no longer listened to life, in so far as life is music, he denied the music of life—it is an old philosophical superstition that all music is Sirens' music.—Now we should be inclined at the present day to judge precisely in the opposite manner (which in itself might be just as false), and to regard ideas, with their cold, anæmic appearance, and not even in spite of this appearance, as worse seducers than the senses. They have always lived on the "blood" of the philosopher, they always consumed his senses, and indeed, if you will believe me, his "heart" as well. Those old philosophers were heartless: philosophising was always a species of vampirism. At the sight of such figures even as Spinoza, do you not feel a profoundly enigmatical and disquieting sort of impression? Do you not see the drama which is here performed, the constantly increasing pallor—, the spiritualisation always more ideally displayed? Do you not imagine some long-concealed blood-sucker in the background, which makes its beginning with the senses, and in the end retains or leaves behind nothing but bones and their rattling?—I mean categories, formulæ, and words (for you will pardon me in saying that what remains of Spinoza, amor intellectualis dei, is rattling and nothing more! What is amor, what is deus, when they have lost every drop of blood?...) In summa: all philosophical idealism has hitherto been something like a disease, where it has not been, as in the case of Plato, the prudence of superabundant and dangerous healthfulness, the fear of overpowerful senses, 338and the wisdom of a wise Socratic.—Perhaps, is it the case that we moderns are merely not sufficiently sound to require Plato's idealism? And we do not fear the senses because——.

Why We Are Not Idealists.—In the past, philosophers feared the senses. Have we, perhaps, forgotten this fear? Today, we are all sensualists, representing the present and future in philosophy—not by theory, but in praxis, in practice.... Those earlier philosophers believed the senses pulled them away from their world, the cold domain of "ideas," to a risky southern island, where they feared their philosophical virtues would melt away like snow under the sun. "Wax in the ears" was almost a prerequisite for philosophizing; a true philosopher ignored life, as life is music, he denied the music of life—it’s an old philosophical superstition that all music is Sirens' music.—Now, we might be inclined to judge the opposite way today (which might be just as incorrect) and see ideas, with their cold, lifeless appearance, as more seductive than the senses. They have always fed on the "blood" of the philosopher, always consuming his senses, and indeed, believe me, his "heart" too. Those old philosophers were lacking in heart: philosophizing was always a kind of vampirism. When you look at figures like Spinoza, don’t you feel a deeply puzzling and unsettling impression? Don’t you see the drama unfolding, the constantly increasing pallor—the spirituality becoming ever more idealized? Can’t you imagine some long-hidden blood-sucker in the background, starting with the senses, and in the end leaving behind nothing but bones and their rattling?—I mean categories, formulas, and words (for you’ll excuse me for saying that what remains of Spinoza, amor intellectualis dei, is nothing more than rattling! What is amor, what is deus, when they’ve lost every drop of blood?...) In summary: all philosophical idealism has so far been something like a disease, except in cases like Plato's, where it was the prudence of excessive and dangerous healthiness, the fear of overpowerful senses, and the wisdom of a wise Socratic.—Perhaps we moderns are simply not sound enough to require Plato's idealism? And we do not fear the senses because——.

373.

"Science" as Prejudice.—It follows from the laws of class distinction that the learned, in so far as they belong to the intellectual middle-class, are debarred from getting even a sight of the really great problems and notes of interrogation. Besides, their courage, and similarly their outlook, does not reach so far,—and above all, their need, which makes them investigators, their innate anticipation and desire that things should be constituted in such and such a way, their fears and hopes are too soon quieted and set at rest. For example, that which makes the pedantic Englishman, Herbert Spencer, so enthusiastic in his way, and impels him to draw a line of hope, a horizon of desirability, the final reconciliation of "egoism and altruism" of which he dreams,—that almost causes nausea to people like us:—a humanity with such Spencerian perspectives as ultimate perspectives would seem to us deserving of contempt, of extermination! But the fact that something has to be taken by him as his highest hope, which is regarded, and may well be regarded, by others merely as a distasteful possibility, is a note of interrogation which Spencer could not have foreseen.... It is just the same with the belief with which at present so many materialistic natural-scientists are content, the belief in a world which is supposed to have its 339equivalent and measure in human thinking and human valuations, a "world of truth" at which we might be able ultimately to arrive with the help of our insignificant, four-cornered human reason! What? do we actually wish to have existence debased in that fashion to a ready-reckoner exercise and calculation for stay-at-home mathematicians? We should not, above all, seek to divest existence of its ambiguous character: good taste forbids it, gentlemen, the taste of reverence for everything that goes beyond your horizon! That a world-interpretation is alone right by which you maintain your position, by which investigation and work can go on scientifically in your sense (you really mean mechanically?), an interpretation which acknowledges numbering, calculating, weighing, seeing and handling, and nothing more—such an idea is a piece of grossness and naïvety, provided it is not lunacy and idiocy. Would the reverse not be quite probable, that the most superficial and external characters of existence—its most apparent quality, its outside, its embodiment—should let themselves be apprehended first? perhaps alone allow themselves to be apprehended? A "scientific" interpretation of the world as you understand it might consequently still be one of the stupidest that is to say, the most destitute of significance, of all possible world-interpretations:—I say this in confidence to my friends the Mechanicians, who to-day like to hobnob with philosophers, and absolutely believe that mechanics is the teaching of the first and last laws upon which, as upon a ground-floor, all existence must be 340built. But an essentially mechanical world would be an essentially meaningless world! Supposing we valued the worth of a music with reference to how much it could be counted, calculated, or formulated—how absurd such a "scientific" estimate of music would be! What would one have apprehended, understood, or discerned in it! Nothing, absolutely nothing of what is really "music" in it!...

"Science" as Prejudice.—It follows from the rules of class distinction that educated people, as part of the intellectual middle class, are prevented from even glimpsing the truly great issues and questions. Furthermore, their bravery, like their perspective, doesn’t go that deep—and above all, their need, which drives them to investigate, their inherent anticipation and desire for things to be in such and such a way, their fears and hopes are too quickly calmed and settled. For example, what makes the pedantic Englishman, Herbert Spencer, so enthusiastic in his own way, as he tries to outline hope, a desirable horizon, the ultimate reconciliation of "egoism and altruism" he dreams of—this almost induces nausea in people like us: a humanity with such Spencerian views as final goals would seem to us deserving of contempt, even extermination! But the fact that he has to accept as his highest hope something that others see, and rightly so, merely as an unpleasant possibility is a question Spencer would not have anticipated.... It's the same with the belief that so many materialistic natural scientists currently hold, the belief in a world thought to have its equivalent and measure in human thought and values, a "world of truth" that we could ultimately reach through our insignificant, square-minded human reasoning! What? Do we really want to reduce existence to a simple math problem and calculation for homebodies? Above all, we should not try to strip existence of its ambiguous nature: good taste forbids it, gentlemen, the taste of reverence for everything that extends beyond your horizon! The only world interpretation that is right, according to you, is one that maintains your position, one where investigation and work can scientifically continue in your sense (you really mean mechanically?), an interpretation that only acknowledges counting, calculating, weighing, seeing, and handling, and nothing more—such an idea is gross and naive, unless it's lunacy and idiocy. Wouldn't it be more likely that the most superficial and external aspects of existence—its most obvious qualities, its outer form—would be the first to be recognized? Perhaps they might only allow themselves to be recognized? A "scientific" interpretation of the world as you see it could thus still be one of the stupidest, meaning most devoid of significance, interpretations possible:—I say this confidently to my friends the Mechanicians, who today enjoy mingling with philosophers and truly believe that mechanics is the foundation of the first and last laws upon which all existence must be 339built. But a fundamentally mechanical world would be a fundamentally meaningless world! Suppose we valued the worth of music based on how much it could be counted, calculated, or formulated—how ridiculous such a "scientific" assessment of music would be! What would anyone have grasped, understood, or discerned from it! Nothing, absolutely nothing of what is truly "music" in it!...

374.

Our new "Infinite."—How far the perspective character of existence extends, or whether it have any other character at all, whether an existence without explanation, without "sense" does not just become "nonsense," whether, on the other hand, all existence is not essentially an explaining existence—these questions, as is right and proper, cannot be determined even by the most diligent and severely conscientious analysis and self-examination of the intellect, because in this analysis the human intellect cannot avoid seeing itself in its perspective forms, and only in them. We cannot see round our corner: it is hopeless curiosity to want to know what other modes of intellect and perspective there might be: for example, whether any kind of being could perceive time backwards, or alternately forwards and backwards (by which another direction of life and another conception of cause and effect would be given). But I think that we are to-day at least far from the ludicrous immodesty of decreeing from our nook that there can only be legitimate perspectives from that nook. The world, on the contrary, has 341once more become "infinite" to us: in so far we cannot dismiss the possibility that it contains infinite interpretations. Once more the great horror seizes us—but who would desire forthwith to deify once more this monster of an unknown world in the old fashion? And perhaps worship the unknown thing as the "unknown person" in future? Ah! there are too many ungodly possibilities of interpretation comprised in this unknown, too much devilment, stupidity and folly of interpretation.—also our own human, all too human interpretation itself, which we know....

Our new "Infinite."—How far does the nature of existence stretch, or does it even have any other nature at all? Does an existence without explanation, without "meaning," simply become "nonsense"? Conversely, is all existence fundamentally an explanatory existence? These questions, as is fitting, can’t be answered even by the most thorough and conscientious analysis and self-reflection of the mind because, in this analysis, the human mind can't help but view itself through its own perspective, and only through that. We can’t see beyond our own viewpoint: it is an unproductive curiosity to wonder what other modes of intellect and perspective there might be; for instance, whether any being could perceive time moving backward, or both forward and backward (which would offer a different direction of life and a different understanding of cause and effect). However, I believe that today we are certainly far from the ridiculous arrogance of claiming from our limited viewpoint that there can only be valid perspectives from that viewpoint. The world, on the contrary, has once again become "infinite" to us: therefore, we cannot dismiss the possibility that it contains infinite interpretations. Once again, the great terror grips us—but who would want to immediately revere this monster of an unknown world in the same old way? And perhaps worship the unknown as the "unknown being" in the future? Ah! There are too many ungodly interpretations contained in this unknown, too much wickedness, ignorance, and folly in interpretations—along with our own, far too human interpretation that we are aware of....

375.

Why we Seem to be Epicureans.—We are cautious, we modern men, with regard to final convictions, our distrust lies in wait for the enchantments and tricks of conscience involved in every strong belief, in every absolute Yea and Nay: how is this explained? Perhaps one may see in it a good deal of the caution of the "burnt child," of the disillusioned idealist; but one may also see in it another and better element, the joyful curiosity of a former lingerer in the corner, who has been brought to despair by his nook, and now luxuriates and revels in its antithesis, in the unbounded, in the "open air in itself." Thus there is developed an almost Epicurean inclination for knowledge, which does not readily lose sight of the questionable character of things; likewise also a repugnance to pompous moral phrases and attitudes, a taste that repudiates all coarse, square contrasts, and is proudly conscious of its habitual 342reserve. For this too constitutes our pride, this easy tightening of the reins in our headlong impulse after certainty, this self-control of the rider in his most furious riding: for now, as of old we have mad, fiery steeds under us, and if we delay, it is certainly least of all the danger which causes us to delay....

Why we Seem to be Epicureans.—We modern people are cautious about making firm convictions. Our skepticism is always on guard against the charms and manipulations of conscience that come with any strong belief, any absolute Yes or No: how can we explain this? Perhaps it's partly due to the caution of someone who has been burned, the disillusioned idealist; but there’s also a better aspect to it—the joyful curiosity of someone who was once stuck in a corner, driven to despair by their narrow surroundings, and now delights in the opposite, in the boundless, in the "open air itself." This leads to an almost Epicurean desire for knowledge, which doesn’t easily overlook the dubious nature of things; it also creates a dislike for grand moral statements and attitudes, a preference that rejects all crude, simplistic contrasts, and is proudly aware of its usual reserve. For this too is our pride: this ability to rein in our reckless quest for certainty, this self-discipline of the rider during the wildest ride: for now, just like in the past, we have mad, fiery steeds beneath us, and if we hold back, it’s definitely not fear that makes us hesitate....

376.

Our Slow Periods.—It is thus that artists feel, and all men of "works," the maternal species of men: they always believe at every chapter of their life—a work always makes a chapter—that they have already reached the goal itself; they would always patiently accept death with the feeling: "we are ripe for it." This is not the expression of exhaustion,—but rather that of a certain autumnal sunniness and mildness, which the work itself, the maturing of the work, always leaves behind in its originator. Then the tempo of life slows down—turns thick and flows with honey—into long pauses, into the belief in the long pause....

Our Slow Periods.—This is how artists feel, and all people who create: they always think, at every stage of their life—a work always signifies a stage—that they have already reached their destination; they would willingly accept death with the thought: "we are ready for it." This isn't a sign of exhaustion—but rather a sense of a certain autumnal brightness and calm that the work itself, the maturing process of the work, always leaves behind in its creator. Then the tempo of life slows down—becomes thick and flows like honey—into long pauses, into the belief in the long pause....

377.

We Homeless Ones.—Among the Europeans of to-day there are not lacking those who may call themselves homeless ones in a way which is at once a distinction and an honour; it is by them that my secret wisdom and gaya scienza is expressly to be laid to heart. For their lot is hard, their hope uncertain; it is a clever feat to devise consolation for them. But what good does it do! We children of the future, how could we be at home in the present? 343We are unfavourable to all ideals which could make us feel at home in this frail, broken-down, transition period; and as regards the "realities" thereof, we do not believe in their endurance. The ice which still carries us has become very thin: the thawing wind blows; we ourselves, the homeless ones, are an influence that breaks the ice, and the other all too thin "realities."... We "preserve" nothing, nor would we return to any past age; we are not at all "liberal," we do not labour for "progress," we do not need first to stop our ears to the song of the market-place and the sirens of the future—their song of "equal rights," "free society," "no longer either lords or slaves," does not allure us! We do not by any means think it desirable that the kingdom of righteousness and peace should be established on earth (because under any circumstances it would be the kingdom of the profoundest mediocrity and Chinaism); we rejoice in all men, who, like ourselves, love danger, war and adventure, who do not make compromises, nor let themselves be captured, conciliated and stunted; we count ourselves among the conquerors; we ponder over the need of a new order of things, even of a new slavery—for every strengthening and elevation of the type "man" also involves a new form of slavery. Is it not obvious that with all this we must feel ill at ease in an age which claims the honour of being the most humane, gentle and just that the sun has ever seen? What a pity that at the mere mention of these fine words, the thoughts at the back of our minds are all the more unpleasant, that we 344see therein only the expression—or the masquerade—of profound weakening, exhaustion, age, and declining power! What can it matter to us with what kind of tinsel an invalid decks out his weakness? He may parade it as his virtue; there is no doubt whatever that weakness makes people gentle, alas, so gentle, so just, so inoffensive, so "humane"!—The "religion of pity," to which people would like to persuade us—yes, we know sufficiently well the hysterical little men and women who need this religion at present as a cloak and adornment! We are no humanitarians; we should not dare to speak of our "love of mankind"; for that, a person of our stamp is not enough of an actor! Or not sufficiently Saint-Simonist, not sufficiently French. A person must have been affected with a Gallic excess of erotic susceptibility and amorous impatience even to approach mankind honourably with his lewdness.... Mankind! Was there ever a more hideous old woman among all old women (unless perhaps it were "the Truth": a question for philosophers)? No, we do not love Mankind! On the other hand, however, we are not nearly "German" enough (in the sense in which the word "German" is current at present) to advocate nationalism and race-hatred, or take delight in the national heart-itch and blood-poisoning, on account of which the nations of Europe are at present bounded off and secluded from one another as if by quarantines. We are too unprejudiced for that, too perverse, too fastidious; also too well-informed, and too much "travelled." We prefer much rather to live on mountains, apart and "out of season," in 345past or coming centuries, in order merely to spare ourselves the silent rage to which we know we should be condemned as witnesses of a system of politics which makes the German nation barren by making it vain, and which is a petty system besides:—will it not be necessary for this system to plant itself between two mortal hatreds, lest its own creation should immediately collapse? Will it not be obliged to desire the perpetuation of the petty-state system of Europe?... We homeless ones are too diverse and mixed in race and descent as "modern men," and are consequently little tempted to participate in the falsified racial self-admiration and lewdness which at present display themselves in Germany, as signs of German sentiment, and which strike one as doubly false and unbecoming in the people with the "historical sense." We are, in a word—and it shall be our word of honour!—good Europeans, the heirs of Europe, the rich, over-wealthy heirs, also the too deeply pledged heirs of millenniums of European thought. As such, we have also outgrown Christianity, and are disinclined to it—and just because we have grown out of it, because our forefathers were Christians uncompromising in their Christian integrity, who willingly sacrificed possessions and positions, blood and country, for the sake of their belief. We—do the same. For what, then? For our unbelief? For all sorts of unbelief? Nay, you know better than that, my friends! The hidden Yea in you is stronger than all the Nays and Perhapses, of which you and your age are sick; 346and when you are obliged to put out to sea, you emigrants, it is—once more a faith which urges you thereto!...

We Homeless Ones.—Among today's Europeans, there are those who might call themselves homeless in a way that feels both special and honorable; it is from them that my hidden wisdom and gaya scienza should be genuinely absorbed. Their situation is tough, their hope uncertain; it takes real skill to come up with comfort for them. But what does it matter! We children of the future, how could we feel at home in the present? 343 We are opposed to all ideals that could make us feel comfortable in this fragile, crumbling, transitional period; and as for the "realities" of it, we don't believe in their endurance. The ice that still supports us has become very thin: the thawing wind blows; we, the homeless ones, are an influence that breaks the ice, along with all the other fragile "realities."... We "preserve" nothing, nor would we return to any past era; we are not "liberal" at all, we are not working for "progress," we don’t need to block out the song of the marketplace and the sirens of the future—their song of "equal rights," "free society," "no longer lords or slaves," does not attract us! We certainly don't think it’s desirable for a kingdom of righteousness and peace to be established on Earth (because it would inevitably be the kingdom of profound mediocrity and China-like conformity); we celebrate all those who, like us, love danger, war, and adventure, who do not settle for compromises or allow themselves to be captured, soothed, and stunted; we consider ourselves among the conquerors; we contemplate the need for a new order of things, even a new form of slavery—for every strengthening and elevation of the type "man" also involves a new kind of bondage. Isn’t it clear that with all of this we must feel uncomfortable in an age that prides itself on being the most humane, gentle, and just that the sun has ever witnessed? How unfortunate that mere mention of these beautiful words brings forth even more unpleasant thoughts in our minds, as we see them merely as an expression—or a masquerade—of deep weakness, fatigue, aging, and declining power! What does it matter to us how a weak person decorates his frailty? He may flaunt it as his virtue; there’s no doubt that weakness makes people gentle, alas, so gentle, so just, so harmless, so "humane"!—The "religion of pity," which people want to convince us of—yes, we know all too well the hysterical little men and women who need this religion right now as a disguise and adornment! We are not humanitarians; we wouldn’t dare speak of our "love for mankind"; for someone like us isn’t enough of an actor! Or not sufficiently Saint-Simonist, not sufficiently French. A person must have suffered from a Gallic excess of erotic susceptibility and romantic impatience to even come close to regarding mankind with any honorability while being lewd.... Mankind! Has there ever been a more hideous old woman among all old women (unless perhaps it were "the Truth": a question for philosophers)? No, we do not love Mankind! However, we are not nearly "German" enough (in the sense in which the term "German" is currently understood) to advocate nationalism and racial hatred, or to take pleasure in the national itch and blood poisoning, which currently separates and isolates the nations of Europe as if by quarantines. We are too open-minded for that, too quirky, too fastidious; also too informed, and too "traveled." We would much rather live on mountains, apart and "out of season," in 345 past or future centuries, simply to spare ourselves the silent rage we know we would feel as witnesses to a political system that renders the German nation barren by making it vain, and which is a petty system besides:—won't this system have to establish itself between two mortal hatreds, lest it collapse? Will it not be obliged to want to maintain the petty-state system of Europe?... We homeless ones are too diverse and mixed in race and background as "modern people," and are thus not easily tempted to partake in the distorted racial self-admiration and lewdness that currently flaunt themselves in Germany, presented as symbols of German sentiment, which seem doubly false and inappropriate in a people with "historical sense." We are, in a word—and it shall be our word of honor!—good Europeans, the heirs of Europe, the rich, over-indebted heirs, also the too deeply pledged heirs of millennia of European thought. As such, we have also outgrown Christianity and are disinclined towards it—and precisely because we have grown out of it, because our ancestors were Christians who uncompromisingly upheld their faith, willing to sacrifice possessions and status, blood and country, for their beliefs. We—do the same. For what, then? For our unbelief? For all sorts of unbelief? No, you know better than that, my friends! The hidden Yea within you is stronger than all the Nays and Perhapses, of which you and your age are afflicted; 346 and when you are forced to set sail, you emigrants, it is—once again a faith that compels you to do so!...

378.

"And once more Grow Clear."—We, the generous and rich in spirit, who stand at the sides of the streets like open fountains and would hinder no one from drinking from us: we do not know, alas! how to defend ourselves when we should like to do so; we have no means of preventing ourselves being made turbid and dark,—we have no means of preventing the age in which we live casting its "up-to-date rubbish" into us, nor of hindering filthy birds throwing their excrement, the boys their trash, and fatigued resting travellers their misery, great and small, into us. But we do as we have always done: we take whatever is cast into us down into our depths—for we are deep, we do not forget—and once more grow clear....

"And once more Grow Clear."—We, the generous and spiritually wealthy, who stand at the edges of the streets like open fountains and would never stop anyone from drinking from us: we do not know, sadly! how to defend ourselves when we want to; we have no way to prevent ourselves from becoming cloudy and dark,—we can't stop the times we live in from dumping their "modern garbage" into us, nor can we stop filthy birds from leaving their droppings, boys from throwing their junk, and exhausted travelers from sharing their burdens, big and small, into us. But we do as we've always done: we take whatever is thrown into us down into our depths—for we are deep, we do not forget—and once more grow clear....

379.

The Fool's Interruption.—It is not a misanthrope who has written this book: the hatred of men costs too dear to-day. To hate as they formerly hated man, in the fashion of Timon, completely, without qualification, with all the heart, from the pure love of hatred—for that purpose one would have to renounce contempt:—and how much refined pleasure, how much patience, how much benevolence even, do we owe to contempt! Moreover we are thereby the "elect of God": refined contempt is our taste and privilege, our art, our virtue 347perhaps, we, the most modern amongst the moderns!... Hatred, on the contrary, makes equal, it puts men face to face, in hatred there is honour; finally, in hatred there is fear, quite a large amount of fear. We fearless ones, however, we, the most intellectual men of the period, know our advantage well enough to live without fear as the most intellectual persons of this age. People will not easily behead us, shut us up, or banish us; they will not even ban or burn our books. The age loves intellect, it loves us, and needs us, even when we have to give it to understand that we are artists in despising; that all intercourse with men is something of a horror to us; that with all our gentleness, patience, humanity and courteousness, we cannot persuade our nose to abandon its prejudice against the proximity of man; that we love nature the more, the less humanly things are done by her, and that we love art when it is the flight of the artist from man, or the raillery of the artist at man, or the raillery of the artist at himself....

The Fool's Interruption.—This book wasn't written by a misanthrope; today's hatred of humanity is too costly. To hate humanity like Timon did—completely, without reservation, with all your heart, out of a pure love of hatred—would require giving up contempt. And how much refined pleasure, patience, and even benevolence do we owe to contempt! Moreover, we are considered the "chosen ones": refined contempt is our taste and privilege, our art, and perhaps our virtue, we, the most modern of the moderns!... Hatred, on the other hand, creates equality; it puts people face to face, and there's honor in hatred; ultimately, there's also fear, quite a lot of fear. However, we fearless ones, the most intellectual individuals of our time, are well aware of our advantage and know how to live without fear like the intellectuals we are. People won't easily behead us, imprison us, or banish us; they won't even ban or burn our books. This era appreciates intellect, loves us, and needs us, even when we have to show it that we are artists at disdain; that all interaction with people is somewhat terrifying to us; that despite our gentleness, patience, humanity, and politeness, we can't help but keep our distance from others; that we love nature more when she acts less humanely, and that we cherish art when it represents the artist's escape from humanity, or the artist's mockery of humanity, or the artist's self-deprecating humor....

380.

"The Wanderer" Speaks.—In order for once to get a glimpse of our European morality from a distance, in order to compare it with other earlier or future moralities, one must do as the traveller who wants to know the height of the towers of a city: for that purpose he leaves the city. "Thoughts concerning moral prejudices," if they are not to be prejudices concerning prejudices, presuppose a position outside of morality, some 348sort of world beyond good and evil, to which one must ascend, climb, or fly—and in the given case at any rate, a position beyond our good and evil, an emancipation from all "Europe," understood as a sum of inviolable valuations which have become part and parcel of our flesh and blood. That one wants in fact to get outside, or aloft, is perhaps a sort of madness, a peculiarly unreasonable "thou must"—for even we thinkers have our idiosyncrasies of "unfree will"—: the question is whether one can really get there. That may depend on manifold conditions: in the main it is a question of how light or how heavy we are, the problem of our "specific gravity." One must be very light in order to impel one's will to knowledge to such a distance, and as it were beyond one's age, in order to create eyes for oneself for the survey of millenniums, and a pure heaven in these eyes besides! One must have freed oneself from many things by which we Europeans of to-day are oppressed, hindered, held down, and made heavy. The man of such a "Beyond," who wants to get even in sight of the highest standards of worth of his age, must first of all "surmount" this age in himself—it is the test of his power—and consequently not only his age, but also his past aversion and opposition to his age, his suffering caused by his age, his unseasonableness, his Romanticism....

"The Wanderer" Speaks.—To get a glimpse of our European morality from a distance, and to compare it with other past or future moralities, one must do what a traveler does who wants to know the height of a city's towers: he leaves the city. "Thoughts about moral prejudices," if they are not just prejudices about prejudices, require a position outside of morality, a sort of world beyond good and evil, where one must ascend, climb, or fly—and in this case, at least, a place beyond our good and evil, a freedom from all "Europe," seen as a collection of unwritten standards that have become part of our very being. Wanting to escape or rise above is perhaps a kind of madness, an oddly unreasonable "you must"—because even we thinkers have our quirks of "unfree will." The real question is whether one can actually reach that place. This may depend on various factors: mainly, it’s about how light or heavy we are, the issue of our "specific gravity." One must be very light to push one's will for knowledge far enough out, and to see beyond one’s time, to create a perspective for viewing millennia, and to have a clear vision along with it! One must have freed oneself from many burdens that we Europeans today are held back by, which weigh us down. A person from such a "Beyond," who wants to even glimpse the highest standards of value of their time, must first "overcome" their own time—it’s the test of their strength—and thus must deal with not only their time, but also their past dislikes and opposition to their time, their suffering caused by their time, their out-of-place feelings, their Romanticism....

381.

The Question of Intelligibility.—One not only wants to be understood when one writes, but also—quite as certainly—not to be understood. It is 349by no means an objection to a book when someone finds it unintelligible: perhaps this might just have been the intention of its author,—perhaps he did not want to be understood by "anyone." A distinguished intellect and taste, when it wants to communicate its thoughts, always selects its hearers; by selecting them, it at the same time closes its barriers against "the others." It is there that all the more refined laws of style have their origin: they at the same time keep off, they create distance, they prevent "access" (intelligibility, as we have said,)—while they open the ears of those who are acoustically related to them. And to say it between ourselves and with reference to my own case,—I do not desire that either my ignorance, or the vivacity of my temperament, should prevent me being understood by you, my friends: I certainly do not desire that my vivacity should have that effect, however much it may impel me to arrive quickly at an object, in order to arrive at it at all. For I think it is best to do with profound problems as with a cold bath—quickly in, quickly out. That one does not thereby get into the depths, that one does not get deep enough down—is a superstition of the hydrophobic, the enemies of cold water; they speak without experience. Oh! the great cold makes one quick!—And let me ask by the way: Is it a fact that a thing has been misunderstood and unrecognised when it has only been touched upon in passing, glanced at, flashed at? Must one absolutely sit upon it in the first place? Must one have brooded on it as on an egg? Diu noctuque incubando, as Newton said of himself? At 350least there are truths of a peculiar shyness and ticklishness which one can only get hold of suddenly, and in no other way,—which one must either take by surprise, or leave alone.... Finally, my brevity has still another value: on those questions which pre-occupy me, I must say a great deal briefly, in order that it may be heard yet more briefly. For as immoralist, one has to take care lest one ruins innocence, I mean the asses and old maids of both sexes, who get nothing from life but their innocence; moreover my writings are meant to fill them with enthusiasm, to elevate them, to encourage them in virtue. I should be at a loss to know of anything more amusing than to see enthusiastic old asses and maids moved by the sweet feelings of virtue: and "that have I seen"—spake Zarathustra. So much with respect to brevity; the matter stands worse as regards my ignorance, of which I make no secret to myself. There are hours in which I am ashamed of it; to be sure there are likewise hours in which I am ashamed of this shame. Perhaps we philosophers, all of us, are badly placed at present with regard to knowledge: science is growing, the most learned of us are on the point of discovering that we know too little. But it would be worse still if it were otherwise,—if we knew too much; our duty is and remains, first of all, not to get into confusion about ourselves. We are different from the learned; although it cannot be denied that amongst other things we are also learned. We have different needs, a different growth, a different digestion: we need more, we need also less. There is no formula 351as to how much an intellect needs for its nourishment; if, however, its taste be in the direction of independence, rapid coming and going, travelling, and perhaps adventure for which only the swiftest are qualified, it prefers rather to live free on poor fare, than to be unfree and plethoric. Not fat, but the greatest suppleness and power is what a good dancer wishes from his nourishment,—and I know not what the spirit of a philosopher would like better than to be a good dancer. For the dance is his ideal, and also his art, in the end likewise his sole piety, his "divine service."...

The Question of Intelligibility.—When writing, people not only want to be understood but also—just as certainly—not to be understood. It’s not a criticism of a book if someone finds it hard to understand; maybe that was the author's intention—perhaps they didn’t want to be understood by "anyone." A sharp intellect and refined taste, when trying to convey its thoughts, always chooses its audience; by doing so, it also shuts out "the others." This is where the more nuanced laws of style come into play: they keep outsiders at bay, create distance, and block "access" (intelligibility, as we said)—while opening the ears of those who resonate with them. And just between us, referring to my own situation—I don’t want my ignorance or my lively nature to stop me from being understood by you, my friends: I certainly don’t want my enthusiasm to have that effect, no matter how much it drives me to reach a point quickly, just to get there. I believe it’s best to tackle deep issues like taking a cold bath—jump in quickly, get out quickly. The idea that one doesn’t dive deep enough—that one doesn’t go down far enough—is a belief held by those who fear cold water; they speak without experience. Oh! the great cold makes one swift!—And let me ask: Is something actually misunderstood or unrecognized if it’s only been mentioned briefly, glanced at, or touched on? Must one completely settle into it first? Must one brooding over it like it’s an egg? Diu noctuque incubando, as Newton said about himself? At least there are truths that are shy and sensitive, which can only be seized suddenly, or not at all—ones you must either catch by surprise or leave be.... Lastly, my brevity has another purpose: on the topics that occupy my mind, I need to say a lot in a short way, so it can be heard even more briefly. As an immoralist, one must be careful not to ruin innocence, referring to the simple-minded and the old maids of both genders, who gain nothing from life but their innocence; moreover, my writings aim to inspire them, elevate them, and encourage them in virtue. I can’t think of anything more entertaining than seeing enthusiastic old fools and maidens moved by virtuous feelings: and "that have I seen"—said Zarathustra. So much for brevity; the situation is worse concerning my ignorance, which I don’t hide from myself. There are times when I feel ashamed of it; of course, there are also moments when I’m ashamed of that shame. Maybe we philosophers are in a tough spot regarding knowledge: science is advancing, and the most educated among us are realizing we know too little. But it would be worse if it were the opposite—if we knew too much; our primary duty remains not to confuse ourselves. We are different from the educated; although it’s undeniable that we are also learned in many respects. We have different needs, different growth, different digestion: we require more, but also less. There’s no formula for how much an intellect needs for nourishment; however, if its taste leans toward independence, quick movement, travel, and maybe adventures that only the swiftest can handle, it tends to prefer living free on meager fare rather than being stuck and gluttonous. Not fat, but the utmost agility and strength is what a good dancer seeks from their nourishment—and I can't imagine what a philosopher's spirit would desire more than to be a good dancer. Dancing is his ideal, his art, and in the end, also his sole devotion, his "divine service."...

382.

Great Healthiness.—We, the new, the nameless, the hard-to-understand, we firstlings of a yet untried future—we require for a new end also a new means, namely, a new healthiness, stronger, sharper, tougher, bolder and merrier than any healthiness hitherto. He whose soul longs to experience the whole range of hitherto recognised values and desirabilities, and to circumnavigate all the coasts of this ideal "Mediterranean Sea," who, from the adventures of his most personal experience, wants to know how it feels to be a conqueror, and discoverer of the ideal—as likewise how it is with the artist, the saint, the legislator, the sage, the scholar, the devotee, the prophet, and the godly Nonconformist of the old style:—requires one thing above all for that purpose, great healthiness—such healthiness as one not only possesses, but also constantly acquires and must acquire, because one continually sacrifices it again, and must sacrifice 352it!—And now, after having been long on the way in this fashion, we Argonauts of the ideal, who are more courageous perhaps than prudent, and often enough shipwrecked and brought to grief, nevertheless, as said above, healthier than people would like to admit, dangerously healthy, always healthy again,—it would seem, as if in recompense for it all, that we have a still undiscovered country before us, the boundaries of which no one has yet seen, a beyond to all countries and corners of the ideal known hitherto, a world so over-rich in the beautiful, the strange, the questionable, the frightful, and the divine, that our curiosity as well as our thirst for possession thereof, have got out of hand—alas! that nothing will now any longer satisfy us! How could we still be content with the man of the present day after such peeps, and with such a craving in our conscience and consciousness? What a pity; but it is unavoidable that we should look on the worthiest aims and hopes of the man of the present day with ill-concealed amusement, and perhaps should no longer look at them. Another ideal runs on before us, a strange, tempting ideal, full of danger, to which we should not like to persuade any one, because we do not so readily acknowledge any one's right thereto: the ideal of a spirit who plays naïvely (that is to say involuntarily and from overflowing abundance and power) with everything that has hitherto been called holy, good, inviolable, divine; to whom the loftiest conception which the people have reasonably made their measure of value, would already imply danger, ruin, abasement, or at least relaxation, 353blindness, or temporary self-forgetfulness; the ideal of a humanly superhuman welfare and benevolence, which may often enough appear inhuman, for example, when put by the side of all past seriousness on earth, and in comparison with all past solemnities in bearing, word, tone, look, morality and pursuit, as their truest involuntary parody,— but with which, nevertheless, perhaps the great seriousness only commences, the proper interrogation mark is set up, the fate of the soul changes, the hour-hand moves, and tragedy begins....

Great Healthiness.—We, the new, the nameless, the hard-to-understand, the first of a still untested future—we need a new goal that also requires a new means, specifically, a new healthiness, one that is stronger, sharper, tougher, bolder, and happier than any healthiness we've known before. Anyone whose soul yearns to experience all the values and desires that have been recognized until now, and to explore the entire coastline of this ideal "Mediterranean Sea," who wants to know from their own adventures how it feels to be a conqueror and discoverer of the ideal—just like the artist, the saint, the legislator, the sage, the scholar, the devotee, the prophet, and the old-school godly Nonconformist—needs one thing above all else for that purpose, great healthiness—a healthiness that not only belongs to one but is also constantly acquired and must be acquired, because one continually sacrifices it again, and must sacrifice it!—And now, after traveling this path for a long time, we Argonauts of the ideal, perhaps bolder than wise, and often shipwrecked and troubled, are nonetheless, as mentioned earlier, healthier than people would like to believe, dangerously healthy, always finding our way back to health again,—it seems, as if in return for it all, that we have an undiscovered country ahead of us, the boundaries of which no one has seen yet, a beyond to all known countries and corners of the ideal, a world so overflowing with beauty, the strange, the questionable, the frightening, and the divine, that our curiosity and our desire to possess it have gotten out of control—alas! that nothing now will satisfy us! How could we still be content with the man of the present day after such glimpses, and with such a craving weighing on our conscience and awareness? It’s unfortunate, but it’s inevitable that we look at the noblest goals and hopes of the man of today with poorly-hidden amusement, and perhaps even choose to ignore them. Another ideal moves ahead of us, a strange, tempting ideal, full of danger, which we wouldn’t want to lead anyone toward because we’re not quick to acknowledge anyone’s right to it: the ideal of a spirit who plays innocently (that is, involuntarily and from an overflowing abundance and power) with everything that has been called holy, good, inviolable, divine; to whom the highest ideas that people have reasonably made their measures of value would already imply danger, disaster, degradation, or at least relaxation, blindness, or temporary self-forgetfulness; the ideal of a humanly superhuman well-being and kindness, which can often seem inhuman, for instance, when compared to all past seriousness on earth, and in contrast to all previous solemnities in behavior, words, tone, expression, morality, and pursuits, as their truest involuntary parody,—but with which, nevertheless, perhaps the great seriousness only begins, the right question is posed, the fate of the soul changes, the hour hand moves, and tragedy starts....

383.

Epilogue.—But while I slowly, slowly finish the painting of this sombre interrogation-mark, and am still inclined to remind my readers of the virtues of right reading—oh, what forgotten and unknown virtues—it comes to pass that the wickedest, merriest, gnome-like laughter resounds around me: the spirits of my book themselves pounce upon me, pull me by the ears, and call me to order. "We cannot endure it any longer," they shout to me, "away, away with this raven-black music. Is it not clear morning round about us? And green, soft ground and turf, the domain of the dance? Was there ever a better hour in which to be joyful? Who will sing us a song, a morning song, so sunny, so light and so fledged that it will not scare the tantrums,—but will rather invite them to take part in the singing and dancing. And better a simple rustic bagpipe than such weird sounds, such toad-croakings, grave-voices and marmot-pipings, with which you have hitherto regaled us in your wilderness, 354Mr Anchorite and Musician of the Future! No! Not such tones! But let us strike up something more agreeable and more joyful!"—You would like to have it so, my impatient friends? Well! Who would not willingly accord with your wishes? My bagpipe is waiting, and my voice also—it may sound a little hoarse; take it as it is! don't forget we are in the mountains! But what you will hear is at least new; and if you do not understand it, if you misunderstand the singer, what does it matter! That—has always been "The Singer's Curse."[14] So much the more distinctly can you hear his music and melody, so much the better also can you—dance to his piping. Would you like to do that?...

Epilogue.—While I'm slowly finishing this dark interrogation mark of a painting, and still inclined to remind my readers of the forgotten and unknown virtues of proper reading—oh, what those virtues are—it suddenly becomes clear that the wildest, merriest, gnome-like laughter echoes around me: the very spirits of my book pounce on me, tugging at my ears and calling me to account. "We can’t stand this any longer," they yell at me, "away with this dark music. Isn’t it bright morning all around us? And green, soft ground where we can dance? Has there ever been a better time to be joyful? Who will sing us a song, a cheerful morning song, so bright and light that it won’t scare the little mischief-makers—but rather invite them to join in the singing and dancing? Better a simple rustic bagpipe than these strange sounds, these croaks of toads, serious voices, and whistling marmots with which you have entertained us in your wilderness, 354 Mr Anchorite and Musician of the Future! No! Not those notes! Let’s play something that’s more enjoyable and upbeat!"—You want that, my eager friends? Well! Who wouldn’t want to fulfill your wishes? My bagpipe is ready, and my voice is too—it might sound a bit rough; just bear with me! Don’t forget we’re in the mountains! But what you hear will at least be new; and if you don’t get it, or misunderstand the singer, what does it matter! That has always been "The Singer's Curse."[14] The clearer you can hear his music and melody, the better you can—dance to his tune. Would you like to do that?...

355

355

APPENDIX
 
SONGS OF PRINCE FREE-AS-A-BIRD

357

TO GOETHE.[15]

"The Undecaying"
Is but thy label,
God the betraying
Is poets' fable.
Our aims all are thwarted
By the World-wheel's blind roll:
"Doom," says the downhearted,
"Sport," says the fool.
The World-sport, all-ruling,
Mingles false with true:
The Eternally Fooling
Makes us play, too!
358

THE POET'S CALL.

As 'neath a shady tree I sat
After long toil to take my pleasure,
I heard a tapping "pit-a-pat"
Beat prettily in rhythmic measure.
Tho' first I scowled, my face set hard,
The sound at length my sense entrapping
Forced me to speak like any bard,
And keep true time unto the tapping.
As I made verses, never stopping,
Each syllable the bird went after,
Keeping in time with dainty hopping!
I burst into unmeasured laughter!
What, you a poet? You a poet?
Can your brains truly so addled be?
"Yes, yes, good sir, you are a poet,"
Chirped out the pecker, mocking me.
What doth me to these woods entice?
The chance to give some thief a trouncing?
A saw, an image? Ha, in a trice
My rhyme is on it, swiftly pouncing!
All things that creep or crawl the poet
Weaves in his word-loom cunningly.
"Yes, yes, good sir, you are a poet,"
Chirped out the pecker, mocking me.
Like to an arrow, methinks, a verse is,
See how it quivers, pricks and smarts
When shot full straight (no tender mercies!)
Into the reptile's nobler parts!
359Wretches, you die at the hand of the poet,
Or stagger like men that have drunk too free.
"Yes, yes, good sir, you are a poet,"
Chirped out the pecker, mocking me.
So they go hurrying, stanzas malign,
Drunken words—what a clattering, banging!—
Till the whole company, line on line,
All on the rhythmic chain are hanging.
Has he really a cruel heart, your poet?
Are there fiends who rejoice, the slaughter to see?
"Yes, yes, good sir, you are a poet,"
Chirped out the pecker, mocking me.
So you jest at me, bird, with your scornful graces?
So sore indeed is the plight of my head?
And my heart, you say, in yet sorrier case is?
Beware! for my wrath is a thing to dread!
Yet e'en in the hour of his wrath the poet
Rhymes you and sings with the selfsame glee.
"Yes, yes, good sir, you are a poet,"
Chirped out the pecker, mocking me.

IN THE SOUTH.[16]

I swing on a bough, and rest
My tired limbs in a nest,
In the rocking home of a bird,
Wherein I perch as his guest,
In the South!
360I gaze on the ocean asleep,
On the purple sail of a boat;
On the harbour and tower steep,
On the rocks that stand out of the deep,
In the South!
For I could no longer stay,
To crawl in slow German way;
So I called to the birds, bade the wind
Lift me up and bear me away
To the South!
No reasons for me, if you please;
Their end is too dull and too plain;
But a pair of wings and a breeze,
With courage and health and ease,
And games that chase disease
From the South!
Wise thoughts can move without sound,
But I've songs that I can't sing alone;
So birdies, pray gather around,
And listen to what I have found
In the South!
* * *
"You are merry lovers and false and gay,
In frolics and sport you pass the day;
Whilst in the North, I shudder to say,
I worshipped a woman, hideous and gray,
Her name was Truth, so I heard them say,
But I left her there and I flew away
To the South!"
361

BEPPA THE PIOUS.

While beauty in my face is,
Be piety my care,
For God, you know, loves lasses,
And, more than all, the fair.
And if yon hapless monkling
Is fain with me to live,
Like many another monkling,
God surely will forgive.
No grey old priestly devil,
But, young, with cheeks aflame—
Who e'en when sick with revel,
Can jealous be and blame.
To greybeards I'm a stranger,
And he, too, hates the old:
Of God, the world-arranger,
The wisdom here behold!
The Church has ken of living,
And tests by heart and face.
To me she'll be forgiving!
Who will not show me grace?
I lisp with pretty halting,
I curtsey, bid "good day,"
And with the fresh defaulting
I wash the old away!
Praise be this man-God's guerdon,
Who loves all maidens fair,
And his own heart can pardon
The sin he planted there.
362While beauty in my face is,
With piety I'll stand,
When age has killed my graces,
Let Satan claim my hand!

THE BOAT OF MYSTERY.

Yester-eve, when all things slept—
Scarce a breeze to stir the lane—
I a restless vigil kept,
Nor from pillows sleep could gain,
Nor from poppies nor—most sure
Of opiates—a conscience pure.
Thoughts of rest I 'gan forswear,
Rose and walked along the strand,
Found, in warm and moonlit air,
Man and boat upon the sand,
Drowsy both, and drowsily
Did the boat put out to sea.
Passed an hour or two perchance,
Or a year? then thought and sense
Vanished in the engulfing trance
Of a vast Indifference.
Fathomless, abysses dread
Opened—then the vision fled.
Morning came: becalmed, the boat
Rested on the purple flood:
"What had happened?" every throat
Shrieked the question: "was there—Blood?"
Naught had happened! On the swell
We had slumbered, oh, so well!
363

AN AVOWAL OF LOVE
 
(during which, however, the poet fell into a pit).

Oh marvel! there he flies
Cleaving the sky with wings unmoved—what force
Impels him, bids him rise,
What curb restrains him? Where's his goal, his course?
Like stars and time eterne
He liveth now in heights that life forswore,
Nor envy's self doth spurn:
A lofty flight were't, e'en to see him soar!
Oh albatross, great bird,
Speeding me upward ever through the blue!
I thought of her, was stirred
To tears unending—yea, I love her true!

SONG OF A THEOCRITEAN GOATHERD.

Here I lie, my bowels sore,
Hosts of bugs advancing,
Yonder lights and romp and roar!
What's that sound? They're dancing!
At this instant, so she prated,
Stealthily she'd meet me:
Like a faithful dog I've waited,
Not a sign to greet me!
She promised, made the cross-sign, too,
Could her vows be hollow?
Or runs she after all that woo,
Like the goats I follow?
364Whence your silken gown, my maid?
Ah, you'd fain be haughty,
Yet perchance you've proved a jade
With some satyr naughty!
Waiting long, the lovelorn wight
Is filled with rage and poison:
Even so on sultry night
Toadstools grow in foison.
Pinching sore, in devil's mood,
Love doth plague my crupper:
Truly I can eat no food:
Farewell, onion-supper!
Seaward sinks the moon away,
The stars are wan, and flare not:
Dawn approaches, gloomy, grey,
Let Death come! I care not!

"SOULS THAT LACK DETERMINATION."

Souls that lack determination
Rouse my wrath to white-hot flame!
All their glory's but vexation,
All their praise but self-contempt and shame!
Since I baffle their advances,
Will not clutch their leading-string,
They would wither me with glances
Bitter-sweet, with hopeless envy sting.
Let them with fell curses shiver,
Curl their lip the livelong day!
Seek me as they will, forever
Helplessly their eyes shall go astray!
365 days

THE FOOL'S DILEMMA.

Ah, what I wrote on board and wall
With foolish heart, in foolish scrawl,
I meant but for their decoration!
Yet say you, "Fools' abomination!
Both board and wall require purgation,
And let no trace our eyes appal!"
Well, I will help you, as I can,
For sponge and broom are my vocation,
As critic and as waterman.
But when the finished work I scan,
I'm glad to see each learned owl
With "wisdom" board and wall defoul.

RIMUS REMEDIUM
 
(or a Consolation to Sick Poets).

From thy moist lips,
O Time, thou witch, beslavering me,
Hour upon hour too slowly drips
In vain—I cry, in frenzy's fit,
"A curse upon that yawning pit,
A curse upon Eternity!"
The world's of brass,
A fiery bullock, deaf to wail:
Pain's dagger pierces my cuirass,
Wingéd, and writes upon my bone:
"Bowels and heart the world hath none,
Why scourge her sins with anger's flail?"
366Pour poppies now,
Pour venom, Fever, on my brain!
Too long you test my hand and brow:
What ask you? "What—reward is paid?"
A malediction on you, jade,
And your disdain!
No, I retract,
'Tis cold—I hear the rain importune—
Fever, I'll soften, show my tact:
Here's gold—a coin—see it gleam!
Shall I with blessings on you beam,
Call you "good fortune"?
The door opes wide,
And raindrops on my bed are scattered,
The light's blown out—woes multiplied!
He that hath not an hundred rhymes,
I'll wager, in these dolorous times
We'd see him shattered!

MY BLISS.

Once more, St Mark, thy pigeons meet my gaze,
The Square lies still, in slumbering morning mood:
In soft, cool air I fashion idle lays,
Speeding them skyward like a pigeon's brood:
And then recall my minions
To tie fresh rhymes upon their willing pinions.
My bliss! My bliss!
Calm heavenly roof of azure silkiness,
Guarding with shimmering haze yon house divine!
Thee, house, I love, fear—envy, I'll confess,
367And gladly would suck out that soul of thine!
"Should I give back the prize?"
Ask not, great pasture-ground for human eyes!
My bliss! My bliss!
Stern belfry, rising as with lion's leap
Sheer from the soil in easy victory,
That fill'st the Square with peal resounding, deep,
Wert thou in French that Square's "accent aigu"?
Were I for ages set
In earth like thee, I know what silk-meshed net....
My bliss! My bliss!
Hence, music! First let darker shadows come,
And grow, and merge into brown, mellow night!
'Tis early for your pealing, ere the dome
Sparkle in roseate glory, gold-bedight
While yet 'tis day, there's time
For strolling, lonely muttering, forging rhyme—
My bliss! My bliss!

COLUMBUS REDIVIVUS.

Thither I'll travel, that's my notion,
I'll trust myself, my grip,
Where opens wide and blue the ocean
I'll ply my Genoa ship.
New things on new the world unfolds me,
Time, space with noonday die:
Alone thy monstrous eye beholds me,
Awful Infinity!
368

SILS-MARIA.

Here sat I waiting, waiting, but for naught!
Beyond all good and evil—now by light wrought
To joy, now by dark shadows—all was leisure,
All lake, all noon, all time sans aim, sans measure.
Then one, dear friend, was swiftly changed to twain,
And Zarathustra left my teeming brain....

A DANCING SONG TO THE MISTRAL
WIND.[17]

Wildly rushing, clouds outleaping,
Care-destroying, Heaven sweeping,
Mistral wind, thou art my friend!
Surely 'twas one womb did bear us,
Surely 'twas one fate did pair us,
Fellows for a common end.
From the crags I gaily greet you,
Running fast I come to meet you,
Dancing while you pipe and sing.
How you bound across the ocean,
Unimpeded, free in motion,
Swifter than with boat or wing!
369Through my dreams your whistle sounded,
Down the rocky stairs I bounded
To the golden ocean wall;
Saw you hasten, swift and glorious,
Like a river, strong, victorious,
Tumbling in a waterfall.
Saw you rushing over Heaven,
With your steeds so wildly driven,
Saw the car in which you flew;
Saw the lash that wheeled and quivered,
While the hand that held it shivered,
Urging on the steeds anew.
Saw you from your chariot swinging,
So that swifter downward springing
Like an arrow you might go
Straight into the deep abysses,
As a sunbeam falls and kisses
Roses in the morning glow.
Dance, oh! dance on all the edges,
Wave-crests, cliffs and mountain ledges,
Ever finding dances new!
Let our knowledge be our gladness,
Let our art be sport and madness,
All that's joyful shall be true!
Let us snatch from every bower,
As we pass, the fairest flower,
With some leaves to make a crown;
Then, like minstrels gaily dancing,
Saint and witch together prancing,
Let us foot it up and down.
370Those who come must move as quickly
As the wind—we'll have no sickly,
Crippled, withered, in our crew;
Off with hypocrites and preachers,
Proper folk and prosy teachers,
Sweep them from our heaven blue.
Sweep away all sad grimaces,
Whirl the dust into the faces
Of the dismal sick and cold!
Hunt them from our breezy places,
Not for them the wind that braces,
But for men of visage bold.
Off with those who spoil earth's gladness,
Blow away all clouds of sadness,
Till our heaven clear we see;
Let me hold thy hand, best fellow,
Till my joy like tempest bellow!
Freest thou of spirits free!
When thou partest, take a token
Of the joy thou hast awoken,
Take our wreath and fling it far;
Toss it up and catch it never,
Whirl it on before thee ever,
Till it reach the farthest star.

FOOTNOTES:

1. This means literally to put the numeral X instead of the numeral V (formerly U); hence it means to double a number unfairly, to exaggerate, humbug, cheat.—Tr.

1. This literally means to replace the numeral X with the numeral V (previously U); therefore, it means to unfairly double a number, to exaggerate, deceive, or cheat.—Tr.

2. An allusion to Schiller's poem: "The Veiled Image of Sais."—Tr.

2. A reference to Schiller's poem: "The Veiled Image of Sais."—Tr.

3. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre.

3. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre.

4. A and O, suggestive of Ah! and Oh! refer of course to Alpha and Omega, the first and last letters of the Greek alphabet.—Tr.

4. A and O, indicating Ah! and Oh!, refer to Alpha and Omega, the first and last letters of the Greek alphabet.—Tr.

5. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre.

5. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre.

6. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre.

6. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre.

7. Allusions to the song of Clara in Goethe's "Egmont."—TR.

7. References to Clara's song in Goethe's "Egmont."—TR.

8. Schiller's poem, "The Veiled Image of Sais," is again referred to here.—Tr.

8. Schiller's poem, "The Veiled Image of Sais," is mentioned again here.—Tr.

9. This means that true love does not look for reciprocity.—Tr.

9. This means that real love doesn't seek anything in return.—Tr.

10. The distinction between ethos and pathos in Aristotle is, broadly, that between internal character and external circumstance.—P. V. C.

10. The difference between ethos and pathos in Aristotle is, generally, the contrast between internal character and external circumstance.—P. V. C.

11. In German the expression Kopf zu waschen, besides the literal sense, also means "to give a person a sound drubbing."—Tr.

11. In German, the phrase Kopf zu waschen, besides its literal meaning, also refers to "to give someone a good beating."—Tr.

12. "Germany, Germany, above all": the first line of the German national song.—Tr.

12. "Germany, Germany, above all": the first line of the German national anthem.—Tr.

13. An allusion to the German Proverb, "Handwerk hat einen goldenen Boden."—Tr.

13. A reference to the German proverb, "Handwerk hat einen goldenen Boden."—Tr.

14. Title of the well-known poem of Uhland.—Tr.

14. Title of the famous poem by Uhland.—Trans.

15. This poem is a parody of the "Chorus Mysticus" which concludes the second part of Goethe's "Faust." Bayard Taylor's translation of the passage in "Faust" runs as follows:—

15. This poem is a parody of the "Chorus Mysticus" that wraps up the second part of Goethe's "Faust." Bayard Taylor's translation of this section in "Faust" goes like this:—

"All things transitory
But as symbols are sent,
Earth's insufficiency
Here grows to Event:
The Indescribable
Here it is done:
The Woman-Soul leadeth us
Upward and on!"

16. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre. Inserted by permission of the editor of the Nation, in which it appeared on April 17, 1909.

16. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre. Used with permission from the editor of the Nation, where it was published on April 17, 1909.

17. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre. Inserted by permission of the editor of the Nation, in which it appeared on May 15, 1909.

17. Translated by Miss M. D. Petre. Included with permission from the editor of the Nation, in which it was published on May 15, 1909.

Transcriber's Note

The original spelling and punctuation has been retained.

The original spelling and punctuation has been retained.

Variations in hyphenation and compound words have been preserved.

Variations in hyphenation and compound words have been kept.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!